ZEN TEXTS
BDK English Tripitakan 73-III, 98-VIII, 98-IX, 104-I
(TaishoVolume 48, Number 2012-A)
Translated from the Chinese by
John R. McRae
(TaishoVolume 80, Number 2543)
Translated from the Japanese by
Gishin Tokiwa
A Universal Recommendation for True Zazen
(TaishoVolume 82, Number 2580)
Translated from the Japanese by
Osamu Yoshida
(TaishoVolume 82, Number 2586)
Translated from the Japanese by
Steven Heine
Numata Center
for Buddhist Translation and Research
2005
© 2005 by Bukkyo Dendo Kyokai and
Numata Center for Buddhist Translation and Research
All rights reserved. No part of this book may be reproduced, stored in a retrieval system, or transcribed in any form or by any means.
—electronic, mechanical, photocopying, recording, or otherwise— without the prior written permission of the publisher.
First Printing, 2005
ISBN: 1-886439-28-1
Library of Congress Catalog Card Number: 2004116544
Published by
Numata Center for Buddhist Translation and Research
2620 Warring Street
Berkeley, California 94704
Printed in the United States of America
The Buddhist canon is said to contain eighty-four thousand deferent teachings. I believe that this is because the Buddha’s basic approach was to prescribe a deferent treatment for every spiritual ailment, much as a doctor prescribes a deferent medicine for every medical ailment. Thus his teachings were always appropriate for the particular supering individual and for the time at which the teaching was given, and over the ages not one of his prescriptions has failed to relieve the supering to which it was addressed.
Ever since the Buddha’s Great Demise over twenty-five hundred years ago, his message of wisdom and compassion has spread throughout the world. Yet no one has ever attempted to translate the entire Buddhist canon into English throughout the history of Japan. It is my greatest wish to see this done and to make the translations available to the many English-speaking people who have never had the opportunity to learn about the Buddha’s teachings.
Of course, it would be impossible to translate all of the Buddha’s eighty-four thousand teachings in a few years. I have, therefore, had one hundred thirty-nine of the scriptural texts in the prodigious Taisha edition of the Chinese Buddhist canon selected for inclusion in the First Series of this translation project.
It is in the nature of this undertaking that the results are bound to be criticized. Nonetheless, I am convinced that unless someone takes it upon himself or herself to initiate this project, it will never be done. At the same time, I hope that an improved, revised edition will appear in the future.
It is most gratifying that, thanks to the resorts of more than a hundred Buddhist scholars from the East and the West, this monumental project has finally gotten o› the ground. May the rays of the Wisdom of the Compassionate One reach each and every person in the world.
NUMATA Yehan
Founder of the English
August 7, 1991 Tipitaka Project
In January 1982, Dr. NUMATA Yehan, the founder of the Bukkyo Dendo Kyokai (Society for the Promotion of Buddhism), decided to begin the monumental task of translating the complete Taisho edition of the Chinese Tripitaka (Buddhist canon) into the English language. Under his leadership, a special preparatory committee was organized in April 1982. By July of the same year, the Translation Committee of the English Tripitaka was socially convened.
The initial Committee consisted of the following members: (late)
HANAYAMA Shay (Chairperson), (late) BANDo Shojun, ISHIGAMI
Zenno, (late) KAMATA Shigeo, KANAOKA, MAYEDA Sengaku,
NARA Yasuaki, (late) SAYEKI Shinko, (late) SHIOIRI Ryotatsu, TAMARU Noriyoshi, (late) TAMURA Kwansei, and YUYAMA Akira. Assistant members of the Committee were as follows:
KANAZAWA Atsushi, WATANABE Shogo, Rolf Giebel of New Zealand, and Rudy Smet of Belgium.
After holding planning meetings on a monthly basis, the Committee selected one hundred thirty-nine texts for the First Series of translations, an estimated one hundred printed volumes in all. The texts selected are not necessarily limited to those originally written in India but also include works written or composed in China and Japan. While the publication of the First Series proceeds, the texts for the Second Series will be selected from among the remaining works; this process will continue until all the texts, in Japanese as well as in Chinese, have been published.
Frankly speaking, it will take perhaps one hundred years or more to accomplish the English translation of the complete Chinese and Japanese texts, for they consist of thousands of works. Nevertheless, as Dr. NUMATA wished, it is the sincere hope of the Committee that this project will continue unto completion, even after all its present members have passed away.
Editorial Foreword
It must be mentioned here that the final object of this project is not academic fulfillment but the transmission of the teaching of the Buddha to the whole world in order to create harmony and peace among humankind. To that end, the translators have been asked to minimize the use of explanatory notes of the kind that are indispensable in academic texts, so that the attention of general readers will not be unduly distracted from the primary text. Also, a glossary of selected terms is appended to aid in understanding the text.
To my great regret, however, Dr. NUMATA passed away on May 5, 1994, at the age of ninety-seven, entrusting his son, Mr. NUMATA Toshihide, with the continuation and completion of the Translation Project. The Committee also lost its able and devoted Chairperson, Professor HANAYAMA Shayi, on June 16, 1995, at the age of sixty-three. After these severe blows, the Committee elected me, then Vice President of Musashi no Women’s College, to be the Chair in October 1995. The Committee has renewed its determination to carry out the noble intention of Dr. NUMATA, under the leadership of Mr. NUMATA Toshihide.
The present members of the Committee are MAYEDA Sengoku
(Chairperson), ISHIGAMI Zenno, ICHISHIMA Shashin, KANAOKA Siyi, NARA Yasuaki, TAMARU Nori Yoshi, URYÁZU Riisein, YUYAMA Akira, Kenneth K. Tanaka, WATANABE Shogo, and assistant member
YONEZAWA Yoshiyasu.
The Numata Center for Buddhist Translation and Research was established in November 1984, in Berkeley, California, U.S.A., to assist in the publication of the BDK English Tripitaka First Series. In December 1991, the Publication Committee was organized at the Numata Center, with Professor Philip Yampolsky as the Chairperson. To our sorrow, Professor Yampolsky passed away in July 1996. In February 1997, Dr. Kenneth K. Inada became Chair and served in that capacity until August 1999. The current Chair, Dr. Francis H. Cook, has been continuing the work since October 1999. All of the remaining texts will be published under the supervision of this Committee, in close cooperation with the Editorial Committee in Tokyo.
MAYEDA Sengaku
Chairperson
Editorial Committee of
the BDK English Tripi†aka
The Publication Committee shares with the Editorial Committee the responsibility of realizing the vision of Dr. Yehan Numata, founder of Bunkyo Dando Kyoka, the Society for the Promotion of Buddhism. This vision is no less than to make the Buddha’s teaching better known throughout the world, through the translation and publication in English of the entire collection of Buddhist texts compiled in the Tiatasha’s Daikyo, published in Tokyo in the early part of the twentieth century. This huge task is expected to be carried out by several generations of translators and may take as long as a hundred years to complete. Ultimately, the entire canon will be available to anyone who can read English and who wishes to learn more about the teaching of the Buddha.
The present generation of sta› members of the Publication Committee includes Marianne Dresser; Reverend Brian Nagata, president of the Numata Center for Buddhist Translation and Research, Berkeley, California; Eshoo Nasu; and Reverend Kiyoshi Yamashita. The Publication Committee is headquartered at the Numata Center and, working in close cooperation with the Editorial Committee, is responsible for the usual tasks associated with preparing translations for publication.
In October 1999, I became the third chairperson of the Publication Committee, on the retirement of its very capable former chair, Dr. Kenneth K. Inada. The Committee is devoted to the advancement of the Buddha’s teaching through the publication of excellent translations of the thousands of texts that make up the Buddhist canon.
Francis H. Cook
Chairperson
Publication Committee
A Message on the Publication of the English Tipitaka
NUMATA Yehan v
Editorial Foreword MAYEDA Senkaku vii
Publisher’s Foreword Francis H. Cook ix
Zen Texts
Essentials of the Transmission of Mind
Contents 3
Translator’s Introduction John R. McRae 5
Text of Essentials of the Transmission of Mind 9
A Treatise on Letting Zen Flourish to Protect the State
Contents 45
Translator’s Introduction Grishin Tokiwa 47
Text of A Treatise on Letting Zen Flourish to Protect
the State 59
Appendix: List of Works Cited 193
Notes 211
A Universal Recommendation for True Zazen
Translator’s Introduction Osamu Yoshida 241
Text of A Universal Recommendation for True Zazen 251
Advice on the Practice of Zazen
Translator’s Introduction Steven Heine 259
Text of Advice on the Practice of Zazen 263
Glossary 277
Bibliography 287
Contents
Index 291
A List of the Volumes of the BDK English Tripitaka (First Series)
xii
ESSENTIALS OF THE TRANSMISSION OF MIND
Translator’s Introduction 5
Essentials of the Transmission of Mind
Preface 11
The Essentials of the Transmission of Mind (Chuanxinfayao) is a brilliantly insistent work. From beginning to end it repeatedly espouses a single vision of religious training: one’s own mind, just as it is and without any qualification whatsoever, is the Buddha. And to be a Buddha is to act in constant recognition of that fact, without ever generating any thoughts, intentions, or inclinations based on selfish dualistic conceptualization. The text explains this simple doctrine in various deferent ways, concatenating iteration upon iteration in relentless exhortation: the one and only task of true religious practice is to simply cease discriminating between ordinary person and sage, between sentient being and Buddha. The preface to the text describes the mind by means of the following image:
The essence of the mind is empty, and the myriad conditions are all serene. It is like the great orb of the sun climbing into space—the refulgent brilliance gleams in illumination, purity without a single speck of dust. . . . Right now, and that’s it! To activate thoughts is to go against it!
The use of the sun as a metaphor for the enlightened mind is known from the formative early stage of Chan or Zen Buddhism, the East Mountain teaching and Northern school phases of the late seventh and early eighth centuries. A text attributed retrospectively to Hongren (600–74), the Fifth Patriarch of the traditional lineage and the teacher of the legendary Sixth Patriarch, Huning, contains the image of an eternally radiant sun whose illumination is not destroyed but only adventitiously intercepted by the clouds and mists of this world. Just as the sun is always in the sky, even on cloudy and stormy days, so is Buddha-nature always immanent within us.
Essentials of the Transmission of Mind
The admonition to avoid “activating thoughts” is also a hallmark of the early Chan tradition. The ideal was to avoid even the slightest trace of mental activity predicated on the ignorant conception of the self, the notion that “I” and “mine” somehow represent a domain cut o› from the rest of the universe, a domain isolated and protected by the self-defense mechanisms of the ignorant ego. As the Essentials of the Transmission of Mind says,
Just do not generate conceptual interpretations on the basis of those perceptive faculties, do not activate thoughts on the basis of those perceptive faculties, do not look for the mind apart from the perceptive faculties, and do not reject the perceptive faculties in order to grasp the dharmas.
Yet this is not an early Chan text. On the contrary, it is perhaps the earliest reliable doctrinal treatise of the classical phase of Chan that began with Mazu Daoyi (709–88). The central element of “classical” Chan was the use of oral dialogue between teacher and students as the primary mode of spiritual cultivation. We may be sure that trainees in Mazu’s school still engaged in seated meditation (dhyåna), but there was a palpable taboo against even referring to this subject, let alone considering it the quintessential feature of Buddhist spiritual discipline. Instead, the real locus of self-cultivation was to be found in the intimate interaction between teacher and student known as “encounter dialogue.” Some excellent examples of encounter dialogue occur in the Essentials of the Transmission of Mind, but there are also admonitions against being overly attached to the words and sounds of the teachings of the Buddhas and patriarchs. Presumably, by the time this text was compiled there was already a need to warn against excessive dependence on the oral medium.
The Essentials of the Transmission of Mind is based on the teachings of Huambo Xiyu, who is identified in the title of the Triphotons Daikyo text as Chan Master Duanji. Huangbo’s dates are unknown (he probably died in the mid-850s), but he was a disciple of Baizhang Huaihai (749–814), who was in turn a student of Mazu.
Although not necessarily Mazu’s most important disciple, Baizhang
Translator’s Introduction
Huaihai’s retrospective status became higher after his death. Huangbo spent part of his career teaching in Hongzhou, and Zongmi’s use of the term “Hongzhou school” with regard to the teachings of Mazu seems to refer to Huangbo. Hence during his own lifetime Huangbo may well have represented the dominant Mazu lineage.
In later years Huangbo is remembered chiefly through his connection with the great Linji Yixuan (d. 867), who is regarded as the founder of the Linji (Rinzai) school. Although there is no substantial difference between the teachings attributed to Huangbo in the Essentials of the Transmission of Mind and the Recorded Sayings of Linji (Linji lu; translated by J. C. Cleary and published in Three Chan Classics, Numata Center, 1999), in the latter work he appears solely in his status as Linji’s teacher.
The nucleus of the Essentials of the Transmission of Mind was recorded by the literati Pei Xiu (797–870). Pei Xiu came from a family of devout Buddhists with long connections to the Chan tradition, and he was closely associated with the great Huayan and Chan scholar monk Zongmi (780–848). It is interesting to note that Pei Xiu’s evaluation of Huangbo would have been quite unacceptable to Zongmi, who posited sharp distinctions between mainstream and splinter interpretations of the Chan religious message. Zongmi was unready or unable to accept the novel spirit of Mazu’s Hongzhou school, and it is intriguing to wonder whether Huangbo was responding to Pei Xiu’s previous spiritual compatriot in some of the dialogues found in the Essentials of the Transmission of Mind.
Pei Xiu records in his preface that the teachings contained in the Essentials of the Transmission of Mind derive from discussions between him and Huangbo in 842 and 848, and that he sent the transcript of those discussions—as he had done his best to transcribe them—back to Huangbo’s religious community in 857. It is unknown precisely what editorial forces may have been at work after this, but it is certain that material has been added to Pei Xiu’s initial recension. The air of dogged insistence that pervades the text may be due in part to the inclusion of variant renditions of the original (or extremely similar) dialogues.
Essentials of the Transmission of Mind
This translation was originally prepared on the basis of the critical edition and modern Japanese translation in Yoshitaka Irina’s Denshi hays—Nyarko, Zen no gorodki, no. 8 (Tokyo: Chikusa snob, 1969). This was actually a group project headed by Professor Iriya, under whom I worked briefly in the past and who I know to have been a consummate authority on Chinese literature. I have rendered Irina’s headings into English and have included them in the text for the convenience of the reader; these divisions diner from those of the traditional text only in that the first three sections here represent one overly long section in the traditional version. For the purposes of this translation I have generally followed the text found in the Triphotons Daikyo where this divers from Irina’s edition. However, the punctuation of the Taish edition is frequently in error, and I have almost always followed Irina’s lead in the grammatical interpretation of the text. Except at the very early stages of this project, I have not consulted the only extant English translation, John
Blofeld’s The Zen Teaching of Huang Po on the Transmission of Mind (New York: Grove Press, 1958). This is not to imply any undue criticism: Blofeld’s sensitive renditions of the classics of Chinese religious literature have proved to be extremely valuable over the years, but the intervening decades of development in Chan and Zen studies mandate the appearance of new translations.
Given the widespread resorts toward the international dissemination of Buddhism as a modern message of peace and spiritual wellbeing, I am honored to be able to o›er this contribution to the Bukkyo Dendo Kyokai for inclusion in its English Tripitaka series. May it serve as a catalyst for the enlightenment of all sentient beings!
ESSENTIALS OF THE TRANSMISSION OF MIND
By
Duanji
Compiled with a Preface by Pei Xiu of Hedong
There was a great Chan master of the religious name Xiyun, who lived beneath the Eagle Promontory of Mount Huangbo in Gao’an County in Hongzhou. He was a direct successor to the Sixth Patriarch of Caoqi and the religious nephew of Baizhang [Huaihai] and Xitang [Zhizang]. Alone did he gird himself with the inarable seal of the supreme vehicle. He transmitted only the One Mind, other than which there are no other dharmas. The essence of the mind is empty, and the myriad conditions are all serene. It is like the great orb of the sun climbing into space—the refulgent brilliance gleams in illumination, purity without a single speck of dust. The realization [of this mind] is without new or old, without shallow or deep. Its explanation depends neither on doctrinal understanding, on teachers, nor on opening up the doors and windows [of one’s house to let in students]. Right now, and that’s it! To activate thoughts is to go against it! Afterward, [you’ll realize] this is the fundamental Buddha. Therefore, his words were simple, his principles direct, his path steep, and his practice unique. Students from the four directions raced to his mountain, where they looked on his countenance and became enlightened. The sea of followers who came and went always numbered more than a thousand. In the second year of the Huichang [period] (842), when I (Pei Xiu) was stationed in Zhongling (Hongzhou), I invited [Chan Master Huangbo] down from his mountain to the prefectural city. He reposed at Longxingsi, where I inquired of him regarding the path morning and night. In the second year of the Dazhong [period] (848), when I was stationed in Yuanling, I again respectfully welcomed him to my orcs. He resided at Kaiyuansi, and I received the teachings morning and night. After leaving his company I noted down [his teachings], although I managed to get [down in writing] only one or two of every ten things he said. I have girded |
|
myself [with these teachings] as my mind-seal, but I have not dared circulate them. Now, fearing that these inspired ideas might not be known in the future, I have finally copied them out and am giving them to [Huangbo’s] disciples Taizhou and Fajian. They will return to Guangtangsi on Mount Huangbo, where they will inquire of the congregation of elders as to whether [what I have written] is in accord with what they formerly heard themselves.
Preface done this eighth day of the tenth month of the eleventh year of the Dazhong [period] (857) of the Great Tang
The master said to [Pei] Xiu: The Buddhas and all the sentient beings are only the One Mind—there are no other dharmas. Since beginningless time, this mind has never been generated and has never been extinguished, is neither blue nor yellow, is without shape and without characteristic, does not belong to being and nonbeing, does not consider new or old, is neither long nor short, and is neither large nor small. It transcends all limitations, names, traces, and correlations. It in itself—that’s it! To activate thoughts is to go against it!
It is like space, which is boundless and immeasurable.
It is only this One Mind that is Buddha; there is no distinction between Buddhas and sentient beings. However, sentient beings are attached to characteristics and seek outside themselves. Seeking it, they lose it even more. Sending the Buddha in search of the Buddha, grasping the mind with the mind, they may exhaust themselves in striving for an entire eon but will never get it. They do not understand that if they cease their thoughts and end their thinking, the Buddha will automatically be present.
This mind is the Buddha; the Buddha is the sentient being. When it is sentient being, the mind is not lessened; and when it is
[one of] the Buddhas, the mind is not increased. And as for the six perfections (påramitås) and the myriad practices, and the types of merit as numerous as the [sands of the] Ganges River—[every sentient being is] fundamentally succedent in these and requires no further cultivation. If the conditions occur then give forth [one’s spiritual charity]; when the conditions cease then be silent.
If you are not able to believe resolutely that this [mind] is the Buddha but attempt spiritual training while attached to characteristics, your quest for spiritual ecstasy will be entirely based on false thoughts and contrary to the enlightenment [of Buddhahood]. This mind is the Buddha; there is neither any separate Buddha nor any separate mind.
This mind is bright and pure and like unto space, without a single bit of characteristic. To rouse the mind and activate thoughts is to go against the essence of the Dharma and to be attached to characteristics. Since beginningless time, there has never been any Buddha attached to characteristics (i.e., any Buddha associated with or defined by phenomenal characteristics). [The teaching that one can] cultivate the six perfections and the myriad practices in order to achieve Buddhahood—this is the progressive [approach to Buddhahood]. Since beginningless time, there has never been a Buddha [who achieved that state] progressively. Just be enlightened to the One Mind and there will not be the slightest dharma that can be attained—this is the true Buddha.
The One Mind is underestimated in Buddhas and sentient beings. It is like space, with no heterogeneity and no deterioration. It is like the great orb of the sun that illuminates all beneath the four heavens: when the sun rises its brightness extends throughout all the heavens, but space itself does not become bright; when the sun sets darkness extends throughout all the heavens, but space itself does not become dark. The realms of bright and dark besiege each other but the nature of space is expansive and unchanging. The mind of Buddhas and sentient beings is also like this.
If you conceive of the Buddha in terms of the characteristics of purity, brilliance, and liberation, and if you conceive of sentient beings in terms of the characteristics of impurity, darkness, and samsara—if your understanding is such as this, then you will never attain bodhi even after passing through eons [of religious practice] as numerous as the sands of the Ganges River. This is because you are attached to characteristics. There is only this One Mind and not the least bit of dharma that can be attained.
This mind is Buddha. Trainees these days are unenlightened to this essence of the mind, and they generate mind on top of mind, looking outward in search of the Buddha, and undertaking spiritual cultivation in attachment to characteristics. These are all bad methods (dharmas) and not the path to bodhi.
To make overrings to all the Buddhas of the ten directions is inferior to making overrings to a single religious person with no-mind. Why? No-mind refers to the absence of all [states of] mind. The essence of suchness is unmoving like wood or stone within and unhindered like space without. It is without subject and object, without location, without characteristic, and without gain or loss. Those who would proceed [to enlightenment] are unwilling to enter this Dharma, fearing that they will fall into the void with nowhere to alight. Therefore they gaze upon the precipice and retreat, then they all seek widely after conceptual knowledge. Therefore those who seek after conceptual knowledge are as [numerous as strands of] hair while those who are enlightened are as [uncommon as] horns.
Manju stands for principle and Samanta Bhadra stands for practice. “Principle” refers to the principle of unhindered true emptiness, while “practice” refers to the practice of the inexhaustible transcendence of characteristics. Avalo kite stands for great compassion, and Mahåsthåmapråpta stands for great wisdom. Valakati means “pure name.” “Pure” is [essential] nature, and “name” is characteristic; he is called Pure Name because of the nonda› eventuation of nature and characteristic.
[The virtues] typified by the various great bodhisattvas are possessed by all people; they do not transcend the One Mind, so if you are enlightened to that then you’ve got it. Trainees nowadays do not look within their own minds for enlightenment but become attached to characteristics and grasp realms outside the mind. This is totally contrary to the enlightenment [of Buddhahood].
[Take the] sands of the Ganges River: the Buddha has preached that when the Buddhas and bodhisattvas, Indras, Brahmås, and the various gods walk on them, the sands are not happy. And when cattle, sheep, worms, and ants step on them, the sands are not angry. When there is the fragrance of precious treasures, the sands 380b do not lust after them. And when there is the stench of excrement and urine, the sands are not displeased.
This mind is the mind of no-mind. Transcending all characteristics, there is yet no difference between sentient beings and Buddhas. If you can just [attain] no-mind, then that is the ultimate [state of enlightenment]. If a trainee does not instantly [attain] no-mind but spends successive eons in cultivation, he will never achieve enlightenment. He will be fettered by the meritorious practices of the three vehicles and will not attain liberation.
However, there is fast and slow in realizing this mind: there are those who attain no-mind in a single moment of thought after hearing the Dharma; those who attain no-mind after [passing through] the ten faiths, the ten abodes, the ten practices, and the ten conversions; and those who attain no-mind after [passing through] the ten stages [of the bodhisattva]. In spite of the length of time it takes them to [attain it, once they] reside in no-mind there is nothing else to be cultivated or realized. Truly without anything to be attained, true and not false [is no-mind]. Whether it is attained in a single moment of thought or at the tenth stage [of the bodhisattva], its creaky is identical. There are no further gradations of profundity, only the useless striving of successive eons. The performance of good and evil is entirely [within the domain of] characteristics. Being attached to characteristics and doing evil, one uselessly experiences samsara. Being attached to characteristics and doing good, one uselessly experiences laborious supering. Neither alternative is equal to recognizing the fundamental Dharma at a word [from a true teacher].
These dharmas are the mind; there are no dharmas outside of the mind. This mind is the dharmas; outside of the dharmas there is no mind. The mind is of itself no-mind, yet it is without no-mind. If you take the mind as no-mind, you make the mind into something that exists. Just conform with it in silence, ceasing the various [types of] conceptualization. Therefore it is said, “the way of words is cut o›, and the activities of the mind cease.”
This mind is the fundamentally pure Buddha, which is possessed by both the Buddhas and [ordinary] people. The wriggling insects and all that has life, the Buddhas and bodhisattvas—these are identical and not deferent. It is only through false thoughts and discrimination that [sentient beings] create various types of karmic fruits.
There is truly not a single thing in this fundamental Buddha. It is transparent and serene, brilliantly wondrous, at ease, and nothing more. To become profoundly enlightened into [this truth]— right now, and that’s it! Perfect and succedent, nothing is lacking.
One may cultivate energetically for three eons, passing through the various stages. Then in a single moment of realization one realizes only that originally one was oneself a Buddha, with not a single thing that could possibly be added. Looking back on the resorts of those successive eons, [one realizes] they are all false activities of the dream [of delusion]. Therefore, the Tathågata has said, “I am really without anything that is attained in the ultimate bodhi. If there were something that was attained, then Dipankara Buddha would not have conferred the prediction [of future Buddhahood] on me.” He has also said, “These dharmas are universally ‘same,’ with neither high nor low; this is called bodhi.”
This fundamentally pure mind—whether in sentient beings or Buddha, in world-systems or the mountains and rivers, in that with characteristics and that without characteristics—throughout all the realms of the ten directions, it is always universally same, without the characteristics of self and other.
This fundamentally pure mind is always perfectly bright and uniformly radiant. People of the world are not enlightened and only recognize their perceptive faculties as mind. Since their [understanding] is obscured by their perceptive faculties, they therefore do not witness the pure and bright fundamental essence. If one can only right now achieve no-mind, the fundamental essence will appear of itself. It is like the great orb of the sun risen in the sky, which illuminates uniformly throughout the ten directions without being hindered at all.
Therefore, trainees only recognize their perceptive faculties and act [accordingly]. But if they render those perceptive faculties void, so that the pathways of the mind are eliminated, they will be without any way to enter [into enlightenment]. They should simply recognize the fundamental mind within their perceptive faculties. Although the fundamental mind does not belong to those perceptive faculties, neither is it separate from the perceptive faculties. Just do not generate conceptual interpretations on the basis of those perceptive faculties, do not activate thoughts on the basis of those perceptive faculties, do not look for the mind apart from the perceptive faculties, and do not reject the perceptive faculties in order to grasp the dharmas. Neither identical nor separate, neither abiding nor attached, it is universally autonomous, and there is nowhere that is not the place of enlightenment (bodhimaöa).
People of the world hear it said that the Buddhas all transmit the Dharma of mind, and they take it that there is a Dharma apart from the mind that can be realized and grasped. They search for the Dharma with the mind, not understanding that the mind is the Dharma and the Dharma is the mind. You cannot search for the mind with the mind—you will pass through a thousand and ten thousand eons [trying] and never get it. [Such useless resorts] are not equal to right now achieving no-mind—this is the fundamental Dharma.
It is like the warrior who was deluded regarding the pearl within his forehead and who searched for it elsewhere. He traveled about all the ten directions but was ultimately unable to recover it, whereupon a wise person pointed it out and he [then] saw for himself that the pearl [was on his forehead] as it had always been. Thus it is that students of the Way are deluded as to their own fundamental mind, not recognizing it as Buddha. They search for it outside [of their own minds], generating artful practices and depending on graduated increases in realization. They pass through eons of diligent seeking but never achieve enlightenment. This is not equal to right now achieving no-mind.
If one definitively understands that all dharmas are fundamentally nonexistent and that there is nothing that can be attained, with no reliance and no abiding, no subject and no object, without activating false thoughts—this is to realize bodhi. And when one realizes enlightenment, this is only to realize the fundamental Buddha of the mind. To pass through eons of resort is nothing but useless cultivation. Just as when the warrior attained his pearl he merely attained the pearl that was originally on his forehead, and this had nothing to do with his ability to seek elsewhere. Therefore the Buddha has said, “I have truly not attained anything in the ultimate bodhi.” Out of the fear that people will not believe does he (i.e., the Buddha) invoke that which is seen with the five eyes and that which is said in the five [types of] speech. This is true and not false; this is the cardinal meaning.
You trainees should have no doubts. It is the four elements that make up your bodies, but the four elements are without a self and the self is without a master. Therefore you should understand that this [human] body is without self and without master.
It is the five skandhas that make up the mind, but the five skandhas are without a self and without a master. Therefore you should understand that the mind is without self and without master. The six senses, six types of sense objects, and the six consciousnesses, which combine together in generation and extinction, are also like this. These eighteen realms are empty, they are all empty. There is only the fundamental mind, which is expansive and pure.
[Gloss:] There is consciousness eating and wisdom eating. To consider the hunger and decay (lit., “boils”) of the body of the four elements as [personal] disasters and to nourish it as appropriate, without generating greed or attachment—this is called wisdom eating. To willfully grasp at flavors and falsely generate discrimination, only seeking to please the palate and never generating [feelings of] revulsion and detachment—this is called consciousness eating.
¸råvakas attain enlightenment on the basis of [the Buddha’s] voice, and so they are called “auditors.” They simply fail to comprehend that their own minds generate [conceptual] interpretations on the basis of the oral teaching. Whether through [the Buddha’s demonstration of] supramundane powers or through his super-
natural characteristics, words, or actions, they hear about bodhi and nirvana, cultivate over three immeasurable eons, and achieve the enlightenment of Buddhahood. All such people belong to the path of Ωråvakas, and so they are called Ωråvaka-Buddhas.
To simply right now suddenly comprehend that one’s own mind is fundamentally Buddha, without there being a single dharma one can attain and without there being a single practice one can cultivate—this is the unsurpassable enlightenment, this is the Buddha of suchness. The only thing trainees should fear is having a single thought that [such things] exist, which is to be alienated from enlightenment (the Way). For each successive moment of thought to be without characteristics, for each successive moment of thought to be unconditioned—this is Buddha.
Trainees who wish to achieve Buddhahood [should understand that] it is completely useless to study any of the Buddhist teachings—just study nonspeaking and nonattachment. Nonspeaking is for the mind (i.e., moments of thought) not to be generated, and nonattachment is for the mind not to be extinguished. Neither generating nor extinguishing—this is Buddhahood. The eighty four thousand teachings are directed at the eighty-four thousand afflictions and are only ways to convert and entice [sentient beings into true religious practice]. Fundamentally all the teachings are nonexistent; transcendence is the Dharma, and those who understand transcendence are Buddhas. By simply transcending all the afflictions, there is no dharma that can be attained.
Trainees who want to understand the essential determination [of the teaching] should simply not be attached to a single thing in the mind. To say that the true Dharma body (dharmakaya) of the Buddha is like space is to say metaphorically that the Dharma body is space and space the Dharma body. Ordinary people say that the Dharma body pervades space and that space contains the Dharma body, not understanding that space is the Dharma body and the Dharma body is space.
If you say definitively that space exists, then space is not the Dharma body. If you say definitively that the Dharma body exists, then the Dharma body is not space. Simply refrain from creating an interpretation [of the existence] of space, and space will be the Dharma body. Refrain from creating an interpretation [of the existence] of the Dharma body, and the Dharma body will be space.
Space and the Dharma body are without any dissimilar characteristics (lit., “characteristics of differentiation”). The Buddhas and sentient beings are without any dissimilar characteristics, samsara and nirvana are without any dissimilar characteristics, and the afflictions and bodhi are without any dissimilar characteristics.
To transcend all characteristics is to be a Buddha. Ordinary people grasp at [their sensory] realms, while religious persons grasp at the mind. For the mind and the realms to both be forgotten is the True Dharma. To forget the realms is relatively easy, but to forget the mind is extremely di‡cult. People do not dare to forget the mind, fearing that they will fall into the void (i.e., the emptiness of space) with nowhere to grab hold. They do not understand that the void is without void, that there is only one true Dharma body.
This numinous awareness nature has since beginningless time been of the same lifespan as space. It has never been generated and never extinguished, never existent and never nonexistent, never defiled and never pure, never disquieted and never serene, and never young and never old. It is without location, without interior and exterior, without enumeration, without shape, without form, and without sound. It cannot be seen and cannot be sought after. It cannot be recognized with wisdom, cannot be grasped with words, cannot be conformed to realms or things, and cannot be arrived at with [religious] resort.
The Buddhas and bodhisattvas and all beings that harbor life, [even down to] the wriggling insects, all share this same great nirvana nature. This nature is the mind, mind is the Buddha, and
the Buddha is the Dharma.
If you depart from the true for a single moment, all is false thoughts.
You cannot seek the mind with the mind, you cannot seek the Buddha with the Buddha, and you cannot seek the Dharma with the Dharma. Therefore, trainees should achieve no-mind right now. Simply conform with [the mind] in silence—if you try to use the mind you will miss it.
To transmit the mind with the mind—this is the correct view. I warn you, do not look outward and chase after realms but recognize that the realms are the mind. [To commit this error would be] to accept the thief as one’s own child.
Due to the existence of greed, anger, and delusion there are established morality (Ωala), meditation (samådhi), and wisdom (prajñå). Fundamentally there are no afflictions, so how can there be bodhi? Therefore the patriarch has said, “The Buddha has preached all the dharmas in order to eliminate all [states of] mind. If I am without all [the states of] mind, what use is there for all the dharmas?”
The fundamentally pure Buddha has not a single thing attached to it. It is likened to space, and even if one [attempted to] adorn it with immeasurable precious treasures, there would never be any place to make them stay. Buddha-nature is identical to space, and even if one [attempted to] adorn it with limitless [feats of] merit and wisdom, there would never be any place to make them stay.
It is only that if one is deluded as to the fundamental nature one will become increasingly unable to see.
The so-called teaching of the mind-ground is that the myriad dharmas are all established in dependence on the mind. If a [sensory] realm is encountered they exist, and if there is no realm then they do not exist. You must not jump to the conclusion that the pure nature is a [type of] realm. Sayings such as, “the functions of meditation and wisdom are mirrored in explicit clarity” and “the perceptive functions are serene and resplendent” are all interpretations of realms and may only be used as provisional teachings for those of mediocre and lesser abilities. If you wish to experience realization yourself, you must not create any of these interpretations.
If all the realms and dharmas are to be buried somewhere, bury them in the earth of being. To simply not create views of being and nonbeing with regard to all dharmas is to see the [true nature of all] dharmas.
On the first day of the ninth month, the master addressed [Pei] Xiu: Ever since Great Master [Bodhi]dharma came to China, [his followers in the Chan school] have preached only the One Mind and have transmitted only the One Dharma. Transmitting the Buddha with the Buddha, [we] have not preached about any other Buddha. Transmitting the Dharma with the Dharma, [we] have not preached about any other Dharma. This Dharma is the Dharma that cannot be preached about, and this Buddha is the Buddha that cannot be grasped. They are the fundamentally pure mind.
There is only this one reality, and any others are not true.
Prajñå is wisdom, and this wisdom is the fundamental mind that is without characteristics.
Ordinary people do not move toward enlightenment solely because they willfully [exercise] the six sensory capabilities and thus pass through the six modes of existence.
If a trainee considers birth and death for but a single moment he will fall into the way of Måra. If he activates the various ascriptive views for a single moment, he will fall into the way of heresy. If he perceives there to be generation [of the elements of reality] and moves toward [a state of] extinction, he will fall into the way of the nråvakas. If he does not perceive there to be generation but only perceives extinction, he will fall into the way of the solitary enlightened ones (pratyekabuddhas).
The dharmas were originally not generated, and neither are they now extinguished. Do not activate the two views, and neither detest nor enjoy [things]. All the myriad dharmas are only the One Mind, and after [one realizes this] they become the vehicle of the Buddhas. Ordinary people all chase after the [sensory] realms and generate the mind, so that the mind [has feelings of] enjoyment and detestation. If you would have there be no realms, then you should forget the mind. When the mind is forgotten, then the realms are empty, and when the realms are empty the mind is extinguished. If you do not forget the mind but only eliminate the realms, because the realms cannot be eliminated you will only increase your [inner] agitation. Therefore, [you should understand
that] the myriad dharmas are only the mind. The mind is also imperceptible (lit., “unattainable”), so how can it possibly be sought?
Those who study prajñå do not perceive there to be a single dharma that can be attained. They eradicate all consideration of the three vehicles—there being only a single truth, which cannot be realized. Those who say they can realize and can attain [enlightenment] are all people of great conceitful Ness. All the [five thousand Hinayanists] who brushed o› their robes and left the Lotus assembly were devotees such as this. Therefore, the Buddha has said, “I have truly not attained anything in bodhi.” There is only silent conforming [with the mind].
When an ordinary person is about to die, he should merely contemplate the five skandhas to be all empty and the four elements to be without self. The true mind is without characteristics and neither goes nor comes: when one is born the [mind]-nature does not come [into one], and when one dies neither does the nature go [anywhere]. Peaceful, perfect, and serene, the mind and its realms are identical. If one can only right now suddenly achieve comprehension in this fashion, you will not be fettered by the three periods of time (i.e., past, present, and future) and will be a person who has transcended the world. You must definitely avoid having even the slightest bit of intentionality. If you see Buddhas of excellent characteristics (i.e., in their resplendent superhuman forms) coming to greet [and escort you to the Pure Land], with all the various phenomena [involved in such visions], then have no thought of following them. If you see various phenomena with evil characteristics, neither should you have any thoughts of fear. Simply forget your mind and identify yourself with the dharma dhåtu, and you will attain autonomy. This is the essential gist [of my teaching].
On the eighth day of the tenth month, the master addressed [Pei] Xiu: The “transformation city” refers to the two vehicles, the ten stages, and the [attainments of] equivalent enlightenment and wondrous enlightenment, all of which are teachings established provisionally in order to entice [sentient beings into undertaking spiritual training]. All of these are the transformation city. The “location of the treasure” is the treasure of the true mind, the fundamental Buddha, the self-nature. This treasure does not pertain to mental calculation and it cannot be established [anywhere as a discrete entity]. It is without Buddha and without sentient beings, without subject and without object, so where could there be any [transformation] city? If you ask whether this is not already the transformation city, then where is the location of the treasure? It is impossible to point out the location of the treasure. If it could be pointed out, then it would have a location and would not be the true location of the treasure. Therefore, it is said only that it is close. It cannot definitively be spoken of, but if you just conform with it in your entire being then that is it.
They who are called icchantikas are those without faith. All the sentient beings of the six modes of existence, even including those of the two [Hinayana] vehicles (i.e., the paths of the Ωråvakas and the pratyekabuddhas), have no faith in the existence of the fruit of Buddhahood. They all may be called icchantikas who have cut o› their good roots. Bodhisattvas are those who have profound faith in the existence of Buddhism and do not perceive the existence of Mahayana and Hinayana, Buddhas and sentient beings, all of whom are of the same identical Dharma-nature. These may be called icchantikas of good roots.
In general, those who are enlightened on the basis of the oral teaching are called Ωråvakas. Those who are enlightened through their contemplation of causality are called solitary enlightened ones. If one is not enlightened with respect to one’s own mind, even if one attains Buddhahood one may be called a Ωråvaka-Buddha.
Trainees frequently become enlightened to the teachings and are not enlightened to the mind. Although they pass through eons of cultivation, this is never the fundamental Buddha. If one is not enlightened to the mind but is enlightened to the teachings, this is to belittle the mind and emphasize the teachings. Ultimately, this is to chase after a dirt clod [like a dog] because one has forgotten the fundamental mind. Just conform yourself with the fundamental mind and seek not for the dharmas, for the mind is the dharmas. Ordinary people frequently consider that the [sensory] 382a realms hinder the mind, or [consider] that phenomena hinder the absolute. They always want to escape from the realms in order to pacify the mind, to eliminate phenomena to reify the absolute. They do not understand that it is the mind that hinders the realms and the absolute that hinders phenomena. Simply make the mind empty, and the realms will be empty of themselves. Simply make the absolute serene, and phenomena will be serene of themselves.
Do not mistakenly [attempt to] manipulate the mind.
Ordinary people are frequently unwilling to empty their minds, fearing that they will fall into the void. They do not understand that their own minds are fundamentally empty. The foolish person eliminates phenomena without eliminating the mind, whereas the wise person eliminates the mind without eliminating phenomena. The mind of the bodhisattva is like space, which is completely detached from everything.
One should lust after none of the blessings and merit that may be created [through virtuous action]. However, there are three levels of detachment. To be completely detached from everything within and without one’s body and mind, so that one is like space in having nothing to which one is attached but henceforth responding to beings in every direction, with subject and object forgotten: this is great detachment.
If on the one hand one undertakes religious practice and dispenses merit and on the other hand dispenses detachment, without any thoughts of longing: this is medium detachment.
If one extensively cultivates the various types of good while having longings but hears the Dharma and understands emptiness and thereby comes to be without attachment: this is small detachment.
Great detachment is like the flame of a candle that is in front of you, there being no further delusion or enlightenment. Medium detachment is like a candle that is o› to one side, which may be bright or dark. Small detachment is like a candle that is behind you, so that you cannot see the hole [into which you may fall].
Therefore, the bodhisattva’s mind is like space, which is completely detached from everything. “Past mental states are imperceptible”: this is detachment from the past. “Present mental states are imperceptible”: this is detachment from the present. “Future mental states are imperceptible”: this is detachment from the future. This is called complete detachment from the three periods of time.
Ever since the Tathågata conferred the Dharma on KåΩyapa, [his successors] have used the mind to seal the mind, and the minds [of all those successors] have not deterred [from one another]. If an [ordinary] seal were axed to emptiness (i.e., space), the seal would not create a [written] character. If the seal [of the mind] were axed to a thing, the seal would not create the Dharma. Therefore, the mind is used to seal the mind, and the minds [of all the successors] have not deterred. The conjunction of sealer and sealed (i.e., teacher and student) is difficult, so those who attain [the transmission] are few. However, the mind is without mind, and attainment is without attainment.
The Buddha has three bodies. The Dharma body preaches the
Dharma of the transparency of the self-nature, the reward body (saµbhogakåya) preaches the Dharma of the purity of all things, and the transformation body (nirmå√akåya) preaches the Dharma of the six perfections and the myriad practices. The Dharma body’s preaching of the Dharma cannot be sought with word, voice, shape, or [written] character. It is without anything that is preached and without anything that is realized, but is only the transparency of the self-nature. Therefore it is said, “To be without any Dharma that can be preached is called to preach the Dharma.”
The reward body and transformation body both respond [to beings] and manifest [their teachings] in accordance with [the abilities of the] persons they teach. The Dharmas that they preach are also responses to the [diverting] roots [of sentient beings] in accordance with phenomena and are used to convert [people to Buddhism], and none [of these teachings] are the True Dharma. Therefore it is said, “The reward and transformation [bodies] are not the true Buddha and do not preach the Dharma.”
In the saying “identically the one vital brilliance, divided into six that combine together,” the one vital brilliance is the One Mind and the six that combine together are the six sensory capabilities. These six sensory capabilities each combine with sense objects: the eye combines with forms, the ear combines with sounds, the nose combines with fragrances, the tongue combines with tastes, the body combines with tactile sensations, and the mind combines with dharmas. Between [these senses and sensations] are generated the six consciousnesses. These are the eighteen realms. If you comprehend that the eighteen realms do not exist, [you will understand that] the six [sensory capabilities] combine together to form a 382b single vital brilliance. The single vital brilliance is the mind.
Trainees all understand this but they are merely unable to avoid forming the interpretation of the single vital brilliance and the combining together of the six [sensory capabilities]. They are thus fettered by the Dharma and do not conform themselves with the fundamental mind.
When the Tathågata was in the world he wanted to preach the True Dharma of the One Vehicle. However, sentient beings did not have faith and reviled [the Dharma], thus drowning themselves in the sea of supering. If [the Buddha] had not preached anything at all he would have fallen into [the transgression of] parsimony and would not have [been able to] dispense entirely his wondrous enlightenment on behalf of sentient beings. Thus he adopted skillful means and preached the existence of three vehicles. These vehicles include [both the] Great [Vehicle] (Mahayana) and Small [Vehicle] (Hinayana) and their attainments are shallow or profound, but they are all other than the fundamental Dharma.
Therefore it is said, “There is only the enlightenment (Way) of the One Vehicle; the other two are not true.” However, [the Buddha] was ultimately unable to manifest the Dharma of the One Mind, so he called KåΩyapa to share his Dharma seat and individually conveyed to him the preaching of the Dharma that is of the One Mind and which transcends words. He had this single branch of the Dharma carried out separately [from the rest of Buddhism]. If you are able to achieve conformance with and enlightenment to [the One Mind], then you have attained the stage of Buddhahood.
8. On Cultivating Enlightenment
Question: What is enlightenment, and how should it be cultivated?
The master said: What sort of thing is enlightenment that you would want to cultivate it?
Question: Masters all over China (lit., “in the various locations”) have taught that one should practice Chan and study enlightenment. What about this?
The master said: These are sayings to entice those of dull capabilities and are totally unreliable.
[The questioner] said: If these are sayings to entice those of dull capabilities, then I wonder what Dharma would be preached to entice people of superior capabilities?
The master said: If [you are] a person of superior capabilities, why would you seek it through someone else (i.e., through the words of a teacher)? Even the self is unattainable, so how could there possibly be any other Dharma you could figure on? Have you not seen it said within the teachings, “What can the status of the dharmas be?”
[The questioner] said: If it is like this, then seeking is entirely unnecessary.
The master said: Since that is the way it is, you can save some energy.
[The questioner] said: If it is like this, is not everything annihilated and [turned into] nonbeing?
The master said: Who has made it into nonbeing? What is it that you would want to seek?
[The questioner] said: If you do not allow me to seek it, why do you then say not to eradicate it?
The master said: If you are not going to seek for it, then stop. But who is making you eradicate [anything]? You see the space right in front of you—how could you eradicate it?
[The questioner] said: Can this Dharma possibly be identical to space?
The master said: When has space said to you that it is identical to and deferent from [anything]? If I were to preach a bit like that, you would generate a [conceptualized] interpretation about it.
[The questioner] said: Should not one have people generate interpretations?
The master said: I have never caused you decultures [in the past, so why do you pester me now]? The point is, interpretations pertain to ratiocination, and the generation of ratiocination means departure from wisdom.
[The questioner] said: So one is not to generate ratiocination about this, is that right?
The master said: If no one generates ratiocination, who is to say it is right?
Question: When I said something to you just now, why did you say “you’ve misspoken”?
The master said: You are unable to speak but how could you be at fault?
10. A Monk Is Someone Who has Ceased Thinking
Question: All of your many sayings up to now have been explanations based on relative distinctions, and nowhere have you indicated any True Dharma to us.
The master said: The True Dharma is without confusion but your question itself will generate confusion. What True Dharma 382c are you seeking?
[The questioner] said: If my question itself will generate confusion, what about your answer?
The master said: You should get something to reflect your face.
Don’t worry about others.
[The master] also said: You are just like a stupid dog—if you see something moving you bark, not even distinguishing whether it is just the wind blowing the plants and trees.
[The master] also said: In our Chan school, ever since it was transmitted from previous [generations], never have people been taught to seek after knowledge or to seek after [conceptual] interpretations. We have only said that one should study enlightenment, and even this is a phrase that is meant [only] to entice [people into religious practice]. Even though [this phrase is used], enlightenment cannot be studied. The study of [conceptual] interpretations in the context of ratiocination will on the contrary create delusion regarding enlightenment.
Enlightenment is without location and is called the mind of the Mahayana. This mind does not reside within, without, or in an intermediate [location]. It is truly without location. The most important thing is not to form conceptual interpretations and merely speak on the basis of your current ratiocination. When your ratiocination is exhausted, [you will realize that] the mind is without location.
Enlightenment is naturally true and is fundamentally without names. It is only that people of the world do not recognize it and remain deluded within their ratiocination. The Buddhas then appear [in the world] to destroy their misconceptions. I am afraid that you people do not comprehend but provisionally establish the name “enlightenment.” You must not generate interpretations so as to maintain this name. Therefore it is said, “attain the fish and forget the trap.”
With body and mind as they are, penetrate enlightenment and recognize the mind. It is because you penetrate the fundamental source that you are called a monk. The fruit of monkhood is achieved through stopping thought, not by study. How could you ever succeed in your present [attempts to] seek the mind with the mind, to rely on someone else’s teachings, and to try to get [enlightenment] merely by study?
The ancients were astute, so that by hearing just a single word [of the True Dharma] they immediately ceased studying. Therefore they were called “inactive and aimless religious persons who had ceased studying.” People nowadays only want to attain great knowledge and many [deferent] interpretations [of the Dharma], and they seek extensively the meanings of texts. They say they are practicing but they do not understand that great knowledge, and many interpretations will on the contrary form a barrier [to enlightenment]. It is like feeding a child great amounts of milk and yogurt while being completely unaware of whether or not he can digest it. Trainees in the three vehicles are all of this sort—they all may be referred to as people who consume but do not digest [the Dharma]. As it is said, “conceptual interpretations that are undigested turn entirely to poison”—all [such resorts] are to be totally attached to samsara. There is no such [mode of attainment] within true suchness. Therefore it is said, “There is no such sword within my king’s storehouses.”
All of the interpretations you have [left over] from the past should be completely disposed of and eliminated, so that one is without discrimination: this is the tathågatagarbha of emptiness. In the tathågatagarbha there exists not even a bit of dust—and this is for “the Dharma King Who Destroys Existence to appear in the world.”
[¸åkyamuni Buddha] has also said, “There was not the slightest Dharma for me to attain from Dapaµkara Buddha.” These words were aimed solely at eliminating your ratiocination and conceptual interpretations. To simply meld together superficial and intrinsic [aspects of oneself], with ratiocination exhausted and entirely without dependency—this is to be a person beyond all airs.
The teachings of the three vehicles are only medicines appropriate for [deferent] individuals, which have been preached as appropriate [in each situation. These teachings] have been administered as the occasion warrants, and 383a predation of a single [individual] case or a single teaching. Why? There is truly no definitive Dharma that the Tathågata can preach. In our school we do not discuss these matters (i.e., the doctrines of Buddhism). You should simply understand that we do nothing else but stop the mind. There is no use in thinking about this and that.
Question: For some time everyone has been saying “this mind is the Buddha,” but I wonder which mind it is that is the Buddha? The master said: How many minds do you have?
[The questioner] said: Is it that the ordinary mind is the Buddha, or that the sagely mind is the Buddha?
The master said: Where is it that you have these ordinary and sagely minds?
[The questioner] said: At present it is taught that within the three vehicles there are ordinary and sagely [minds]. How can you say these do not exist?
The master said: Within the three vehicles it is clearly said to you that the [concept of] ordinary and sagely minds is false. You misunderstand this now and insist on grasping onto [the mind as something that] exists, making that which is empty into something real. How can this [understanding] be anything but false? And since it is false you are deluded regarding the mind. You should simply eliminate the ratiocination of the ordinary [mind] and the [enlightened] realm of the sage—there is not any separate Buddha outside of the mind. The patriarch [Bodhidharma] came from the west to point out directly that all persons are in their entireties the Buddha. You fail to recognize this now but grasp onto the ordinary and the sagely, racing after the external and in turn being deluded as to your own mind. Therefore, I say to you: this mind is the Buddha.
To generate a single moment of ratiocination is to fall into a deferent realm. Since beginningless time, [this truth] has been no deferent from how it is today; there is no other Dharma. Therefore this is called the attainment of [the stages of] equivalent and correct enlightenment.
[The questioner] said: What do you mean when you say “is [identical to]”?
The master said: What meaning are you looking for? If there is the slightest bit of meaning, this is to be deferent from the mind.
[The questioner] said: You just said “Since beginningless time [this truth] has been no deferent from how it is today.” What did you mean?
The master said: It is only because of your seeking that you diver from it. If you don’t seek for it, then how could you be deferent?
[The questioner] said: Then if it [means] “not deferent,” why do you say “is”?
The master said: If you do not believe in the ordinary and the sagely, who will say “is” to you? If “is” is not “is,” then the mind is also not the mind. If the mind and “is” are both forgotten, where will you try to look for them?
Question: If the false is able to obstruct one’s mind, I wonder how one is then able to expel the false?
The master said: To activate the false in order to expel the false is to create the false. The false is fundamentally without basis, and it only exists because of discrimination. If you simply eliminate your ratiocination regarding ordinary and sagely you will naturally be without the false. Then how could you try to expel it? To be entirely without even the slightest bit of dependency is called “I have cast o› both arms and will certainly attain Buddhahood.”
[The questioner] said: If one is without dependency, how can [the mind of the patriarchs] be transmitted?
The master said: The mind is transmitted with the mind.
[The questioner] said: If the mind is transmitted, how can you say that the mind is also nonexistent?
The master said: To not attain a single dharma is called the transmission of the mind. If you comprehend this mind, then there is no mind and no dharma.
[The questioner] said: If there is no mind and no dharma, why do you call it a transmission?
The master said: You have heard me say “transmission of the mind” and have taken it that there is something that can be attained. It is for this reason that the patriarch said, “When one recognizes the mind-nature, it should be called inconceivable. Clearly and distinctly without anything that is attained, when one attains it one does not speak of it as understanding.” If I taught
383b this to you how would you be able to understand it?
13. Mind and Realms, Face and Mirror
Question: But can space, which is right here, be anything but a realm [of the mind]? How could you see the mind without pointing at its realms?
The master said: What mind is it that is causing you to look at
the realms? If you are able to see [something], this is only the mind that reflects the realms. If you use a mirror to reflect your face, even if you are able to see your features clearly this is fundamentally only an image. How can it have anything to do with you?
[The questioner] said: If one does not depend on [the process of] reflection, when will one be able to see [one’s face]?
The master said: If you are going to depend on causes then you will always be dependent on things, and when will you ever comprehend? Haven’t you had anyone say to you, “If I open my hand to show it to you, there is nothing there”? It would be a useless waste of resort to explain it to you several thousand times.
[The questioner] said: If someone recognizes it completely, wouldn’t there be no things to reflect?
The master said: If there were no things, then what use would reflection be? Don’t talk in your sleep with your eyes open!
[The master] entered the hall and said: Rather than the hundred varieties of erudition, to be without seeking is primary. A religious person is someone who does nothing and is truly without the numerous types of mind. There is also no meaning that can be preached.
There’s nothing else, so you may go.
Question: What is the conventional truth?
The master said: Why should I explain the tangled [predicament of this world]? Given fundamental purity, why bother with explanations and dialogues? Just be without all the [states of] mind, and this is called untainted wisdom. In all of your daily actions (lit., “walking, standing, sitting, and lying down”) every day and in everything you say, simply do not be attached to conditioned dharmas. Every utterance and blink of the eye is identical to the untainted [wisdom].
But now, when everyone is tending toward the final period of the Dharma, all those who study the enlightenment of Chan are attached to every sound and form. Why do they pay no attention to their own minds?
When the mind is identical to space, when it is like a dead tree or a piece of rock, when it is like cold ashes or an extinguished fire—only then will one have the least bit of correspondence [with enlightenment]. If you don’t, then someday Old Man Yama (the king of hell) will beat [a confession out of] you!
If you simply transcend the various dharmas of being and nonbeing, so that your minds are like the orb of the sun—always in the sky, its brilliance shining naturally, illuminating without [intending to] illuminate—isn’t this a matter that requires no resort? When you attain this, there is no place to rest. This is to practice the practice of the Buddhas, and it is to “be without abiding and yet to generate the mind.” This is your pure Dharma body, which is called the unsurpassable bodhi.
If you do not understand this idea, then even if you study to the point of erudition, cultivating with diligent asceticism, robing yourself with grasses and eating trees, [yet] without recognizing your own mind: this is all false practice, and you will definitely become an attendant of Måra.
If you practice like this, what benefit could there be? Baozhi has said, “The Buddha is fundamentally created by one’s own mind, so how can he be sought within written words?” Even if you attain the three [stages of] sagehood and the four fruits [of the Hinayana] and complete the ten stages [of the bodhisattva], you will still remain within [the domain of] ordinary and sagely.
Haven’t you heard it said, “The myriad processes are impermanent, these being the dharmas of generation and extinction”?
Its energy exhausted, the arrow falls to earth. You bring an untoward future birth [upon yourself]—how could this compare to the teaching of the unconditioned true characteristic, in which with a single leap one enters directly into the stage of the Tathågata? Because you are not the right kind of person, you must extensively study conceptual interpretations based on the teachings of the ancients. Baozhi has said, “If you do not encounter a teacher of wisdom who is beyond this world, you will uselessly partake of the Dharma medicine of the Mahayana.”
Now, at all times and during all your activities you should simply study no-mind, and eventually [your resorts] will bear fruit. It is because your abilities are slight that you are unable to make the sudden leap. If you can just get three years, five years, or ten years, then you will definitely be able to get a foothold (lit., a “place to insert the head”) and you will understand naturally. It is because you are unable to do so that you must use the mind to study Chan and study enlightenment, but what connection does this have with the Buddha-Dharma? Therefore it is said, “All that the Tathågata has preached was [stated] in order to teach people.” For example, to say that a yellow leaf was gold stopped the crying of a little child, but it was certainly not true.
If [you think] there is something actually to be attained, then you are not a member of my school. And what relationship will you ever have with the fundamental essence? Therefore, the sutra says, “For there to be truly not the slightest dharma that can be attained is called the unsurpassable bodhi.” If you are able to understand the meaning of this, then for the first time you will understand that the way of the Buddha and the way of Måra are both wrong.
Fundamentally it is pure and bright, without square and round, without large and small, and without long and short and other characteristics. It is untainted and inactive, without delusion and without enlightenment. See it clearly and distinctly, without there being a single thing, as well as without people and without Buddhas. The world-systems [as numerous as the] sands [of the Ganges River] are but as foam in the ocean, and all the sages are as [evanescent as] lightning. These are all unequal to the truth of the mind. Your Dharma bodies have been since ancient times until now the same as [those of] the Buddhas and patriarchs; where could they have even the slightest flaw?
If you understand what I mean, then you must make great resort for the rest of this lifetime. Breathing out doesn’t mean you’ll necessarily breathe back in again.
16. Why Huineng Was Able to Become the Sixth Patriarch
Question: The Sixth Patriarch did not understand written scriptures, so why did he receive the transmission of the [Fifth Patriarch’s] robe to become a patriarch? The elder [Shen]xiu was the chief monk among the five hundred [disciples]. He [served as] instructor for them, lecturing on thirty-two sutras and treatises.
Why did he not [receive the] transmission of the robe?
The master said: Because he (i.e., Shenxiu) took the mind as extant and considered that there were conditioned dharmas to be cultivated and realized. For this reason the Fifth Patriarch transmitted [the Dharma] to the Sixth Patriarch. At the time the Sixth Patriarch simply conformed in silence and received the intimate conferral of the profound meaning of the Tathågatas. Therefore the Dharma was conferred on him. Haven’t you heard it said that
The Dharma is fundamentally the Dharma as non-Dharma; the non-Dharma is the Dharma and still the Dharma. In the present conferral of the non-Dharma, how can the Dharma ever have been the Dharma?
Only if you understand this idea can you be said to have “left home,” and only then is it well that you undertake spiritual training.
If you do not believe me, then why did head monk [Hui]ming chase after the Sixth Patriarch [all the way] to Mount Dayu? The Sixth Patriarch asked him, “What did you come for? Do you seek the robe or the Dharma?” Head monk [Hui]ming said, “I have not come for the robe but only for the Dharma.” The Sixth Patriarch said, “You should concentrate your thoughts for just a short while, without thinking of good and evil.” [Hui]ming did as he was told. 384a The Sixth Patriarch said, “Do not think of good and do not think of evil. When you’ve got it just right, show me the face you had before your parents were born.” At these words, [Hui]ming suddenly [experienced a] silent conformance [with the Dharma]. He then paid obeisance [to the Sixth Patriarch] and said, “When a person drinks he automatically knows [whether the water is] hot or cold. When I was in the assembly of the Fifth Patriarch, I labored pointlessly for thirty years, and only today have I been able to eliminate my previous errors.”
The Sixth Patriarch said, “So it is. Only after coming here have you understood the inability of [the saying] ‘the patriarch [Bodhi- dharma’s] coming from the west, directly pointing at people’s minds, and seeing [Buddha]-nature and achieving Buddhahood.’ Haven’t you heard of Ånanda asking KåΩyapa, ‘In addition to the golden-threaded [robe], what Dharma did the World-honored One transmit to you?’ KåΩyapa called to Ånanda and Ånanda responded [‘Yes?’]. KåΩyapa [then] said, ‘Knock over the standard-pole in front of the gate!’”
[Gloss:] (This was the patriarch’s [symbolic] standard.)
[Question:] How could Ånanda have served [the Buddha] for thirty years and been scolded by the Buddha for being only erudite in wisdom?
[The master] said: For you to study wisdom for a thousand days is not equal to studying enlightenment for a single day. If you do not study enlightenment, how will you be able to use [even] a single drop of water (i.e., of what is naturally provided for you)?
Question: How can one avoid falling into the stages?
The master said: Always eating your meals without ever chewing a single grain of rice, always walking without ever stepping on a single bit of earth—when you [function] like this then there are no characteristics of self. You are never separate from all the a›airs [of life], and yet you are not deluded by the various realms. Only then may you be called an autonomous person. Furthermore, at all times and in every moment of thought don’t perceive all the characteristics and don’t recognize past, [present,] and future, the three periods of time. The past does not go, the present does not abide, and the future does not come. Sitting peacefully upright, letting things happen as they will—only then may you be called liberated.
Make resort! Make resort! Of the thousand or ten thousand people in this school, only three or five [have really understood Buddhism]. If you do not take this seriously then you will surer for it eventually (lit., “there will be a day when you experience a calamity”). Therefore it is said, “Be diligent in taking care of this life, and how could you surer misfortune in eons to come?”
End of Chan Master Duanji of Mount Huangbo’s
Essentials of the Transmission of Mind
A TREATISE ON LETTING ZEN FLOURISH TO PROTECT THE STATE
Translator’s Introduction 47
A Treatise on Letting Zen Flourish to Protect the State
Foreword 61
Note on the Foreword Koho Toshun 69
Preface Eisai 71
Fascicle One
Gate I 75
Gate II 79
Gate III 82
Fascicle Two
Gate III (continued) 115
Gate IV 127
Gate V 129
Gate VI 137
Gate VII 143
Fascicle Three
Gate VII (continued) 153 Gate VIII 168 Gate IX 176
Gate X 185
A Note on the Future Eisai 189
Postscript Koho Toshun 191
Appendix: List of Works Cited 193
Notes 211
45
Myoan Eisai (1141–1215) was a Buddhist monk of the Tendai school. He is also known as Yoai, and it is not clear which reading of his name he himself used. It is said that he had people chant “Eisai Yoai” loudly as they attempted to raise a heavy temple bell, long sunk in the Kamo River in Kyoto, which was to be installed in Kenninji, the temple newly built for him along the river. In this translation I follow the more common reading of Eisai.
When young, Eisai studied and practiced the esoteric teaching transmitted in the Tendai school and became a ritual leader, an ajar . Later, through two visits to Song China (in 1168 and 1187– 91) he became an eager advocate of Zen, declaring himself to be an inheritor of the Huanglong (Oryo) branch of the Linji (Rinzai) sect of the Chan (Zen) school. In this treatise he furnishes proof of this Chan inheritance.
In 1194, three years after his return to Japan, Emperor Gotoba (r. 1183–97) issued a ban on the propagation of the Zen school by Eisai and others in the country. The next year court summoned Eisai to give him a chance to defend himself. On that occasion Eisai almost succeeded in gaining their ear by arguing that Zen was one of the teachings introduced from China by Saicho(765–822), founder of the Tendai school, and thus that rejecting Zen inevitably would mean rejecting Saicho In 1198 he wrote the present work, Kozengokokuron, or A Treatise on Letting Zen Flourish to Protect the State, which he is supposed to have presented to then-emperor Tsuchimikado (r. 1198–1209). Through this work, Eisai received imperial sanction to propagate Zen.
In 1203 the imperial government, by social document, announced to Eisai that the three schools—Tendai, Shingon, and Zen—were to
47
be represented with respective installations in his temple. Eisai immediately had two temples, one Shingon and one Tendai, built in the compound of the Kenninji in Kyoto, the Zen temple that had been built for him the previous year by the second shogun of Kamakura, Minamoto Yorii ye. Beginning around that time, warriors of the Kamakura shogunate tended to become financial supporters of the Zen school.
In 1211 Eisai wrote an article on tea, Kissayojoki (“Notes on Taking Tea for Nourishing Life”), and presented it to the third shogun, Minamoto Sanetomo. Prior to this, in 1185, two years before Eisai left for his second visit to China, the Taira (or Heike) warrior clan was decisively defeated by the Genji (or Minamoto) clan in a battle famous in Japanese history. The Taira afterward disappeared from the world of politics but they are said to have continued to financially support Eisai’s activities in Kyushu. The warrior clans possibly saw in Eisai a truly reliable spiritual guide who could see beyond the contemporary political situation of Japan.
The imperial mandate issued in 1194 to ban the propagation of Zen reads as follows:
[Emperor] Gotoba, fifth year of Kenky(1194), July 5, kinoe-ne:
Buddhist monks of the Tendai school reported to the Throne that they had heard that elder monks like Eisai, who had been to China, and Nonin, who abided in the capital, had established the Daruma school, and that they should be made to stop its propagation. The Emperor proclaimed that thereafter they should stop their activities.
This is found in fascicle ten of the Hyakurensho (Finest Style Excerpts, seventeen fascicles, Kokushi taikei new ed., vol. XI, 1929). This record, made up of reliable annual records dating from the reign of Emperor Reizei, which began in 967, through that of Emperor Gofukakusa, which ended in 1257, gives the reason for the ban as nothing other than the introduction of a new school. For most Tendai priests, as well as priests of other traditional schools, the existence of any new school was perceived as a threat and could not be permitted.
In the continuation of Gate III in Fascicle Two of the Treatise (p. 118), Eisai himself refers to those who called themselves the Daruma school and criticizes this naming of the Zen school. He introduces the view of this school, refers to its followers as “those who have no wrongs that they would never commit,” and mentions “this kind of person,” who is a “holder of a fixed view on emptiness” that “no one can sit and talk with.” Eisai goes no further and does not mention the name of “this . . . person.” However, Kokan Shiren (1278–1346), a Rinzai Zen monk and author of the Genkoshakusho (A Book on Buddhists Compiled in the Genko Era, 1322), identifies the person alluded to by Eisai as Nonin, cited above in the Hyakurensho.
According to Shiren, in the year of tsuchinoto-tori (1189) a person named Dainichibo Nonin heard that in the land of Song the Zen school was flourishing, and sent his disciples by sea to ask Chan Master Fozhao Deguang (BusshoTokuko, 1121–1203), who lived on Mount Yuwang (Ikuo), his view on ultimate reality. Master Fozhao pitied the foreign monks, with their burgeoning seeds of confidence in the true self, and comforted and encouraged them heartily. He entrusted them with a Dharma robe and a painting of Bodhidharma with words of praise written above it. Emboldened by Fozhao’s entrustment, Nonin then disrespectfully began advocating the Zen school in Japan. Since he lacked a proper teacher inheritance and certificate (inka), people in the capital despised him. Until the time when Eisai began propagating the school of the Buddha’s mind, the socials, gentry, and common people tended to regard Nonin and Eisai as being of the same ilk and denounced them both. Aside from this, a Tendai monk named Ryoben of Hakozaki, Chikuzen Province, Kyushu, jealous of Eisai’s Zen practice, persuaded the Tendai students in Mount Hiei to bring suit to the throne to exile the two.
As previously mentioned, it was due to Eisai’s resorts that propagation of the Zen school was eventually socially sanctioned. According to the Japanese Buddhist historian Shiren, Eisai blamed Nonin for his neglect of morality and practice. However, Nonin is said to have had printed a Chan text on morality for students, which his disciples had brought along with other gifts from Fozhao. This was the Wei shan Jingce (Isan Keisaiku; Weishan’s Staff of Vigilance). According to Professor Seizan Yanagida and Tsuji Sennoside (NihonBukkyoshi [History of Japanese Buddhism], Vol. III, Chseihen no. 2, Tokyo: Iwanami-shoten, 1957), this was the first Zen text to be printed in Japan. Both Shiren and Eisai failed to appreciate the significant role that Nonin might have played, as a man of Zen among the common people, in the history of Japanese Zen. It is said that Nonin was accidentally killed by his nephew Taira Kagekiyo.
In 1198, the year Eisai wrote this Treatise, the Pure Land Buddhist teacher Honenbo Genki (1133–1212) also wrote his main work, Senchaku Hongan Nembutsu She (A Collection of Passages on the Nembutsu Chosen in the Original Vow, English translation by Morris J. Augustine and Tessho Kondo, Numata Center, 1997). In 1207 Honen was exiled to a remote region far from Kyoto, the capital at the time. The reason given for his exile was that the Pure Land teaching had caused serious moral problems in society. In both instances of new schools being advocated, in this case Zen and Pure Land, repression came from the traditional schools of Buddhism, in the form of imperial sanctions. The old forces regarded themselves as guardians of the state and wielded great influence on the nobles represented by the emperor. For priests of the traditional schools, the safety of the nobles meant the safety and security of their respective schools; anyone who might threaten their respective order was an enemy. Advocates of Zen and Pure Land practices, who were regarded as being concerned with their own religious life instead of contributing to the stability of the society, and thus outside the influence of the nobles and priests, were seen as such enemies.
Eisai was a Tendai priest of the highest rank (daihosshi). On returning from his second trip to China, in 1191, he began advocating that Zen should exist as an independent school, rather than merely remaining one among other traditional Tendai teachings, but soon met with an imperial ban on his activities. Honen had also been a Tendai priest, who practiced the nembutsu. When he began advocating Pure Land practice among those outside the Tendai school he met with grave punishment. Zen and Pure Land teachings, however, had already begun attracting popular attention. Political repression made the Pure Land teaching first advocated by Honen decisively influential among the common people. Although the definitive establishment of an independent Zen school in Japan had to wait for some time, the significance of this event was publicly acknowledged through Eisai’s resorts, and he was later considered the founder of Japanese Zen.
In 1217, two years after Eisai’s death, a young way-seeker then eighteen years old, Eihei Dogen (1200–53), who later founded the Soto branch of the Zen school, came to Kenninji to practice Rinzai
Zen under the guidance of DoMyozen, one of Eisai’s disciples. In 1223 DoMyozen and Dogen went to Song China to practice with Chan practitioners there. DoMyozen died of disease in 1225 in China. The same year, Dogen finished his Caodong (Soto) Chan practice under Tiantong Rujing (Tendo Nyojo, 1163–1228). In 1227 Dogen returned to Japan with DoMyozen’s relics. He entered Kenninji in 1228 but left in 1230. The next year, at Fukakusa in Kyoto, he wrote the Bendowa (Lecture on the Wholehearted Practice of the Way, 1231); he was already beginning his Soto Zen activities.
Both DoMyozen and Dogen wanted Zen practice to be independent of Tendai and Shingon practices. This was the same direction Eisai had discerned that Zen practitioners in Japan should go as well. What Eisai insists on in his Treatise is nothing less than the independence of Zen as its own school, instead of existing only as parallel practices of the other schools, though he remained a lifelong Tendai mantra practitioner as well. Eisai believed that knowledge of emptiness (prajñå; hannya or e) which has become one with the practice of morality (Ωala; kai) and self-concentration (samådhi; sanmai or go)— not prayers attended by goma (homa) ceremonies (i.e., burnt oaring) or anything else—would protect the land and people under the emperor’s rule. Knowledge of emptiness, together with the practice of morality and self-concentration, would ultimately open oneself to the truth of reality, and this opening was the way of bodhisattvas, who worked out of compassion for other beings.
As a Buddhist monk who practiced self-restraint and who knew the degenerate condition of the contemporary Buddhist schools in Japan, Eisai insisted on the necessity among Buddhist priests of keeping both individual and social morality (Ωala and vinaya, or ritsu). For Eisai, the prevailing view in Japan of the history of the degeneration of the Buddha’s teachings in the latter-day world (mappo) worked in the opposite direction. The awakened nature of all humans was already there before this world came into being, and will never decay when this world supers destruction. The Mahåparinirvå√a Sutra describes this awakened nature as nirvana that is the eternal bliss of the formless self, free of all defilement. Eisai follows the view of Chinese Tiantai scholars after Zhiyi, in their interpretation of the above scripture, that nirvana, the cessation of supering, o›ers the true ground for morality. (According to Zhiyi’s Profound Meaning of the Lotus Sutra, Fasc. 4, Vol. 2, T. 33: 726b, nirvana stands as a support not only for Ωala, or keeping precepts, but also for samådhi and prajñå.)
It seems to have been Eisai’s belief that monks and nuns in the latter-day world are urged by ultimate reality to open themselves to ultimate reality itself, and that is why they should uphold both Ωala and vinaya. What urges one to maintain morality is, ultimately, not any external authority but one’s own awakened nature, nirvana. Following Zhanran’s phrase, “the teaching on the permanence that supports vinaya” (see the passage from his Elucidatory Comments on Zhiyi’s Profound Meaning of the Lotus Sutra, quoted in Gate III, pp. 84–5), Eisai calls nirvana the “Zen truth that supports morality.” Because of this nirvana-support, Eisai believed, one could and should do one’s best at once to keep precepts and to be in composure. From Eisai’s viewpoint, making little of precepts while emphasizing the importance of attaining awakening constituted a serious opens against Buddhist practices.
It was on the basis of this understanding that Eisai advocated Zen practice in Japan. With this understanding, Eisai rejected Nonin’s popular Daruma Zen practice as evil. The Zen practice Eisai observed and experienced in Song China was that of the Chan school as a state supported and state-supporting religion. He could never have dreamed of a time when Chan would have nothing to do with any sovereign support. Eisai felt it inevitable to remain a reliable Tendai priest, strange as it sounds, in order to obtain imperial support for his advocacy of an independent Zen school in Japan. He believed he had to wait for proper Zen practitioners to appear for such support to be granted. For Eisai, Tendai and Zen should be no deferent in being religious schools that both protect the state and are protected by the state. He believed that a person in whom the three basic Buddhist practices of morality (Ωala), meditation (samådhi), and wisdom (prajñå) were one could be a protector of the state and thus enjoy state support. From Eisai’s viewpoint, Nonin was far from the type of Zen practitioner he looked for.
About twenty years after Eisai’s death, Dogen, in his vigorous activities leading followers of the Soto Zen school, emphasized the importance of keeping the precepts (Ωala) and practicing meditation (dhyåna). Through his remarks, recorded by his faithful disciple and successor Koun Ej o, we know that Dogen deeply respected Eisai for his religious and moral personality. Furthermore, according to Tsuji Zennosuke in the NihonBukkyoshi, Dogen read a work by Ejo’s former master Kakuan, one of Nonin’s disciples, which Ej o had brought to him together with a gift from Nonin to Kakuan. On his deathbed, Kakuan had recommended Ej o to go to Dogen for guidance. Dogen knew Kakuan was a person of discernment, and at the same time admired Nonin, calling the latter Osh o (heshang, “respected master”).
In his brief Note on the Future (Miraiki, 1197), Eisai predicted that half a century after his death the Zen school would greatly flourish in Japan. Kokan Shiren, the Buddhist historian, took up Eisai in his Genkoshakusho, Vol. 2, with choice quotations from the Treatise on Letting Zen Flourish to Protect the State. Toward the end of his introduction, Shiren refers to the prediction of the Zen school’s future efflorescence by Eisai and states that it came to be realized in the following manner. First, Enni Bennen (1202–80) of the Tofukuji in Kyoto, and then Lanxi Daolong (Rankei Doryi, 1213–78, from China) of the Kenchoji in Kamakura, presided over Kenninji, in 1258 and 1259 respectively. Shiren writes that this successive appointment by the court, though brief in time and formal in nature, of these two Rinzai Zen priests as presiding priests of the temple dedicated to Eisai, revealed his contemporaries’ high estimation of him.
The present text by Eisai has not attracted much attention, written as it was for the special purpose of defending the standpoint of Zen against groundless rebuke. Composed in Chinese, full of passages quoted often and repeatedly from one hundred Buddhist sources (mostly Indian and Chinese), it is not easy to read. Nevertheless, we have in the Treatise on Letting Zen Flourish to Protect the State a very passionate and sincere exposition of the Zen truth, based on the author’s own deep experience. In this work we meet a very competent, committed person who devoted himself to exhorting people of the early Kamakura era to practice Zen, and to pray for the nation’s protection from decadence both internal and external, for this was precisely what he meant by “protecting the state.”
On reading this treatise, the first question one has to ask is why a daihosshi, the highest rank of priest in the Japanese Tendai school, would come to be in the position of defending the propagation of the Zen school against imperial prohibition and predicting its future in Japan. This question naturally finds its answer as one reads the work. The Zen school predicted by Eisai to flourish half a century after his lifetime was a form that Eisai believed his contemporary Tendai school would have to accept. That was the form the Tendai school had to develop from within itself, which in his time it had not yet done, as he mentions in this Treatise. It seems that he considered himself one of those few Tendai priests who could understand the close relationship between Tendai and Zen. Eisai observed in China that Tiantai had already been replaced by Chan as a state-supported religion. He quite possibly returned home with the firm belief that this ought to be the direction of Japanese Buddhism as well. Eisai was one of those rare Japanese priests who seriously considered the future of their contemporary religion.
The Treatise on Letting Zen Flourish to Protect the State is an excellent introduction to Zen principles and the Chan/Zen school, made for the first time in the history of Japanese religious thought.
Eisai introduced Zen to the people of Japan as a religion that would protect the state and which therefore was worthy of being protected by the state. Eisai believed that the Zen school, among the four forms of transmission inherited by the Tendai school, could realize this ideal in the near future. Indeed, Eisai’s notion of the ideal form of religion— at once state-supporting and state-supported—had always been held by all the eight Buddhist schools (Hosso, Jojitsu, Kegon, Kusha, Ritsu, Sanron, Shingon, and Tendai). But it does not seem that any of the leaders of these Buddhist schools, or Eisai himself, ever concerned themselves with how a political system in which the state protected particular religions had contributed to the degeneration of the nation’s religious institutions. No doubt, however, Eisai considered Buddhism in Japan to have long since been nearly dead; the Buddhist religion had to be revived by taking the form of Zen in which the Tathågata’s dhyåna (chan; zen; meditation), a leading term from the Laçkåvatårastra, contained the entire three teachings of Buddhism—Ωala, samådhi, and prajñå—as the proper activities of bodhisattvas for benefiting other beings. This is why Eisai, while still a high-ranking Tendai priest, felt compelled to announce the future efflorescence of his ideal form of Buddhism in Japan with such passion.
After reading the Treatise on Letting Zen Flourish to Protect the State, few could deny that it is a superb extant record, composed in the Song-Kamakura periods by a Japanese Tendai priest, of the introduction of the Chinese Chan school as a model for the future Japanese Zen school, with the purpose of radically improving the religious situation of the country. The revised edition of the Treatise on Letting Zen Flourish to Protect the State published by Koho Toshun (1714?–
1779?) of the Ryosokuin, Kenninji, Kyoto, in the seventh year of An’ei (1778) includes a Foreword by an anonymous writer, Toshun’s own Note on the Foreword, and his Postscript after the complete text of the Treatise and Eisai’s Note on the Future. The Foreword was apparently written by a presiding priest of the Kenninji some time after 1225, when the Notes on the Memorial Temple for Dharma Master Senko from the Country of Japan (Ribenguo Qianguang fashi Citangji, referenced in Eisai’s Foreword, p. 64) was written, and before the last year of Hotoku (1451) in the Muromachi period, when Nanso Ryosaku, the seventh-generation presiding priest after Eisai of the Kenninji, went to Ming China. The unattributed Foreword was discovered in Nanso Ryosaku’s notebook, and he is presumed to be its author. The Foreword gives brief sketches of Eisai’s activities in Japan and China and also mentions that after Eisai presented the Treatise to the court, and through it succeeded in gaining imperial sanction for propagating Zen, the text did not circulate outside the Zen school. A century after Eisai passed away, Kokan Shiren quoted many important passages from the Treatise in his Genko shaku show, published in 1322. This seems to be the earliest extant record referring to Eisai’s Treatise. Toshun’s Note on the Foreword and Postscript help us to understand how the present text has been handed down to us.
The text of the Treatise in the TaishoTripitaka, vol. 80, no. 2543, pp. 2–17, contains some wrong characters—at thirty-three places in the text itself, and one in the Note on the Future—which seem to be scribal or typographical errors. In addition, one word is marked as missing in the Note on the Future. The original TaishoTripitaka text was the 1778 revised edition by Koho Toshun. Eisai’s text was first printed in 1666, in the sixth year of Kanmon, by Yatsuo Rokubei in Kyoto. All the wrong characters referred to above, except two in the TaishoTripitaka text (T. 80: 4a24, note 59; 14a4, note 162), were corrected in a text using the Japanese reading (kundoku) by Professor Seizan Yanagida, published in a coauthored work entitled Chesapeake-no-shiso (Thoughts Expressed by Men of Zen in Medieval Japan), Nihon-shiso-taikei No. 16, Tokyo: Iwanami-shoten, 1972. This volume includes Myoan Yoai’s K ozengokokuron (kundoku text with headnotes), pp. 8–97, the Kanmon version in Chinese characters, pp. 99–122, supplementary notes, pp. 389–401, and an article entitled “Yoai and his problems developed in the Kozengokoku-ron,” pp. 439–
86. I have relied on this work by Professor Yanagida (who prefers “Yoai” rather than the more common “Eisai” for rendering the author’s name) in tracing the sources of the passages quoted in the present text. Eisai quotes from one hundred parts of scriptures, and some passages include quotations from other texts. For these text citations, the English title is used and the source and page reference is given. The Appendix gives a complete list of all texts cited or mentioned in the Treatise, listed in order of their appearance, numbering 1–101, with the English title used in this translation, as well as providing more complete English titles and Sanskrit, Romanized Chinese, and Romanized Japanese titles, where applicable. Sources for the texts are also given.
In this translation, where terms have Sanskrit, Chinese, and Japanese equivalents, their romanization appears in that order. Most certainly the dates Eisai gives in the text are those of the lunar calendar. Dates and original terms appear in parentheses. Interpolator words or phrases supplied by the translator appear in square brackets. The endnotes provide explanatory remarks and indicate the places where corrected words and phrases adopted from Professor Yanagida’s work for the scribal errors mentioned previously have been incorporated.
An English translation of Eisai’s Foreword and a brief introduction to his thought have been published in Chapter XII, “Zen Buddhism,” in Sources of Japanese Tradition, compiled by Ryosuke Tsunoda, William Theodore de Bary, and Donald Keene (New York: Columbia University Press, 1958). In the same volume see also “Zen Pio nears in Japan,” pp. 235–6; “Eisai: Preface to Kozen gokoku ron (Prop agation of Zen for the Protection of the Country),” pp. 241–3; and the material on Eisai’s “Kissayojoki” (“Drink Tea and Prolong Life”), pp.
243–6.
The present translation represents an extensive revision of a previous English translation completed in November 1985, on which I received help from Mr. Jery Shore, MA, University of Hawaii. At the time of preparing this revised translation, more than seventeen years later, I had completed a study of the four-fascicle Chinese version by Guacharo of the Laçkåvatåra-stra, which was of benefit in revising this translation of the Treatise on Letting Zen Flourish to Protect the State.
For this translation I owe much to Professor Seizan Yanagida’s Japanese reading of the Chinese text and his annotations, and also to the group readings of Tang and Song dynasty Chan texts, guided by the late Professor Yoshitaka Iriya, as well as Professor Yanagida, which continued for many years on the Hanazono University campus. These readings gave me much greater familiarity with Eisai’s quotations from these sources. I am deeply grateful for the critical contributions to Chan textual research by these two notable scholars.
A TREATISE ON LETTING ZEN FLOURISH
TO PROTECT THE STATE
by
Myaon Eisai
Foreword
After its completion this treatise has been circulating only in the gate of our Zen school. The master is the first patriarch in this country of the bushiness, the “school of the Buddha’s mind.”1 Hence the appellation, “Founding Master” Senko. His father, from the Kaya clan of Bitchi Province,2 was descended from Emperor K orei.3 His mother, from the Ta clan, prayed before an altar to the deity of music, the family’s ancestral temple inside the Kibitsu Shrine, and, on dreaming of the morning star, felt herself pregnant. She gave birth to the master when the morning star appeared.
At the age of eight the master took leave of his parents and went to learn the meaning of the Buddhist treatises, the Abhi- dharmakona and the in their Chinese versions, as transmitted in Mii Temple of the Tendai school. In the autumn of the third year of Ninhei, mizunoto-tori (1153), when he was thirteen years old, the master ascended Mount Hiei and was ordained a Tendai priest with the name Eisai. He learned the meaning of the “perfect principle” of Tendai, and his fame among those assembling for study already surpassed all others. However, on contemplating the world to be a floating illusion, his pessimism strengthened daily. When he was twenty-three years old, he descended from Mount Hiei and went to live on Mount Nichio of Bizen Province.4 He spent several years there, abstaining from [eating] grain while engaged in the esoteric practice of a rite called samaya (“pledge”). He dedicated himself to keeping his body and mind free of defilement, and was versed especially in a particular observance called savarin (“restraint”).
The master had long intended to journey to Song China. However, for the past two hundred years in this country no Buddhist monks had visited China. When he happened to mention [his wish to go to China], he was ridiculed by others. Despite this, however, his determination never waivered. He said to himself:
Careful reading of the holy teachings tells me that making sincere and concentrated prayers at places where former sages manifested miracles or where ancient Buddhas did their practices will leave no old desire unaccomplished.
Thus, every time he visited a sacred area, the master prayed without fail for the realization of his wish, and he would receive a response from the deity. When he was twenty-seven years old, the master stayed in the mountains of Daisen, Hoki Province,5 to devote himself to intensive zazen practice for a summer retreat. There he happened to have a copy of the Lotus Sutra that had been brought from China; he regarded it as an auspicious omen of his crossing the sea. Thereupon, the master reported this to his parents, and went to Chiku Province.6 He met an interpreter for the country of Song, named Li Dezhao, at Hakata Harbor. Hearing from him how the Chan school was flourishing over there, the master admired it as a rarity.
When he was twenty-eight years old, in the third year of Nina, tsuchinoene (1168), on the eighteenth [day] of the fourth month, the master boarded a trading ship and went to sea. On the twenty-fifth [day] he reached Mingzhou of Song, on the nineteenth [day] of the fifth month he went up Mount Tiantai, on the twenty-fourth [day] he arrived at Wannian Temple, and on the twenty-fifth [day] he made the overing of tea to the [five hundred] arhats7 [believed to have come from India to abide on the mountain]. In the bowl of tea overed to them, the master saw reflected the entire body of an arhat, and when he dared to walk across the [natural] stone bridge [that spanned a terrifying fall] he suddenly saw two blue dragons; thereupon, he came to feel something move him. He knew himself to have been an Indian monk in the former life who had come to abide on the mountain of Wannian.
On the twenty-seventh [day] the master returned to Mingzhou; on the tenth [day] of the sixth month of the year he reached Mount Yuwang, where he revered and bowed to the Buddha’s relics, feeling himself penetrated by the glory that issued from them. In this way, during his pilgrimage for contemplation, there were more than a few occasions when the master experienced a spiritual response. In the ninth month of the year the master returned home, with the impression that his half-year stay in Song was far from succent.
During the next eighteen years the master came to call himself the leader of the two allied gates of Buddhism, the mantra-esoteric and the exoteric. In the Tendai school, in which he had originally been ordained, the master wore the seal of the One Mind with contemplation of the threefold truth, and in the mantra part of the school he obtained the social confirmation of having entered the maöala seat and received consecration with water sprinkled upon the head. Because in this manner he had come to the root and depth of the school [in both gates], the emperor as well as the subjects regarded the master as their honored guide. His guidance accorded especially with Emperor Gotoba.
The master one day received an imperial order to o›er prayers for rain in a park named Shinsen-en [in Kyoto]. The ten fingers of his hands emitted great rays of light and illuminated all the grasses and trees there. A great amount of rain fell from the heavens. Each drop of water on the surface of leaves of the park’s trees had the master’s reflection in it. The emperor celebrated the occasion by giving him the special title Yojo (“On the Leaves”).
The master once more wanted to go abroad, this time to visit India and make a pilgrimage to the eight stupas that hold the relics of the Tathågata [¸åkyamuni]. In the third year of Bunji, hinotohitsu ji (1187) he entered the country of Song again. This was in the fourteenth year of Chunzi, under the reign of Emperor Xiaozong.
In Song the master presented a memorial to the emperor in a petition for traveling to India. No permission was granted since the three routes from China to India, which ran through foreign lands, all belonged to the Mongols in those days and were not open [to travelers from China]. Thus he was obliged to stop at Wannian Temple on Mount Tiantai. During the five years of his stay in Song, the master read the Tripitaka scriptures three times.
Further, the master dressed for burial the corpse of the Venerable [Tripitaka Master] ¸ra Bhadra [from Nålandå, India], the first presiding priest of the Tiantai Wannian Temple, and repaired the surface of the pagoda which had been built in memory of the priest. The master did this because he believed the venerable monk was his own previous incarnation. Once the master composed a verse:
Here where a monastery overseas has specially been built, Green hills welcome me with beaming smiles. The bones of the blooming plums remain undecayed for three lives.
I ponder on a rock, sweeping away green moss.
This appears to have been composed around that time.
When the master saw that the pagoda built in memory of Dhyåna Master Zhizhe8 had become broken down and ruined, he gave up [his own] daily expenses in order to manage building operations. Subsequently the master had the porches built on both sides of the gate of Wannian Temple, which had been missing. For rebuilding a pavilion named the “One Thousand Buddhas’ Towering Pavilion” on Mount Tianton, there was so great a contribution from the master that people admired it and a record of it was engraved in stone. For details, see the Notes on the One ThousandBuddha Pavilion of the Celebrated Mountain Taibai (Taibai ming- shan Qianfogeji) by Louyao (d. 1213), a Song scholar, as well as the Notes on the Memorial Temple for Dharma Master Senko from the Country of Japan (Ribenguo Qianguangfashi Citangji)9 by Yuchu, General Taxation Oscar. Both Notes are kept at the Celebrated Mountain Taibai.
The nation of Song was supering from an epidemic disease, which worried both the emperor and his subjects. The emperor ordered several high-ranking priests to pray against its prevalence, with no elect. The emperor then ordered the master to do the same. A day after the master received the imperial edict, the epidemic had already ceased. Two days after, those who had died came back to life. The emperor praised him for this and said:
You have the title Yeshang (Yojo, “On the Leaves”). Does it not mean that on the leaves one thousand ¸åkyamunis made their appearance?
The emperor specially granted the master the title of honor Great Master Qianguang (Senko, “One Thousand Rays of Light”). Those contemporary great masters who had practiced under their own masters all over the country praised the master, calling him an Incarnate.
The master himself practiced under Chan Master Xuan [Huaichang] at both Mount Tiantai and Mount Tianlong for several years; he was permitted to enter Master Xuan’s room and received the transmission of the seal of the awakened mind. Between the two, there was giving and accepting everything concerning the Chan gate, and the master’s appellation Ming’an (Myoan) was established. When the master took leave to return east Chan Master [Xuan] wrote words in verse on tens of sheets of paper, and granted 1c them to him, thereby certifying his final attainment. That was how the school of the Buddha’s mind came to be transmitted and circulate to the east of the sea.
The master returned to his home country in the second year of Kenky, mizunoto-i (1191), and stayed in the provinces of Tsukushi10 for a few years. Then the master entered the capital of Kyoto, and in the second year of Kennin, mizunoe-inu (1202), he had a Zen temple built on the bank of the Kamo River near the fifth-street bridge, and was granted the name of the year, Kennin, for the temple. Once the master advocated the school of the Buddha’s mind, students gathered like clouds to learn Zen and practice dhyåna under him. The master widely circulated the great bodhisattva Ωala (precepts);11 at the same time he had [his students practice] the esoteric rites of the Tendai school as well. Then the master caused Buddhist practice to flourish and made religious influence prevail in the country. On every upo≈adha (sangha ceremony of reciting the Vinaya) occasion of the dark half and light half of the lunar month, the master gave a sermon on precepts with no deficiency in the teaching. As time passed, the hearts of [those in] the capital turned to the master’s teaching.
When [a priest of the Kegon school named] Chgen, who had been begging alms all over the country with the purpose of rebuiolding the T odaiji12 died, the imperial court ordered the master to be in charge of this work. It was soon accomplished. [In 1208] the nine-storied tower of the Hosshoji [in Kyoto] burned down in a big fire. And [when things did not go well for rebuilding,] the master, who could not but receive the imperial order to be supervisor of the rebuilding work, had three years’ tax revenue collected from Suwo Province13 in order to prepare for the work. He succeeded in this as well. Besides, in other provinces some monasteries were first opened by the master, other celebrated temples were restored by him, and still others were supervised by him; the number of such temples is too many to list [all] their names here.
The master had already been propagating the school of the “utmost vehicle,” which is the “special transmission outside the scriptures,” far and wide. Meanwhile, various lecturers of Buddhist scriptures in the southern capital of Nara and the northern ridges of Mount Hiei, who were extremely prejudiced, denounced the master and brought suit against him. Thereupon, the master wrote three fascicles of a treatise in which he quoted from Buddhist sutras and Ωåstras to prove his point and refute their rebuke. He entitled this the Treatise on Letting Zen Flourish to Protect the State (Kozengokokuron). The master presented it to the emperor and obtained imperial sanction. It is because of this that our school has prevailed under heaven.
Those who personally entered the master’s gate and attained the truth were Eich o (d. 1247), , and DoMyozen (d. 1225). Those who came from other gates were Koben (Myoe, 1173– 1232, of the Kozanji) and Shunjo (1166–1227, of the Senija i). Those who came from the exoteric and esoteric gates of the Tendai school were too many to count.
Now I strongly expect that in coming ages, when masters of this school succeed one after another and cause it to flourish in all corners of the country—alas! this treatise might be found quite useless.
I have sketched the above outline to let our descendants know [how the treatise was made as well as what the master’s life activities were].
[Note on the Foreword]
The above Foreword, whose authorship remains to be verified, and which I happened to find between the pages of a notebook written by Nanso [Ryo]saku, was not given in the old edition of the Treatise on Letting Zen Flourish to Protect the State.14 I presume that it was composed in [Ryo]saku’s days. Then the date was only two hundred years after the founding master’s days, and there is no wonder that the phrases of the Foreword were still detailed enough to stand as proof of their credibility. About the few expressions in the Foreword that are deferent from what have traditionally been known, I think more information should be collected to verify them. It is my regret that for the present edition [printed in 1778] I have failed to obtain any original version of the entire text that may have included this Foreword, with which to collate the present one. Now I add it to the head of the whole text to be printed together.
By [Ryo]saku I mean a disciple of Zuigan Ryosei, the seventh generation from our founding master. In the era of Hotoku (1449– 51) [Ryo]saku entered the country of Ming together with Kyven [Ryo]chin (d. 1498), and nothing is known about his end.
Noted by [Koho] Toshun, [presiding priest of
Ryosokuin, Kenninji]
Preface
How great is the Mind!15 The height of the heavens is such that it is impossible to reach its end; the Mind rises above the heavens. The thickness of the earth is such that it is impossible to measure its extent; the Mind comes out from beneath the earth. The rays of the sun and moon travel so far that it is impossible to exceed them; the Mind extends beyond the reach of their rays. The great thousands of worlds, comparable to [the number of] grains of sand in the Ganges River, are boundless; the Mind encompasses these worlds. You might speak of the great void and the primal energy that fills it, and the Mind envelops the great void and is pregnant with the primal energy. Heaven and earth wait for Me and then cover and uphold one another. Sun and moon wait for Me and then circulate. The four seasons wait for Me and then change. A myriad of things wait for Me and then are procreated. Great indeed is the Mind.16
I have no other way than to forcibly name this Mind. This has been named the best vehicle (vre≈thayåna), ultimate reality (para mårtha), the true characteristics of reality (dharmatå) revealed through the knowledge of emptiness (prajñå), the one true mode of being (dharmadhåtu), the unsurpassed awakening (anuttarå samyak saµbodhi),17 the calm self in heroic advance (raµgama samådhi), the eye and treasury of the True Dharma (saddharma), as well as the sublime mind (hadada) of nirvana.18 This being the case, it is in this Mind that all the expositions classified as the three wheels, the eight treasuries, the four trees, and the five vehicles find their source.19
The Great Hero ¸åkyamuni transmitted this truth of mind (cittadharma)20 to the golden ascetic MahåkåΩyapa,21 calling it the special transmission independent of scriptural teachings.22 When Vulture Peak23 turned its head and was met by the smiling face of Cockfoot Ridge,24 the flower picked up [by ¸åkyamuni] budded on a thousand branches, and the profound source poured into myriad streams. Inheritors of this truth in India and students succeeding it in China could be known in great number.
Indeed, teachings on the awakened truth having been widely propagated by those who have already become Buddhas, their Dharma robes have also been transmitted of their own accord. And the norms by which former sages (munis) practiced have solidly been established. The characteristics of the teachings on the awakened truth have made the weaving by teacher and disciple complete, and the norms for practice have been free from the mixture of right and wrong. Thereupon, Bodhidharma, the great master from the west, struck oars on the southern sea, and ever after he carried his sta› to the eastern river [and to Luoyang (Rakuyo)], the teaching of Fayan (H ogen) reached Korea, and the teaching of [Mount] Niutou (Gozu) came to Japan. As people have studied this, various vehicles have prevailed. As they have practiced this, they have had the ultimate knowing open up in one life. That which externally has the support of the teaching of nirvana for monastic discipline,25 and which internally has the awakening of the wisdom of emptiness (prajñå), is none other than the Chan (Zen) school.
Our court, bright with the glory of the Imperial Sun, carries virtuous winds so far and free that people from the land where roosters are worshiped (Korea) or from the land where elephants are honored (India) reach the ground with their heads at its red stone steps; people from the land of Jinlin (Sumatra) or the Yu Ridge (in the western regions) present their allegiance at its green stone steps. In this country lay socials put into practice Confucian classics on administration; Buddhist priests propagate the path for going beyond worldliness. Even the teachings of the four Vedas have their use.
As for Zen of the five branches, how could it be abandoned?
This fact notwithstanding, there are some who slander Zen as a religion of dark testimony. Others are suspicious of Zen and 2b speak of it as an evil attachment to emptiness. Some say Zen is not a religion suited to the latter-day world. Others say it does not meet the demands of our country. Some despise my capacity, and insist that I have had no scriptural verification. Others make little of my natural capacity, and consider it hard to stir up what is on the wane. This means nothing other than that the very upholders of the teachings on the awakened truth extinguish the Dharma treasure. Could anybody other than me know my mind? They not only block the principal gate of the Zen barrier (i.e., the Zen school) but also might possibly be ruining our patriarchal path of Mount Hiei (i.e., the Tendai school) as well. How sad and grievous! Is this right or wrong?
This being the case, I have brought together general principles from the three collections of the Buddhist teachings to show them to contemporary people of wisdom. I have noted the pivotal points of the Zen school itself so as to leave them behind for posterity. I have arranged them into three fascicles, with the division of ten separate gates. I name the whole text the Treatise on Letting Zen Flourish to Protect the State (Kozengokokuron), so as to accord with the original intent of the Lord of the Awakened Truth and the Lord of the World.26
It is only on the presumption that my talks, wild as they are, would not contradict the true characteristics of reality that I have completely forgotten myself in playing with theory, for which both priests and laypeople are to be blamed. It is because of my recollection of the benefit from Linji, which the latter-day world will certainly receive, that I have become free from the shame of errors of my pen. May the proclamation of transmission of the Lamp of Truth not be annulled but illuminate each dawn of the three
Dharma meetings under the future Buddha Maitreya!27 May the bubbling spring of ultimate reality be inexhaustible and keep flowing into the world throughout the country for eons under a thousand Buddhas!28 A list of titles of the [ten] gates will be given here .after, as you see.
Fascicle One
First Gate: Having the Buddha’s Teachings Abide Long
Second Gate: Protecting the State
Third Gate: Eliminating People’s Doubts
Fourth Gate: Scriptural Verification by Ancient People of Virtue
Fifth Gate: The Sects of the Zen School’s Lineage
Sixth Gate: Scriptural Evidence for Promoting People’s Confidence in the Zen School
Seventh Gate: Citing a General Principle and Exhorting People to Practice Zen
Eighth Gate: Establishing a List of the Essential Patterns of
Activity in the Zen School
Ninth Gate: Information from the Large Countries
Tenth Gate: Merit Transference and Making Vows
By the first gate, “Having the Buddha’s Teachings Abide Long,” I mean what follows.
The Sixfold Prajñåpåramitå Sutra (T. 8: 868c) says:
The Buddha [¸åkyamuni] said, “So as to have the teachings abide long, I expound a collection of precepts for monastic discipline (Vinaya-pitaka).”
The Mahåprajñåpåramitå Treatise (T. 25: 130b) says:
The Buddha’s disciples are grouped into seven: monks, nuns, young monks to be ordained), young nuns to be ordained, female novices, laymen (upåsakas), and laywomen (upåsikås). The former five are mendicants, while the rest are householders.
Insofar as these seven groups of disciples are free from transgressions, the Buddha’s teachings will abide long in the world. Hence the statement in the Chan School Monastic Rules (Zoku zokyo 2–16, 439a):
Indeed, it is by establishing precepts for monastic discipline and getting the practitioners free from transgressions that the school can have models for all the threefold world. Therefore, practicing dhyåna (chan; zen) and investigating into the Way29 presuppose moral conduct that follows precepts. Unless one gets free from transgressions and keeps oneself away from wrongs, how could one attain awakening and become a patriarch? Accordingly you should obtain benefit by reciting items from the Vinaya in Four Divisions: the four graveness that result in excommunication (påråjikå), the thirteen transgressions short of excommunication, the two faults of indefinite character, the thirty faults concerning priests’ possessions (nai˙sargikå˙ påyattikå), the ninety moral transgressions (påtayantikå), the four [kinds of conduct] that must be confessed concerning receiving meals from others (prati demana yåni), a hundred rules to be observed concerning personal behavior (Ωaik≈adharma˙), and the sevenfold decorum for appeasing quarrels (adhi kara√a mamathå).30 Also items from the Brahmå Net Sutra on the Bodhisattva ¸ala (T. 24: 1004–9)—that is to say, the threefold collection of purifying precepts, especially the ten weighty and the fortyeight less weighty precepts.31
By doing all this you should be well versed in both keeping and transgressing precepts, besides in [knowing] what is prohibited and what is not. You should take recourse only to the noble words that come from the Buddha’s golden mouth. You should not indulge in obeying people of mediocre capability.
The Mahåparinirvå√a Sutra (T. 12: 472b) says:
Should this scriptural treasury be extinguished, the Buddha’s teachings would be extinguished on the spot.
Indeed, this scripture advocates religious observances for the days of deterioration.
The Mahåsåµghika Vinaya (T. 22: 227b) says:
The Buddha said, “If Buddhas don’t prescribe rules for moral conduct, their authentic teachings will not abide long.” The Buddha Treasury Sutra (T. 15: 787bc) says:
The Buddha said, “This person, dear ¸åriputra, has forsaken the unsurpassed treasury of truth and deteriorated into embracing evil views. He is among those way-seekers who are likened to outcastes.... This will relegate my teachings, dear ¸åriputra, which are free from defilement, to gradual extinction. The teachings of mine on the awakened truth (bodhidharma), which I have attained after the long period of birth and death I suffered from, will be ruined in those days by people of such evil views.... From such people I would not allow myself to accept a drink of water.”
The Brahmå Net Sutra on the Bodhisattva ¸ala (T. 24: 1009a) says:
Those who violate the moral conduct they have vowed to keep on their way to attaining awakening are unable to receive any overrings from lay devotees, unable to walk the ground in the monarch’s land, and unable to drink the monarch’s water. Should they dare to walk, some five thousand hungry ghosts (pretax) will always stand in their way. Ghosts will call them “big thieves.” Should they enter a monk’s residence, a town, or a house, ghosts will sweep their traces away from the ground.... Those who violate the moral conduct of their own vow are no deferent from beasts.
The Sutra of the Benevolent King (T. 8: 833bc) says:
In the ages, Lord of the World, when my teachings on the awakened truth are almost [completely] neglected, there may be monks who see the four kinds of sangha members (i.e., monks, nuns, laymen, and laywomen) often being treated by the king and his ministers in a manner that goes against the teachings. The latter will make willful transgressions against the Buddha, Dharma, and Sangha (the community of mendicants who seek awakening). The oneness committed by them are against the Buddha’s teachings and against the moral precepts. They will bind monks with cords as in criminal law. When things go like this, the extinction of the teachings of the Buddha’s truth will not take long.
The Mahåprajñåpåramitå Sutra (T. 6: 539ab) says in elect:
Dear ¸åriputra, after my death, in the last time, on the last occasion, in the last five hundred-year period32 when my teachings are lost, a scripture that accords with the profound knowledge of emptiness (prajñå) will play a great part in helping people attain awakening in the direction of the northeast [as well]. This is because all the Tathågatas33 will make much of that kind of scripture, and pray for its preservation in that direction [as well] forever, without extinction.
This statement clarifies how the awakened truth of Zen that supports people in keeping precepts34 will cause the Buddha’s teachings on the truth to abide long. The Great Dharma Torch Dhåran Sutra (T. 21: 677a) says:
By protecting the Buddha’s teachings I mean that at the time when the Buddha’s teachings are exposed to extinction, bodhisattvas, realizing this, will resort to various means35 to protect and preserve them, whereby they can have the teachings abide long. It is for this reason that those bodhisattvas will also come to have the protuberance (u≈√a≈a)36 on their heads as Buddhas have.
Herewith I have established the [first] gate “Having37 the Buddha’s Teachings Abide Long.”
By the second gate, “Protecting the State,” I mean what follows.
The Sutra of the Benevolent King (T. 8: 832b) says:
The Buddha entrusts realization of the knowledge of emptiness to monarchs and ministers of various countries, large and small, in present and future ages, and wishes to have them realize that this knowledge is the secret treasure for protecting the state.
By the knowledge of emptiness is meant the principle of Zen; the above statement comes to mean that insofar as there are people within the land who keep precepts for moral conduct, deities will protect the state. The Supreme Deity King’s Prajñåpåramitå Sutra (T. 8: 689a) says:
Suppose a bodhisattva who practices to know emptiness for all beings as well as for himself happens to become a monarch, and some people who surer from extreme poverty and humiliation come to curse and slander and disgrace him. On that occasion the monarch will refrain from intimidating them with punishment by saying, “I am ruler of this country; the law will subject you to capital punishment.” Instead, he will immediately think this way: “For many lives gone by I have vowed in the presence of the World-honored Ones that I would rescue all living beings from their supering by causing them to attain unsurpassed awakening. Should I arouse wrath now, it will go against the original vow of mine.”
The Sutra of Forty-two Sections (Zokuzokyo 1–59, 36a) says:
Feeding a hundred evil people won’t be as good as feeding a single good person. Feeding a thousand good people won’t compare with feeding a single keeper of the five precepts (pañca mlåni). Feeding ten thousand keepers of pañcamla won’t exceed feeding a single new enterer into the stream of nirvana (srota-åpanna). Feeding a hundred thousand srotaå pannas won’t be equal to feeding a single attainer of the stream of nirvana who has one more birth and death left before final attainment (sakidågåmin). Feeding a million sakidågåmas won’t be like feeding a single attainer of the stream of nirvana who has no more birth and death left before final attainment (anågåmin). Feeding ten million anågåmas won’t surpass feeding a single attainer of the stream of nirvana who is worthy of respect because he has nothing more to attain (arhat). Feeding a hundred million arhats won’t go beyond feeding a single solitary enlightened one (pratyekabuddha). Feeding a billion pratyekabuddhas won’t supplant feeding one among the Buddhas who appear in the three times of past, present, and future. Feeding ten billion Buddhas who appear in the three divisions of time won’t be on a par with feeding a single person who thinks of nothing, abides nowhere, makes no-practice, and has nothing to attain.
“Thinks of nothing” and so on stand for none other than the principle of this Zen school. The Sutra of anagama Practices (T. 19: 133 ff)says:
Dear Ånanda, you should keep these four kinds of restraint39 with you, become as clear and bright as ice and frost, and be single minded in reciting my mantra verse named “white umbrella” (sitåtapatra-dhåram).40 You should select the most pure of the keepers of ethical precepts for your teacher, wear a new and clean robe, burn incense, abide quietly, and recite this divine series of mantras uttered by my heart-Buddha (xinfo; shinbutsu),41 one hundred and eight times. Then fix a place to make it a depository for rules of morality (soma bandha) and there build a seat of awakening (bodhi ma√∂a), seek for a quick presence of the fulfillment (siddhi) of the mantras, give rise to a bodhisattva vow in the bodhisat, bathe and cleanse yourself every time you leave and enter the place, and six times a day circumambulate the Buddha statue. You should practice in this way without sleep for three rounds of seven days consecutively. Before such a person I shall manifest myself, stroke his head with my hand and comfort him, and cause him to open up awakening....
If people constantly recite this series of mantras, no fire can burn them, nor can water drown them. They will attain perfect self-concentration (samådhi), so that no curse or any evil star could impose evils on them. Dear Ånanda, you should know that this series of mantras always has a bodhisattva named Vajradhara (“Thunderbolt Bearer”) and his whole family, as many as eighty-four thousand and nayutas, as protectors of the mantras. Every member of Bodhisattva Vajra dhara’s family has followers as many as that family, and all of them will attend the mantra reciter day and night. Even if either mentally or verbally they keep this series of mantras in their distracted mind, Vajradhara will always attend them. How much more so with those who are firm in their aspiration to attain awakening (bodhicitta)!...
Dear Ånanda, in this supering world are eighty-four thousand disastrous stars that evoke evil fates and twenty-eight stars of great evil, and when they appear in the world they can arouse various portents. On the ground where this series of mantras is alive, however, all those portents disappear. You may establish an area of twelve yojanas42 to make it a 3b depository of rules of morality. No evils or disasters will ever enter there. That is why the Tathågata propounds this series of mantras, so that in a future world all those mendicants who newly begin their practice may be protected from evils.
The recitation of this “white-umbrella” series of mantras is constantly practiced in Chan temples. This will sauce to prove that the significance of the Zen school lies in protecting the state.
In the Official Document Presented to the Emperor, Great Master Chish o43 of the Tendai school says:
Great Master Jikaku,44 in the days when he was in China during the Tang dynasty, made this vow: “I am here after having crossed the four-stretching waves of the blue sea to seek for the stainless truth ( adharma). Supposing I could return to my native land under the rule of our emperor, by all means I will build a Zen temple.” By this the master meant specially that the state must be protected and that ordinary beings be helped toward their attainment of awakening through Zen practice.
As one of those who want to propagate the principle of Zen, I just follow these noble forerunners. Herewith I have set up the
[second] gate, “Protecting the State.”
The third gate, “Eliminating People’s Doubts,” discusses two doubts to be eliminated. One is the doubt caused by ignorance through confusion and suspicion. The other is the doubt that scholars tend to embrace through bigotry.
Question: Someone asks, “People in the last five hundred-year period when the Buddha’s teachings are lost are dull-witted and not very wise. Who can practice the principle of this school?”
Answer: The Great Sage ¸åkyamuni took time into consideration when he handed down the teachings to posterity. Why should we trust our worldly feelings to conclude that?
It is said (in the Mahåprajñåpåramitå Treatise, T. 25: 125c) that in the past the Buddha lived in Jetavana45 for twenty-five years. [During that period,] among the nine hundred thousand families in the city, one-third saw the Buddha with their eyes, another one-third heard him speak with their ears but failed to see him, and the last third neither heard nor saw him.
On the part of the Buddha, to people of one capacity he manifested eight forms of being;46 for others he left his relics, for others he left remains of his teachings; for still others he enabled them to listen to his teachings in the land beyond after this life. He even provided some people with adverse circumstances. The Sutra on the Abiding of the Dharma (T. 12: 1112c) says:
The Buddha said, “Dear Ånanda, soon I shall assume the form of death. I have already finished everything a Buddha has to do. I have finished helping those who were to cross the sea of supering to do so. For those who have not, I have provided them with the conditions in which they all can cross it. I have already made non-Buddhists, the army of demons, and others submit to the way of awakening. I have fulfilled my previous vows. For the future world I shall be the unsurpassed Awakened Eye.”
Do you not see that the Buddha has already provided us with the present-life benefit? The same is true with the principle of the Zen school. If a person happens to have the conditions for it, he will practice it. Otherwise, no one would seek it. Even if he does not practice it, occasions of seeing, hearing, encountering, or knowing about it will lead one to attain ultimate liberation. You see in India that not all people have practiced Zen. In China there are some who have never practiced it. In Japan the same will be true. If there is one out of ten thousand people who practices it, how could it be impossible? If on the grounds that no one can do it you won’t exhort anyone to practice it, then people will lack both the proper and adverse occasions for it. Moreover, the Mahåprajñå påramitå Sutra (T. 6: 539ab, quoted above, p. 78) has this:
Dear ¸åriputra, after my death, in the last time, on the last occasion, in the last five hundred-year period when my teachings are lost, a scripture like this that accords with the profound knowledge of emptiness will play a great part in helping people attain awakening in the direction of the northeast as well.... Innumerable men and women of noble mind will gain unimaginable benefit.
Further, the Middle Treatise (T. 30: 1b) says in elect:
Question: Why do you compose this treatise?
Answer:47 During the last five hundred-year period after the
Buddha assumed the form of parinirvå√a, people are dull witted and deeply attached to various forms of his teachings, and seek something final in them. Instead of realizing what the Buddha meant by them, they merely cling to their verbal expressions. While they hear about ultimate emptiness in the Mahayana teachings, they don’t know for what reason things are empty of self-nature. Therefore, they give rise to fixed views and doubts about emptiness. Why do various faults arise in the midst of ultimate emptiness? In order to [clarify] this, the author composed this Middle Treatise.
The Tiantai school’s Elucidatory Comments (T. 33: 858b) says:48
Here is a doubt: The Lotus Sutra has already revealed the ultimate truth through provisional teachings. Why does the Mahåparinirvå√a Sutra further propagate what is provisional? Master Zhiyi in the treatise explains that the latter teaches about the life-redeeming valuable treasure. The Mahåparinirvå√a Sutra, fascicle 14, says:49
Seven varieties of gems, which their owner does not take out for use, are called treasures. The reason this person keeps them hidden is that he thinks of their future use. When the cost of grain is high, when enemies invade the country, or when the nation happens to have an evil king, the possessor can use the treasures so as to redeem his life. When it is hard to get some property, he can take them out for use.
The same is true with the Buddhas’ hidden treasure. It may happen that in the latter-day world evil members of the sangha will hoard prohibited properties, or that all the four groups of sangha members will insist that the Tathågata (¸åkyamuni) finally entered into complete extinction, and will read and recite non-Buddhist scriptures without respecting50 Buddhist sutras. At the time when such evils appear in the world, those evils must be destroyed. That is why the Tathågata expounded this sutra. Should this sutra disappear, the Buddha’s teachings will disappear on the spot.
What the author of the treatise means by pointing to the Mahåparinirvå√a Sutra as the valuable treasure is this: passages of the sutra that appear before and after the above quote all propound the eternity of nirvana, the extinction of supering, the very teaching that truly supports morality. In this latter-day world evil sangha members who break the moral precepts (Ωala), or who make no resorts [to learn] the Mahayana teachings as well as [to uphold] moral conduct, will lose the life of eternal abiding. But let this sutra be trusted; it propounds the eternity of nirvana, the very teaching that is the true support for morality. It is fully equipped with both yåna (vehicle) and Ωala (precepts).
The Tiantai school’s Solutions for Propagation (T. 46: 345b) says:51
Then again the Mahåparinirvå√a Sutra is specially meant for the latter-day world because it carries the exposition of expediency.
In addition, [Zhanran’s] Calming and Contemplation: Their Meaning and Examples (T. 46: 447b) says:
We need the Mahåparinirvå√a Sutra because, although everyone in the various vehicles, relying on the Lotus Sutra, returns to the one real truth, people of the latter days, who are dull-witted, will see their own practice fall flat should they lack support. Only their own practice and support from the ground of their being together can cause them to proceed further. The Buddha in transformation himself looked upon his death as the end of his lifetime activities. Much more so with our latter-day world, where practice will not advance without support. Therefore, the sutra expounded the eternity of nirvana as the true support for morality, and revealed the reality.
The Lotus Sutra (T. 9: 37c) says:
In a latter-day evil world...a bodhisattva may sit in a secluded place and practice calming himself, contemplating that everything that has form is empty of self-nature, and that [all phenomena] are in their forms as they should be. . . . He may always be willing to contemplate on such forms as they are in their original way, and abide unmoved and stable like Mount Sumeru.
Great Master Tiantai, in his commentary on the chapter “Abiding in Bliss” [in the Words and Phrases in the Lotus Sutra] (T. 34: 120b), says:
By “contemplating,” the scripture means the wisdom of contemplating the Middle Way. By “everything that has form,” it means everything in all ten directions. Contemplation goes with nineteen phrases. The first [phrase]53 expresses what is general; the other eighteen phrases correspond to the eighteenfold emptiness expounded in the Mahåprajñå påramitå Sutra.
Further, the [Lotus Sutra] (T. 9: 37c–38a) says:
In a latter-day world after the Tathågata manifested pari nirvå√a, a bodhisattva who wants to preach on this Dharma Lotus truth should abide in bliss. No matter whether it is when he is explaining the truth to others or when reading the scripture, he may not speak of the faults of any other person or scripture. He may not despise other preachers. He may not talk about his like or dislike of others or of their merits or flaws. It further says (T. 9: 38c):
In the latter-day world where the Tathågata’s teachings are about to be extinguished, those who want to hold the truth 4a of this Lotus Sutra as their guide should be friendly and amiable to everyone, both laypeople and mendicants. They should be compassionate to those who have not been seeking awakening, making this vow: “When I attain awakening, no matter where I may find myself then, I will exercise to the full my possible supernatural power and wisdom to enable them to abide in this awakened truth.”
These passages on four blissful ways of being from the Lotus Sutra all refer to a latter-day world. Then we know that all three sutras—the Mahåprajñåpåramitå, the Lotus, and the Mahåpari nirvå√a—expound the essentials of self-concentration (samådhi) in seated posture (i.e., zazen) and the contemplation based on it that were intended for the latter-day world. If the generations of [people of] the latter-day world lacked the capabilities and occasions for attaining awakening, the Buddha would not have ex pounded them. Since, however, this is not the case, the practice flourishes in the great land of Song. Only out of their ignorance do some people in the contemporary world believe that Buddhism, a religion based on the Buddha’s teachings, has been extinguished. But they are wrong, as you will see from the details noted in the ninth gate.
Above I quoted a passage from the Mahåprajñåpåramitå Sutra, “[people attain awakening] in the direction of the northeast [as well].” This indicates China, Korea, and Japan. The Buddha’s teachings have already been transmitted into China. Korea has had the transmission of the Fayan sect of the Chan school. When Deshao, the State Master of Tang, had some missing fascicles of Tiantai school texts sought in Korea and Japan, he knew that the Chan school was flourishing in Korea.54
It has been nearly three hundred years since State Master
Deshao of China passed away. Before this, in Japan in the Tenpyo era, a master from Tang China, Daoxuan (Dosen),55 who stayed at Dai’anji in Nara, transmitted the teaching of the Chan school to
Reverend Gy ohy o.56 Great Master Dengyo (Saicho)57 says in his Genealogy (Zenshe):
According to the permit for my joining the sangha as a monk, the guiding master was Gyohyo, Dharma Master for Transmission of the Lamp, who lived at Dai’anji, in the left quarters of the capital.
My forefather in the Dharma, Reverend Daoxuan, had brought with him from the Great Tang a copy of Great Master Bodhidharma’s treatise on Chan, which has been stored in the treasury of Mount Hiei. Toward the end of the Enryaku era (782–805) I visited the Great Tang to ask for further guidance about Great Master Bodhidharma’s transmission. On October thirteenth, the twentieth year of Zhenyuan (Jogen, 804), from Xiaoran (Shozen or Yinen, dates unknown), a monk of the Chanlinsi (Zenrinji, present-day Dacisi; Daijiji) on Mount Tiantai, I received transmission of the lineage of the Dharma through the two countries, India and China, as well as Bodhidharma’s Dharma transmission, a Dharma treatise from Mount Niutou, and so on. I brought home these texts with high esteem to be preserved on Mount Hiei.
Four hundred years have passed. I, Eisai, who regret the severance of this school, have recourse to the Buddha’s sincere expositions meant for the last five hundred-year period, and eagerly wish to let flourish what has been abandoned and to carry out what has been cut o›. As for direction and time, they accord with the Buddha’s words. How dare you say we have neither the capability nor occasion for attaining awakening?
Besides, since the [time when the] Tathågata manifested his parinirvå√a, which corresponds to China’s Zhou (Shi) dynasty, the fifty-second58 year of King Mu (Boku), the year of renshen (mizunoe-saru, 949 B.C.E.), counted through to the present ninth year of Kenky in Japan, the year of (wuwu) tsuchinoe-uma (1198 C.E.), it has been two thousand one hundred and forty-seven years. This means that we are now within two hundred years in the last five hundred-year period after ¸åkyamuni. Great Master Tiantai says [in his Words and Phrases [in the Lotus Sutra] (T. 34: 2c)]:
The last five hundred-year period receives the benefits of the living truth of awakening that originated in the distant past.
Great Master Miaole (Myoraku, i.e., Zhanran; Tannen) comments on the above statement [in his Notes to the Words and Phrases] (T. 34: 157b):
At the beginning of the latter-day world the great teachings flourish. Hence, “five hundred.”
Now you have said [that contemporary people have] “neither capability nor occasion” [to attain awakening]. This goes against our Original Teacher’s (i.e., the Buddha) edict. It also finds fault with the knowledge of emptiness; it disparages Buddhas and bodhi-
sattvas59 as well.
The Mahåprajñåpåramitå Sutra (T. 7: 189b) says:
Among the mendicants who practice my teachings on the awakened truth and monastic precepts, there will be ones so foolish and stupid that although still calling me Great Master, they will slander and destroy my expositions of the profound knowledge of emptiness. Dear Subhi, you should know that slandering the knowledge of emptiness is slandering Buddhas and bodhisattvas.60 Slandering awakening is slandering the Buddhas’ knowledge of all forms.
The same scripture, in the passage preceding the one quoted above (T. 7: 189a), says:
If I explain in detail what forms and measures of evil rewards a transgressor of my teachings on the awakened truth will come to have, on hearing me he will be horrified, vomit hot blood, and immediately his life will end as if [he were] shot by a poisoned arrow.
All this means that for those who have become mendicants in the Buddha-Dharma to give rise to the view of self even for one moment will amount to slandering the knowledge of emptiness.
The Buddha Treasury Sutra (T. 15: 786a) says:
Dear ¸åriputra, in my teachings on the awakened truth one has the base of all fixed views rooted out; one has all the verbal ways cut o›, like hands in the empty sky that have nothing to touch and be obstructed by. The right way of being for way-seekers should always be like this. The Sutra of Pleasure and Garlands (T. 14: 931abc) says:
Being free from the mind and from discrimination is the way seeker’s right mode of being; to protect one’s sense faculties in their functioning is the way-seeker’s right mode of being.
This being the case, even if some may try propagating the ancient texts of the Vedas in this country, people of wisdom will not stand in their way. You may take good care of your sense faculties in working them, and never obstruct the Buddha’s teachings from flourishing.
The Lotus Sutra (T. 9: 50a) says:
All the various productive activities in the world to help sustenance accord with the true mode of reality and don’t contradict it.
The school of Zhenyan (Shingon, i.e., the Mantra school) [in the Commentary on the Mahåvairocana Sutra] (Zokuzokyo 1–36, 459b) says:
Insofar as you find yourself in the Tathågata’s teachings for helping people attain awakening, you may make a vow and practice in that direction. Don’t belittle the scriptural teachings of any of the three vehicles. If you do, you will be slandering the Buddha, Dharma, and Sangha; you will be slandering people’s great aspiration for awakening (bodhicitta).
Since every means in the treasury of esoteric teachings is the Buddha’s expedient, to find fault with any of them is to find fault with all his teachings. Various things of the world, resorts of livelihood, industries, the arts, and so on, have their right reasons. They accord with what the Buddha has preached. You cannot slander them. Much less so with the teachings of the three vehicles.
In addition, the MañjuΩra Inquiry Sutra (T. 14: 501a) says:
In the future there will be twenty divisions among my disciples. They will enable my teachings to abide long. They will all acquire the four grades of attainment culminating in athwartship. In their inheritance of my teachings in the three collections (Tripitaka) they are equal, without relative superiority or inferiority or even without medium. Like seawater, whose taste has no difference in being salty, and like the same person having twenty children, as the true expositions of the Tathågata, dear Mañjuma, the original two divisions come from the Great Vehicle; they come from perfection of the knowledge of emptiness (prajñåpåramitå).
According to The All-pleasing: A Commentary on the Rules of Discipline (T. 24: 796c) as well as other sources, we have this expression:
For what reason did the Buddha [at first] not permit women to be ordained as sangha members? He could not do so before he established regulations for female members to respect male ones. If he had permitted women to be ordained without the regulations, his teaching would have diminished five hundred years from its original duration, which was one thousand years. Establishing the eight rules of respect for nuns toward male mendicants reestablished the longevity of the teachings to the full one thousand years.
After the period of the authentic teachings comes that of another thousand years when what has the appearance of authentic teachings prevails. Then comes the period of ten thousand years when the teachings come to an end. During this latter-day period, for the first five thousand years people practice to attain the three kinds of wisdom and the four grades of attainment. After six thousand years, there will be no attainment of athwartship. After ten thousand years, there 4c will be no practice of the Buddha’s teachings; scriptural expressions will be lost of their own accord.
What you say is contrary to the significance of these passages, by falsely making arguments and hindering their circulation. This already violates reason.
The Mahå[prajñåpåramitå] Treatise (T. 25: 416a) says:
All arguments have faults of transgression. Only the Buddha’s profound wisdom extinguishes all discursive thought and speech.
The Lotus [Sutra] (T. 9: 10a) says:
The Tathågata appears for the purpose of Proclaiming the Buddha’s wisdom.
Also this (T. 9: 15a):
What you now have to attain is None but the Buddha’s wisdom.
Generally speaking, the Tathågata’s original intent to appear in the world is to cause living beings to destroy evil views and abide in the broad mind of no-dispute, which is the knowledge of emptiness.
The Tiantai school’s Great Calming and Contemplation (T. 46:
63b) says:
The Tathågata’s teachings show people the truth of no-dispute. Digested, [the teachings] will make sweet dew; otherwise, they will turn into poison.
The Solutions for Propagation (T. 46: 317c–318a) comments on the above passage:
The expression following “the Tathågata” means that the original intent of the Buddha’s teachings is to show people no-dispute. Disputation is a human fault. How could one relate it to the Dharma and find fault with the Dharma? Now the Buddha wants to show people the truth of no-dispute. Therefore, he expounds the Mahåprajñåpåramitå [Sutra]....
All this means that the Buddha’s teachings, either great or small, originally show people the truth of no-dispute. Heavenly sweet drops of dew originally grant longevity to the taker; foolish people take them undigested [and as a result] they shorten their natural lifespan. The same is true with the Buddha’s teachings. Originally they make one directly realize the extinction of supering (nirvana) as one’s eternal abode. As one gives rise to disputes, he enters into one of the three evil modes of existence.
The Sutra [of the Brahmå Called] Excellent Thinker (T. 15:36c) says:
Buddhas don’t appear in the world to cause living beings to quit the supering of birth and death and enter nirvana. They appear in order to cause beings to become free of the two fixed views of birth and death and nirvana.
Because what you say is contrary to these passages, you slander prajñå, the knowledge of emptiness.
Question: Someone says, “The principle of the Zen school does not set up words out of which to make any dogma, so it lacks verbal evidence. Without any scriptural verification, however, the lord of the state will have difficulty in trusting and accepting it. Besides, you are such a worthless character. How dare you abruptly surprise the lord’s hearing!”
Answer: The Sutra of the Benevolent King (T. 8: 833a) says:
The Buddha said, “As I clearly see the kings in the three divisions of time now with my fivefold eyes, it is because of their attendance with five hundred Buddhas in their past lives that they have become sovereigns. That is why all the sages and arhats come to see them in their lands and bring about great benefits. If the sovereign exhausts his good fortune, sages will abandon him and quit the land. The land, abandoned by sages, will necessarily surer seven disasters.
“Lord, if in a future world kings uphold the Three Treasures [of Buddha, Dharma, and Sangha], I shall have the five powerful bodhisattvas visit and protect their lands.... Those five great beings, assisted by five thousand great deity-kings, will bring about great benefits in your lands.
“Lord, you and you all may uphold prajñåpåramitå.”
Therefore, all the kings, on hearing the Buddha’s teachings, will naturally have confidence in them and accept them. Insofar as monarchs esteem the Buddha’s teachings, who should first have to gain evidence for the teachings and then allow them to prevail?
The violent king of Qin (Shin) ordered the burning of books (213 B.C.E.). During the Huichang (Kaish o) era (842–5 C.E.) Buddhist monks and nuns were injured. The Daoist minister Lingsu (Reiso) suppressed the Buddhist religion (1117 C.E.), and his emperor Hui- zong (Kis o, r. 1101–25 C.E.) disfigured Buddha statues. None of these rulers were those who enjoyed their sovereign status as a reward of their attendance with Buddhas in past lives. They belong to those whose existence was formed by their evil desires. You should not say that the Buddha’s teachings are too subtle for monarchs to trust in.
Thus, a monarch who succeeded to the throne through abdication of the previous monarch had already attended five hundred Buddhas, hadn’t he? The same is true with mendicants who transmit the lamp of truth. They have planted excellent roots of virtue, not merely with two, three, four, or five Tathågatas. With Buddhas as numerous as the grains of sand in the Ganges River they have deeply planted the seeds of vast prajñå, and now they realize the living truth of one phrase.
The Diamond Sutra (T. 8: 749ab) says:
The Buddha said, “You should know that these people planted roots of virtue not just with one, two, three, four, or five Buddhas. They have already planted roots of virtue with an innumerable thousand, ten thousand Buddhas, and on hearing these phrases they will have even one moment of calm pleasure.”
It will be the monarchs who will be the most pleased [with the phrases of the sutra], won’t it? So what fault could there be in surprising the emperor’s ears with my wish to let Zen flourish in this land?
Generally speaking, destitute people’s grief is likely to reach the emperor’s notice. Much more so must it be with the appeal from a monk who has been granted a royal certificate of ordination! How could it be otherwise with me, Eisai, who has risen to the present priestly rank? Xuanzang’s Great Tang Dynasty Record of the Western Regions (T. 51: 907c) says in elect:
In ancient times in Central India in a country named Yudha pati there were three Buddhist mendicants coming from the northern direction, on their way to make a pilgrimage to the Buddha’s holy traces. Meanwhile, temple priests in India despised these three mendicants, calling them “men from out of the way” (i.e., non-Buddhists), and would not let them stay overnight in their temples. The [mendicants] were always turned away with the reason that in all the five parts of India mendicants had their ears pierced with hanging rings but these monks did not. Exposed to the rain and mist, they were skinny, wan, and sallow.
It happened that the king came out to take a walk in the street and, on seeing the three mendicants, said to them, “From which direction have you come, revered mendicants, to find yourselves [in such a condition]?” They answered, “We are from the northern country of Tukhara. Once a few of us promised one another, ‘The living principle of the Buddha’s teachings is so subtle and deep, words or talks cannot penetrate it. Fortunately the Holy One’s traces still exist. Paying a respectful visit to them may extinguish our human transgressions. Let us share the same wish and be pilgrims together.’ Having made this promise among ourselves, we traveled this far. But the way-seekers of India don’t dare show compassion toward us. On the contrary, they have always rejected us, shutting us out of their monasteries, and so on. That is why we have become like this.”
Hearing the mendicants talk, the king’s sympathy increased. He chose a beautiful place, had a monastery built, and on a white piece of cotton wrote an inscription: “Our Royal Self, most honored among the people, enjoys this status through the graceful protection of the Three Treasures. Being lord of the people, I have already been entrusted by the Buddha to help his teachings be propagated throughout the land. Those who wear the dyed robes of monks will be in my gracious service. I have had this monastery built to invite traveling way-seekers here. From now on those mendicants who have ears pierced with hanging rings will not be allowed to stay overnight in this monastery I have built.”
What an honest and sincere remark this is! The Sutra of the Benevolent King (T. 8: 833b) says:
Therefore, I entrust kings with [the Three Treasures].
It also says (T. 8: 833a):
Their attendance with five hundred Buddhas in the past lives enables them to become sovereigns.
It also says (T. 8: 833a):
Great Lord, I now entrust you with the Three Treasures. It also says (T. 8: 833c):
Great Lord, after my death in the future world the four [kinds of sangha members] (monks, nuns, laymen, and laywomen), my disciples, and the lords and princes of all the small countries will be those who preserve and protect the Three Treasures.
The monarch of Japan is not a descendant of this king of India but the most honored of the imperial palace is always a child who takes shelter in the Buddha. The great lord of Yuezhi (India), on hearing of the three mendicants’ trials, had a monastery built for them. Why would the noble lord of Japan not respond to an appeal from a poor monk and grant an edict on paper? Your hindrance 5b and reproach against me is something that will cause the destruction of the Buddha’s teachings; it will ruin the land itself. You should not be so insistent [on denouncing me]. The Sutra of the Benevolent King (T. 8: 833c) says:
[The Buddha said,] “In the future world monarchs of small countries as well as the four [kinds of sangha] disciples will all commit this transgression. It will cause the destruction of the country, a result they must surer themselves. They run counter to the Buddha, Dharma, and Sangha.
“Great Lord, in the future world let people have the truth of this scripture circulate among them, for this is the vessel of the truth awakened to by the past seven Buddhas; this is the path that all the Buddhas in the ten directions unfailingly tread.
“Evil mendicants mostly look for fame and profit. In the king’s presence they will preach what will directly or indirectly cause the destruction of the teachings of the Buddha-Dharma. The king, not discerning, will trust [them] and listen to their words, and willfully establish laws without having any recourse to the Buddha’s moral precepts (Ωala). I take this for the direct and indirect cause of the destruction of both the teachings of the Buddha-Dharma and their land. It will be precisely at this time that the authentic teachings of the Buddha-Dharma will be lost.”
Hearing this exposition by the Buddha, the kings of the sixteen larger countries wept with grief. They cried their hearts out and their tears moved the three thousand great worlds. The sun and moon, the five planets, and the twenty-eight stars lost their brightness and became invisible. Then, each of the kings in his sincerest heart accepted and upheld the Buddha’s words, “We should not restrain people from becoming mendicants to practice the Way as one of the four [kinds of] sangha members; we should do as the Buddha teaches us to.”
The Mahåparinirvå√a Sutra (T. 12: 381a) says:
Now with the propagation of the Buddha’s unsurpassed authentic teachings does the Tathågata entrust kings and ministers as well as the four [kinds of] sangha members. These sovereigns and four [kinds of] sangha members should admonish way-seekers to make their [practice of] morality (Ωala), self-concentration (samådhi) and knowledge of emptiness (prajñå) become61 powerful. If there are those who would not learn to practice these62 three kinds of vessels of the truth, who are lazy, who violate precepts, and who slander the Buddha’s teachings, then the kings, ministers, and four [kinds of] sangha members should try hard to cure them of such wrong ways of being. Dear Kåoyapa, the kings who do this are free from transgressions.
As you see, the Buddha has already entrusted kings with prajñå, the unsurpassed, authentic teachings of his truth. Monarchs should give directions for themselves. Why should wicked minds be left uncontrolled to create obstacles? I want to let the declining Zen [school] flourish in this country, whereas you forcibly find fault with it. I am a poor mendicant, unworthy of the name, but how does that mean that the Zen truth can be faulted? This kind of inference betrays the Buddha’s children, who then find fault in the Buddha’s teachings. The Mahåparinirvå√a Sutra (T. 12: 380c– 381a) says:
For those who slander the Buddha’s teachings, the sangha should decide either to expel them from the sangha or to chastise them within the sangha. Dear KåΩyapa, the reason the Tathågata demands a decision for taming those who find fault with the Buddha’s teachings is that he wants to show that evildoers will have their own retribution.
After my death, in every direction there will be mendicants who keep the moral precepts, who live in full dignity in their conduct, and who wish to preserve and protect the authentic teachings. When they see those who destroy the teachings, they respond actively, curing them through punishment, such as expelling or chastising them. These mendicants will surely acquire immeasurable and incalculable merit.
Monarchs, therefore, should think well of the Buddha’s entrustment and have no objection to it.
Question: Someone says, “Zen is a principle commonly applied in the various schools. Why do you dare to set up an independent school for it?”
Answer: For naming an independent school with a common principle or for making a single truth represent two fields, we can cite more than one example. The so-called religious observance of 5c restraint (saµvara-nala) is a common concept among the schools. Nevertheless, it establishes the Vinaya school. Mendicants’ morality cannot be deferent but all the five parts of India have five divisions of the Vinaya (monastic rules). The three collections of Buddhist [teachings] (Tripitaka, i.e., sutras, Vinaya, and måstras) is the truth of the one same path but the eighteen [plus two basic] branches in India had their own Tripi†akas. The Middle Treatise directly discusses the one real truth, and it has become the basic text of the two schools, Sanlun (Sanron) and Tiantai (Tendai). The Zhenyan (Shingon) school is an esoteric vehicle, and it has the two temples, T oji63 and Tendai.64 Still more so with the Chan (Zen) school, which represents the ultimate principle of all the schools and the capital of the land called Buddha-Dharma. In setting up one independent Zen school, there should be no hindrance at all.
Because of this, Great Master Dengyo’s Genealogy (Zenshei, 199–248) says:
It has been a long time since the genealogy came into being. The Buddha’s teachings had their source in Central India. They came through the Great Tang and flowed into Japan. In India, transmission of the teachings already included sutras and their commentaries. In China also, transmission from one to another formed a lineage. Transmission of the Buddha’s teachings down to me (Saicho) in Mount Hiei has had no genealogy from master to master as yet.
Therefore, I respectfully compile the transmission of the Buddha’s teachings through the three countries, and want to show them to those of our school who will come in later ages. They are:
A lineage genealogy, in Great Master Bodhidharma’s entrustment, of master-to-master transmission;
A lineage genealogy, in the Tiantai Lotus school, of master-to-master transmission;
A lineage genealogy, in the Tiantai perfect teaching (yuanjiao; enkyo) of the bodhisattva Ωala, of master-to-master transmission; and
A lineage genealogy, in the two fields of activities of the esoteric deities (maöala), matrix (garbha) and thunderbolt (vajra), of master-to-master transmission.
Great Master Chisho’s Similarities and Dissimilarities of the Teaching Forms (T. 74: 312c) says:
Question: Traditionally it has been said that the Buddha’s disciples are of three sorts: Dhyåna masters (zenji), Vinaya masters (risshi), and Dharma masters (hoshi, hosshi). Of the contemporary schools, which school has which master?
Answer: The three schools of Zen, Tendai, and Shingon have Dhyåna masters. All the other schools [except the Vinaya school] have Dharma masters. These three sorts of masters are found in Dharma Master Shenfang’s (Shinbo) Brief Commentary on the Ten Wheels Sutra.
Question: As for the Zen school, what kind of school is it? Answer: This school is not included among the eight schools.65 Question: What is the characteristic of this school?
Answer: The Zen school has the Diamond Sutra and the Vimalakarti Sutra as its main references. Its principle is that the mind is nothing other than the Buddha. A mind freed from clinging to anything constitutes its religious act. Its purpose is [to cause people to realize] that everything that has its own characteristics is empty of self-nature. Since the Buddha handed down the robe and bowl to Kåoyapa, transmission from master to disciple has not changed. Details are known from the records.
Question: Who has introduced this school to Japan?
Answer: Great masters one after another left Mount Hiei, entered the Great Tang to seek the truth, personally received this transmission, and returned home.
Venerable Annen’s Treatise on Teaching Time Polemics (T.
75: 355b and 362a) says:
In the three countries, various schools have had times of rise and fall but the nine schools have been practiced side by side. . . . According to the degree of depth of their doctrines, from deep to shallow, the nine schools are as follows. First, the Shingon school, with its doctrine, the one perfect principle, which is the mystery of all the Buddhas, expounded at all times and places by the Tathågata Vairocana (“Great Sun”), who is eternal and free from change, naturally stands first. Then the Zen school, with its traps and nets amply employed by ¸åkyamuni all his life, and ultimately with emphasis on the transmission of mind to mind without reliance on scrip6a tural authority, constitutes the heart of all the Buddhas’ [teachings] (sarvabuddhapravacana-hidaya). For this reason it counts as the second in order. . . . The Kusha (Abhidharmakona) school stands as the ninth.
The Song Dynasty Biographies of Eminent Monks by Zanning (Sannei) (T. 50: 724b) says in elect:
Buddhism in China has had three teachings: exoteric, esoteric, and [the teaching] of the Mind. The exoteric teaching has [Kåoyapa-]Måtaçga66 as its first patriarch. The esoteric teaching has Vajrabodhi67 as its first patriarch. The teaching of the Mind has Bodhidharma as its first patriarch.
We have seen how in China and Japan the Chan (Zen) school has been interpreted; in the three countries the nine schools have been practiced together. This school arose in the Liang dynasty, flourished in the Song dynasty, and in the Chen and Sui [dynasties] brilliant scholars did not argue whether Chan was a general principle or a particular school. Wise emperors of the Tang and Song let it be practiced along with other schools. Gyohyo and Dengyo transmitted it to Japan. Chisho and Annen both practiced it. As soon as young people heard the name “Zen,” they began arguing about it. Whose shame is this?
Question: Someone says, “Establishing a new school is a rare68 matter. You are far from the right person. Why do you want to accomplish such an important matter?”
Answer: Two thousand years ago when ¸åkyamuni passed away, he entered into perfect calmness (parinirvota) together with his teachings as many as the grains of sand in the Ganges River. ¸ånavåsin was the third [after KåΩyapa and Ånanda] who was entrusted with transmission of the teachings of the Buddha-Dharma. He entered into extinction and simultaneously carried away eighty thousand teachings from each of the threefold collection (Tripitaka). Since then, as time passed, the number of teachings gradually decreased, and the practice of morality (Ωala) became more leaky and faulty, depending on the decline of practitioners. However, in India AΩvaghoa (second c. C.E.) and Någårjuna (second–third c. C.E.) realized the truth of one reality. In China Nanyue Huisi (Nangaku Eshi, 515–75) and Tiantai (Tendai; Zhiyi; Chigi, 538–97) attained samådhi. The Dharma light illuminated the four distant quarters; the practice of morality reached the [latter-day world in its second] five hundred years. If by identifying ourselves with mere commonality and vulgarity we did not practice following these holy footsteps, how would the teachings of the Buddha-Dharma continue? How could you not feel sorry about the extermination of the Zen truth but instead scrutinize the faults of humans and the truth?
The Lotus Sutra (T. 9: 38b) says:
You should not belittle and rebuke those who learn to practice the Buddha’s Way so as to uncover their merits and demerits.
Venerable Annen69 says [in his Treatise on Teaching Time Polemics] (T. 75: 355a):
Publicizing oneself while belittling others cannot be called propagating the Way.
The Mahåprajñåpåramitå Treatise (T. 25: 63c) says:
If one slanders and rebukes others’ religion because of strong attachment to one’s own, even a practitioner of morality won’t be exempt from the torture of hell.
The Mantra school’s [Commentary on] the Mahåvairocana Sutra (Zokuzokyo 1–36, 276c) says in elect:
What is the demonic (råkasa) mind? It is that which gives rise to evils in the midst of goodness. Let me explain this. Someone may believe in the Buddha’s words and build places of worship. Finding blame in this, the demonic mind will say, “You are injuring innumerable worms and giving much trouble to the benefactors. What could be the benefit of this? You deserve only the retribution of pain.” This kind of evil mind is what I mean by the demonic mind. Simply observing the merit and benefit of that person’s faithful act, without looking for his faults, counters the demonic mind.
The Sutra of ¸yraµgama Practices (T. 19: 107a) says:
It is because the Tathågatas in the ten directions are of one and the same path. What makes one free from the supering of birth and death is always the genuine mode of his being (ånayama√∂a; jikishin). It is because his mode of being and words are genuine and not artificial.
This being the case, when both one’s mode of being and words are not genuine but artificial, and when he looks to find fault in both humans and the truth, how could that person know the path?
The Mahåprajñåpåramitå Treatise (T.25: 129b) says:
One hundred years after the Buddha passed away, a man named Upagupta attained athwartship and became a great guiding master for the world. In those days there was an old nun, aged one hundred and twenty. As a child, she had seen the Buddha. Upagupta came to hear from her how the Buddha had looked and comported himself. The nun wanted to examiine the master’s behavior so she attached a bowl filled with oil to the back of the door. Upagupta approached and slowly opened the door. A little of the oil was spilled. After he entered and sat, he asked how the Buddha had emitted light from
himself. He also asked how the sangha members had comported themselves. The nun answered: “In the days when the Buddha was alive, there was a group of six sangha members who were very evil mendicants, yet their behavior accorded with the regulations and excelled yours. In walking, standing, sitting, and lying down they never missed established rules. When the group of six entered this door, they never caused any oil to be spilled. You are an arhat who possesses the six supernatural powers. Nevertheless, you cannot equal them.” Hearing this, Upagupta felt deeply ashamed.
However, in the days when the Buddha was alive, of the group of six mendicants two fell into the någa’s (serpent demon) mode of existence and two rose to the realm of the devas (heavenly gods). On the other hand, Upagupta was a man who had gained all the four attainments.70 Does this not tell us that in the latter-day world not even a single precept should be made little of? Still less so with our intention to benefit other beings. Since our intention can never go against the Buddha’s, how could ours be distinguished from the Buddha’s intention?
The Mahåparinirvå√a Sutra (T. 12: 590a) says:
As for the aspiration to attain awakening (bodhicitta) and attaining ultimate awakening (anuttarå samyaksaµbodhi), these two cannot be separated. Of these two the first is very hard; it is the aspiration to have others attain awakening before oneself does so. Therefore, I respectfully salute people of original aspiration.
Although this is a rare thing in the history of this country, and although I am an unworthy person to promote it, my daring to follow in the footprints of preceding sages with the practice and vow of great compassion won’t meet any obstruction, will it? Besides, although the latter-day world would not have any appropriate vessel, examples of an important position to be socially established in founding a new school have not been lacking. If we want a Taigong71 for the ministry, we shall wait in vain for a thousand years. If we need a Kumårajava as a model for teachers, ten thousand generations will pass without a Kumårajava. However, even “half a verse” on the awakened truth was not belittled.72 Why should the citer be strongly despised? As for me, I have already ascended to the social position for Transmission of the Lamp. Concerning the matter of reviving what has been abolished, why should we not expect imperial sanction? I sincerely hope there will be thorough investigation into this matter.
Question: Someone says, “Ancient patriarchs were all those Tathågatas who had manifested themselves as bodhisattvas. You have no special virtue. How could imperial sanction be adored to you for reviving what has been abolished?”
Answer: Do you abandon the gems that lie buried within ore, saying that the ore does not yet emit bright luster? No one would give up [a bag of] gold [for the reason] that the leather bag stinks. For the valuable brocade from Shu (Shoku; Sichuan Province) no one asks who the owner is. Betel palm is sought only for its taste. The Zen school alone expounds that the Dharma causes living beings to cross the sea of birth and death. Besides, the teachings of the Buddha-Dharma for the latter-day world mostly work with hidden benefit. Not necessarily do they seek supernatural transformation. The recent rebuke against Eisai is far from a disgrace to Eisai alone, isn’t it?
The Vinaya in Four Divisions (T. 22: 568c) says:
It is said that the following once happened. The World-honored One accepted an invitation from a man of priestly caste (brahman) at Veranjå. Misled by the destroyers (måras), the priest forgot his dedication to the World-honored One whom he had invited, and made no meal overrings. The World-honored One had arrived at Veranjå with five hundred mendicants. It was already the summer rainy season [when the sangha dwelled together in one place] (i.e., summer retreat). Unable to return to Råjagaha, they stayed in the woods of a nearby hamlet. There they met with famine, and it was extremely hard to obtain any food from alms rounds.
At that time a horse trader from Parikhå came around with five hundred horses. He happened to see that the Buddha and his disciples were starving, and immediately donated half of his horse barley to the five hundred mendicants. To the Buddha he donated a peck of [the barley].
Then Maudgalyåyana said to the Buddha, “I shall fly to Uttarakuru in the north and obtain rice there.” The Buddha 6c said to Maudgalyåyana, “You have the supernatural power to do so. As for ordinary mendicants, how could they do the same thing?” Maudgalyåyana said, “I can take them with me, using my supernatural power.” The Buddha said, “Give it up. You possess supernatural power but in the future how could ordinary mendicants accomplish this?”
It also says in elect (T. 22: 946c):
Venerable Pi√∂ola (Bhåradvåja; Binzuru) displayed his supernatural power for a benefactor. The Buddha scolded Pi√∂ola, saying, “How dare you display supernatural power to a benefactor for one meal! It’s like a prostitute who for the profit of half a coin will show her body to others. I am punishing you. You may not enter final extinction but will abide in the world to be a field of merit for the latter-day world.”
The above shows how the Tathågata made this regulation against displaying supernatural power for the latter-day mendicants. In ancient days73 the king of Pengcheng (Hojo) blamed Chan Master Farong (H oyi, 594–657) of Mount Niutou,74 patriarch of Great Master Dengyo. Later the king saw a true friend in the master and put his confidence in him. As for the hidden fragrance of divine responsiveness, who could know its omen?
Question: Someone says, “The Zen school insists that it does not set up words out of which to make any dogma. This will make lazy people more disinclined to study the holy teachings and will lead to the extinction of the Buddha-Dharma.”
Answer: The Buddha-contemplation Samådhi Sutra (T. 15:
648a) says:
My disciples in the future world, if they want to contemplate the Tathågata, should practice three things. The first is to recite the profound scriptures expounded by the Buddha. The second is to keep the moral precepts and the four basic postures (sitting, standing, walking, and lying down) without transgression. The third is to concentrate [their] thoughts on the essential features of the Tathågata and not scatter them.
Therefore, this school studies all the eight treasuries,75 and practices all the six perfections (påramitås). If anyone says that the Zen school advocates the mind as nothing other than the Buddha, and won’t examine the traces of the Buddha’s teachings, how would this be deferent from a person who, [while traveling] in the night just before dawn when it is not yet bright enough, discards their lamp and thus falls down a rocky precipice?
Question: Someone says, “Great Master Dengyo, in his Notes to the Latter-day World Dharma Lamp (Zenshe 1, 418) says:
The latter-day world has no one who will keep the moral precepts. If anyone should say to the contrary, it will be a strange matter. It would be like a tiger roaming in a marketplace.
[How would you defend your position against this view?”]
Answer: The Mahåprajñåpåramitå Sutra (T. 7: 939a) says:
A lion would bite a man, while a mad dog would chase a clod of dirt thrown by a man.
This may be applied to your case. Let me ask you: Why do you chase one clod of letters and words after another, whereas you have long forgotten that we have people who keep the moral precepts and practice good? When we see the skillful means of the holy teachings comprehensively, we come to know that the Buddha examined living beings’ acts of good far into the future. As we saw above, the Mahåprajñåpåramitå Sutra (T. 6: 539a) mentions “in the last five hundred-year period when my teachings are lost,” the Mahåpari nirvå√a Sutra (T. 12: 472b, Northern version) says “in the latterday world” and “to redeem his life,” and the Lotus Sutra says “in a later, latter-day world.” The Mahåprajñåpåramitå Treatise, the Middle Treatise, and the Great Calming and Contemplation also have similar expressions. The Diamond Sutra (T. 8: 749ab) says:
In the last five hundred-year period there will be those who keep morality, practice for the sake of merit, and have delight and confidence in these phrases. You should know that these people planted roots of virtue not just with one, two, three, four, or five Buddhas. They have already planted roots of virtue with an innumerable thousand, ten thousand Buddhas, and on hearing these phrases they will have at least one moment of calm pleasure.
All these exhort [those in] the latter-day world to practice morality. It seems that every time the Tathågata opened his mouth, the phrase “latter-day world” came first. Patriarchs moved their 7a tongues both for the present and the future. Great Master Dengyo’s interpretation, quoted above (p. 108), may be taken in this sense. Otherwise he may have meant the Small Vehicle (Hinayana) precepts of restraint, and not the Great Vehicle bodhisattva precepts of morality.
Queston: Someone says in rebuke, “Why does the Zen school newly call itself [a school] that will cause the Buddha’s teachings to abide long?”
Answer: Moral precepts (Ωala) and monastic precepts (vinaya) are what causes the Buddha’s teachings to abide long. Now, the Zen school regards Ωala and vinaya as its principles. Therefore it has the meaning of causing the Buddha’s teachings to abide long. The Tiantai school’s Great Calming and Contemplation (T. 46: 4b) says:
Ordinary beings’ indulgence in things for pleasure is what people of wisdom and sages chastise and for which they find fault with them. Breaking evils is achieved by pure wisdom (prajñå). Pure wisdom comes from pure concentration of the total being (samådhi). Pure concentration derives from pure morality
(Ωala).
Question: Someone says in rebuke: “How can the Zen school alone be the religion that keeps the state protected?”
Answer: The Sutra of Forty-two Sections (Zokuzokyo 1–59, 26a) says in elect:
At that time the World-honored One, having already attained awakening, had this thought, “Getting free from desire, keeping calm and composed—this is the supreme way of being. Abiding in this great concentration of the total being, I have defeated all the evil modes of existence. I will begin turning the wheel of the Dharma to expound my teachings and cause living beings to cross the sea of the supering of birth and death.”
The Bequeathed Teaching Sutra (T. 12: 1111a) says:
Dependence on this morality will give rise to various sorts of concentration and the wisdom that extinguishes supering.
Therefore, we know that without the concentrating force of the total being it will be very hard to break every evil. That is why we consider promoting the Zen school to be the most essential of all means for protecting the state.
Question: Why does the Zen school vigorously exhort people to practice morality?
Answer: It expresses what the Mahåparinirvå√a Sutra meant
by the teaching that the eternity of nirvana o›ers ultimate support to monastic discipline (vinaya). The Bequeathed Teaching Sutra (T. 12: 1111a) says in elect, “Dependence on morality gives rise to concentration; it also gives rise to wisdom.”
The Tiantai school’s Great Calming and Contemplation (T. 46:
4b) says:
Breaking evils is achieved by pure wisdom. Pure wisdom comes from pure concentration of the total being. Pure concentration derives from pure morality.
Question: If that is the case, can those who have transgressed morality achieve self-concentration after they repent?
Answer: The Mahåparinirvåva Sutra (T. 12: 477c) says: “Repentance is called the second purification.”
The Essentials for Chan Practice (Zokuzokyo 2–15, 419b) says:
If in the Great Vehicle one can cease the mind, one will be in true repentance. Because of this, hindrances will vanish and morality will naturally come. Because of this, concentration of the total being will be achieved.
The Tiantai school’s Great Calming and Contemplation (T. 46:
39c) says:
The Sutra on Contemplation of Samantabhadra (T. 9: 393b– 394a) says in elect: “Taking the [seated meditation] posture and focusing one’s thought on the true mode of reality . . . this is called the first repentance.”
The Sutra on the Most Wondrous Supreme Dhyåna says: “Transgressors of the four grave oneness and the five grave transgressions76 will, except for deepening their thought (dhyåna), have no way to be saved.”
The Vaipulya Sutra (T. 21: 645c) says in elect: “As for the three refuges, the five moral precepts, and the two hundred and fifty precepts, there can be no reason for their not taking place with those who repent in this way.”
Therefore, the Zen school has morality as its starting practice and concentration of the total being as its ultimate practice. If a transgressor of morality can make his repenting heart cease evils, then he may be called a person of Zen. Much more so with those who abide in the compassionate heart. In that case all sorts of morality and wisdom will not fail to be developed. Therefore, with the Zen school, which is understood to have great compassion as its original basis, I wonder what kind of transgression would be left unextinguished? The Bodhisattva Garland Sutra (T. 16: 87a) says:
Men and women of good heart, from the beginning of their aspiration, should practice the bodhisattvas’ heart, and in deepening their thought should fully develop the practice of all six perfections (påramitås).
The Sutra of Supra-sunlight Samådhi (T. 15: 53bc) says in elect:
The Buddha said, “The destroyers (måras) represent four things to disturb you. . . . When your ego-thought ceases, when your ego-thought is cut, the destroyers will surrender. 7b Those four destroyers all derive from yourselves; they never come from outside.”
Therefore, the Great Vehicle has it that when our mind is brought to rest, morality presents itself and dhyåna is achieved.
Question: Why do you strongly expect an imperial sanction to be issued?
Answer: The Buddha’s teachings must necessarily wait for the monarch to allow them to prevail. Therefore, the Buddha was solicitous to entrust monarchs with the propagation of his teachings. The benefit gained by kings who were entrusted with them was also unbounded. Concerning the reason why the Buddha’s head emits light from its protuberance (u≈√a≈a)—this is what a Buddha of the past, named RaΩmipramoka (“Ray-Emitting”), himself said in the Great Dharma Torch Dhåran Sutra (T. 21: 676c):
There are three roots of virtue: 1) renouncing envy and rejoicing in what is taught and indicated; 2) when working for the sake of others, not seeking any reward; and 3) not abusing or injuring others so as to accomplish one’s own good. Besides this, there are two things: 1) protecting the teachings of the Buddha-Dharma, and 2) expounding the teachings well.
By protecting the teachings I mean this: When the teachings of the Buddha-Dharma are about to be lost, bodhisattvas realize this well, protect them so that they may be propagated through various means, and cause them to abide long. Because of this, one also gains the unique feature of a protuberance on the head (u≈√a≈a) that emits light.
By expounding the teachings well, I mean that when a bodhisattva expounds the teachings to the four [kinds of] sangha members, if there is anyone who misses the teachings even for a moment, the bodhisattva takes care of that person and repeats the teachings for him.
The Mahåparinirvå√a Sutra (T. 12: 383b) says:
Because I have protected the teachings of the BuddhaDharma, I have gained this indestructible body.
The story of a mendicant named Buddhadatta and King Bhavadatta [who saved the life of the mendicant] is also related in the same section of this scripture.77
End of Fascicle One
Fascicle Two
Question: Someone says, “This school already insists on not setting up any words.78 This makes it almost the same as those [who are] ill-attached to emptiness and those of obscure evidence. If that is the case, the Tiantai school has already denounced it. The Great Calming and Contemplation (T. 46: 52b) explains the contemplation of what goes beyond thought, and says:
This is far from what is known to a Dhyåna master of obscure evidence or a Dharma master who recites passages.
The Profound Meaning [of the Lotus Sutra] (T. 33: 686a) says:
If a person contemplating himself should say that he, as he is, is approved of since he is equal to the Buddha, never looks into scriptures such as sutras and nåstras (commentaries on sutras and independent treatises), and thus falls into a kind of self-conceit that he has attained awakening, then this is [like] embracing a torch to burn oneself.
The Elucidatory Comments (T. 33: 829c) says:
The one who grasps a torch named obscure evidence burns his hand called excellent dhyåna.
As for the motto of the Zen school, “not setting up any words,” how could it be exempt from the above reprobation?
Answer: This Zen school hates masters of obscure evidence, and rejects those who become ill-attached to emptiness. It is like the bottom of a great ocean that dislikes corpses to lie there. Just abiding in the “perfect rank” (yuanwei; en’i),79 practicing the “perfect and immediate” awakening (yuandun; endon),80 and externally practicing the precepts of restraint to prevent wrongs while internally benefit-
115
ing others out of compassion—this is called the principle of the Zen school; it is called the Buddha-Dharma. This significance is
lacking in those who advocate Zen without discernment, those who are ill-attached to emptiness. They are thieves, as it were, in the midst of the Buddha-Dharma. The Collection of Records from the Ancestral Mirrors (T. 48: 496bc) says:
Internal reason (li; ri) really responds to external conditions (yuan; en); no reason obstructs phenomena (shi; ji). Phenemena stand depending on reason; there are no phenomena that have lost their reason. Nowadays all those who won’t have “confidence in the perfect awakening” (yuanxin; enshin) belittle themselves as having nothing to do with awakening. They suppose the Buddhas to be the remotest beings. Such people have not only lost sight of phenomena; reason is also completely lacking in them. Only when one realizes the principal aim (zong; shi, which is the One Mind that is free from hindrance and is self-abidingly free, reason and phenomena, according to their own nature, will be seen mutually permeated, and the unworldly and the worldly will be known to interpenetrate. If one were attached to phenomena and becomes lost in reason, that person will perish for long kalpas of time. If one realizes reason but neglects phenomena, this is far from the “perfect attainment” (yuanzheng; ensho). The reason is this: neither reason nor phenomena go beyond the Mind that is self (zixin; jishin). How can [reason and phenomena or, in Buddhist terms,] original nature (xing; sho) and forms (xiang; so go against the meaning of oneness?
If you attain the ancestral mirrors and immediately realize the true mind, then there will not be even the description: “neither reason nor phenomena.” How could there be clinging to “either reason or phenomena”? However, when one attains one’s original ground (ben; moto), one will never cease to be engaged in the “perfect practice” (yuanxin; enshi. . . .
As for those who advocate Zen without discernment, those of obscure evidence, how could they know living beings’ “sixfold immediacy” of awakening (luji; rokusoku)?81 As for those who are mad with intellect and who just follow words, how could they know the One Mind? Now people first need to establish confidence in the perfect awakening, have no doubt in it, and abide in the rank of “contemplating practice” (guan xing; kangyo) through which one immediately attains awakening. An ancient one82 says: “One should discern what is real and true all through one’s life.” How could it be false? The Ancestral Mirrors (T. 48: 866bc) further says:
The Tiantai teaching clarifies two kinds of cessation and contemplation: relative and non-relative. The former is a clumsy crossing,83 and the latter a clever crossing.84 The relative kind has three cessations and contemplations, respectively. The three relative cessations are putting something to rest, stopping oneself, and getting free from cessation. The three relative contemplations are penetrating what is contemplated, the contemplator himself being penetrated in contemplation, and getting free from contemplation. The non-relative kind also has three cessations and contemplations respectively. The three non-relative cessations are self-nature85 being true cessation; taking the form of something external as skillful means for cessation; and cessation as putting to rest dualistic discrimination. The three non-relative contemplations are starting from the falsity of appearances and ending in attaining emptiness, starting from emptiness and ending in attaining provisionality, and abiding in the middle as the ultimate principle.
Now this Ancestral Mirrors only discusses the significance of the perfection and immediacy of the One Mind. As for the cessation and contemplation that are perfect and immediate, they have the following characteristics. When through cessation reality (di; tai) is realized, reality is at once one and three.86 When through reality cessation is realized, cessation is at once one and three. . . . When contemplation has something on which to contemplate, the object is at once one and three.
When something external arouses contemplation on itself, contemplation is at once one and three. Like the three eyes on the face of the god MaheΩvara, they are three but on one face. . . . Oneness immediately makes three. All three make one. They don’t make one line either vertical or horizontal. Neither are they juxtaposed or separated. . . . All these meanings lie in the One Mind. What are their characteristics? . . . Thus you may know that the principle of the Zen school is not obscure evidence or ill-attachment to emptiness. Much less is it a false religion, isn’t it?
Question: Someone falsely calls the Zen school the Daruma school (Bodhidharma school), and insists as follows: “We make no practice or any cultivaton, for originally being free from self-afflicting passions, one is basically awakened. Therefore, there is no use for any particular precept or practice. There should only be use for lying down. Why should one take the trouble of making such practices as the nembutsu,87 worshiping the Buddha’s relics by making overrings, practicing a longtime observance of taking one meal a day before noon, being moderate in one’s consumption of food, and
so forth? What do you think about this?”
Answer: That person is to be counted among those who have no wrongs that they would never commit. It is to this kind of person that the holy teachings refer to as a holder of fixed views on emptiness. No one can sit and talk with such a person. One should keep a hundred yojanas’ distance away from them. The Sutra of Treasure Clouds (T. 16: 278c) says:
You may keep arousing an ego-view, which, piled up, may rise as tall as Mount Sumeru; you should never, with a fixed view on emptiness, give rise to the self-conceit that you have attained awakening. The reason I say this is that we can become free from all fixed views only through our realization of emptiness, and that if we give rise to a fixed view on emptiness [itself], then we would have no way to be cured.
An ancient venerable master (unidentified) said,
A Dhyåna master who embraces a perverted view on emptiness is like one who goes without the guiding function of the eyes and falls down into a fiery pit. A Dharma master who clings to letters is like a parrot that can speak human words but lacks human feelings.
This being the case, the Zen school, which learns from the treasury of the Buddha-Dharma and keeps the Buddha’s purifying precepts, can be called “the Buddha’s Zen” (fochan; butsu zen). Besides, the Tiantai school’s Great Calming and Contemplation (T. 46: 18c) says:
In the northern districts of the Huai and Huang Rivers (“River Huai” in Zhiyi’s text) there are Mahayana practitioners of emptiness. They are snake catchers without cages. Let me explain this in detail. Their late teacher practiced contemplations on the quality of good. After a fairly long time without success in penetrating the good, he turned, feeling free from anxiety, toward contemplating the quality of evil, [and then] gained some composure and a slight realization of emptiness. He was not versed in living beings’ capacities and occasions for attaining awakening, nor did he reach the Buddha’s true intention. He simply taught this quality of evil to others as empty. Long after88 he began teaching others, he came upon one or two who benefited from his teaching. When the result was something like a worm eating wood and leaving traces that happened to form certain letters, he approved of this as their attainment of awakening. He said this was a real matter and rejected the rest as false words. He laughed at those who kept precepts to cultivate good, saying that it was not the path. He simply allowed people everywhere to do wrong. Those who had no discerning eyes and did not discriminate right from wrong, whose mental strength was dull, and whose self afflicting passions were heavy, heard this exposition by the teacher, knew it accorded with their natural inclinations, and accepted it in faith. They followed him in obedience, gave up observing restraints and, leaving no wrong uncommitted, their transgressions accumulated into a high mountain. This finally led the common people to regard sins as something as trifling as weeds, and the monarch and ministers to destroy the Buddha’s teachings. Poison deeply infiltrated people’s minds, and there has been no improvement. . . .
This is a monster destroying the Buddha’s teachings, a monster of the contemporary age. How could it have anything to do with my so-called spontaneous practice of self-concentration? I say this because such stupid persons, lacking the understanding based on wisdom, believe in their original teacher, admire their predecessors, and say decidedly that this is the path. They consider what agrees with their feelings to be easy to follow. They run after pleasure without restraint, and won’t improve their delusional way of life.
As we see, to the north of the Huai and Huang Rivers long ago there was a madman. As soon as he heard the truth of Chan, [he knew it] to be remarkably excellent. But not knowing how to practice, he practiced only dhyåna in sitting posture (zazen) as he liked. He abolished activities both practical and theoretical. He was a man trapped in the net of false views. This person is to be called a master ill-attached to emptiness. This is a corpse in the midst of the Buddha’s teachings. The Ancestral Mirrors (T. 48: 689ab), defeating a hundred and twenty fixed views, says:
Some, in their attempt to imitate the one who has attained freedom from hindrance, relinquish practice; others, following their self-binding passions, presume emptiness to be the original nature of the passions. Both of them are deluded [as to] the principle and miss its significance. They are contrary to what is profound and true. . . . They break ice so as to get fire, climb a tree in order to seek fish.
This is a remark made out of disgust for those who do no practice, not to speak of those who give up samådhi and Ωala, or those who blame true wisdom. Vinaya Master Daoxuan [in his Instructions and Admonitions on Observing Restraints] (T. 45: 869b) says:
Those who don’t practice dhyåna89 or samådhi90 long deviate from the mind of true wisdom. Those who don’t practice various virtuous restraints will hardly accomplish excellent activities. That is why persons of great virtue throughout history have really been good fields of merit for the world.
In addition, the Tiantai school’s Solutions for Propagation (T.
46: 262a) says:
If there is no keeping of a particular precept, there will be no practicing of a worldly dhyåna. Much less will there be realization of the three modes of reality.
Therefore, the Zen school considers keeping precepts to be what precedes everything else. The Chan School Monastic Rules (Zoku- zokyo 2–16) says:
Practicing dhyåna and investigating the Way presuppose moral conduct that follows precepts.
Question: Someone says, “Venerable CHonen,91 in the rank of hokkyo (“Dharma bridge”), entered China, and on returning home wanted to establish the Sangaku school.92 Because of the accusations made against him by the contemporary Buddhist schools, his plan was abandoned. Is this school identical with or deferent from what you refer to?”
Answer: The names are already deferent; there can be no confusion between the two. I am not sure what CHonen’s intention was. The present Zen school advocates the nondiscrimination (Ωubha; shojo) dhyåna of the Tathågatas (nyoraizen).93 It has never assumed the name “Sangaku.” Since the Liang dynasty it has only been called the Chan (Zen) school. There has been no other name or idea for it.
Question: Someone says, “The [practice of the] nembutsu samådhi (nenbutsu-zanmai) has prevailed all over this country without receiving any imperial sanction. Why does the Zen school expect one?”
Answer: Propagation of the Buddha’s teachings has always been entrusted to monarchs. Therefore, [the Zen school] must wait for an imperial sanction before it can prevail in this country. Besides, concerning the Nembutsu school, it is said that the late emperor established it by imperial order in the Tenn oji.94 The prevailing nembutsu practice among people high and low displays its remaining fragrance. Why should the Zen school95 not [also] be blessed with the issuance of an imperial sanction?
Question: Someone says, “The Buddhist schools prevailing in the world are eight in number. Why should there be nine?”
Answer: Venerable Annen’s Treatise on Teaching Time Polemics (T. 75: 355b; quoted above, p. 101) says:
In the three countries, various schools have had times of rise and fall but the nine schools have been practiced side by side.
Great Master Chisho says [in the Similarities and Dissimilarities of the Teaching Forms] (T. 74: 312c):
[The Zen school] is not included among the eight schools.
As for the names of the nine Buddhist schools that have prevailed in the three countries of China, Korea, and Japan, you can find them out for yourselves.
Question: As for this Zen school in relation to Ωala, samådhi, and prajñå, what would you say it is?
Answer: Its principle is the Tathågata’s dhyåna,96 which does not set up words out of which to make any dogma. Positively expressed, it is common to all the Mahayana schools. Negatively stated, it is free from mind, ego consciousness, and perceptive consciousnesses; it is free from verbal expression.
Question: If it is common to all the Mahayana schools, why is
it to be separately established?
Answer: The Buddha said (quote unidentified):
My intention does not have any deferent aspects. It comes to have deferent appearances only because it follows living beings’ various capacities.
We must respectfully look up to and delightedly accept the Tathågata’s skillful means as well as the patriarchs’ kindly intentions. The foreword to the Sutra of Perfect Awakening says:97
Directly expressed, the Way is without duality. Divergences come into being in learning the Way. When the Buddha and Laozi talk about the Way, they are the same. When they discuss the means, they come to differ from one another.
Jizang, the Sanlun school master, in his Commentary on the Middle Treatise (T. 42: 3a), says:
All the Mahayana sutras express the Way as being without differentiation. Since the Way is without duality, how could the teachings be deferent?
Although the Way has no difference, distinctions, or divisions, it comes to establish separate schools because of the deferent means. There is nothing in which to find fault here; much less in the Zen school, which arose in the Liang dynasty and has flourished up to the present Song dynasty in China. How could younger people argue over “common” or “separate” [in regard to this historically important school]?
Question: If that is the case, does this school have any sutras
and Våstras as its scriptural sources? 8c
Answer: Positively stated, all the great Tripitaka writings (sutras, Vinayas, and Våstras) are its scriptural sources. Negatively expressed, it has not a [single] word as its scriptural source.
Question: Someone says, “The Zen school has more than a thou-
sand volumes of books. How can this be explained?”
Answer: They are records of Zen persons; they are like extracts in the secular world. Should one speak of any scriptural sources for the Zen school, it would be like [speaking of the] hair of a tortoise or the horns of a hare, which do not exist. However, this does not mean [these texts] have no profound, original purport. People of wisdom should deliberate on this.
Question: If that is the case, the very profound characteristics of reality will hardly be within the reach of ordinary, unweakened people’s struggling resorts. By what means and practice can one attain them?
Answer: The Bequeathed Teaching Sutra (T. 12: 1111a) says:
Dependence on this morality will give rise to various sorts of concentration and the wisdom that extinguishes supering. Therefore, mendicants should keep their [practice of the] moral precepts clean, and never spoil or be lacking in [it]. Without precepts kept clean, no merit or virtue will come into being. Hence you should know that keeping precepts is the primary abode of tranquility and merit.
The Foreword to the Brahmå Net Sutra says:98
Keeping precepts, like a stable area of ground, plus practicing dhyåna, like a house built on the ground, can produce the light of wisdom from within.
The Lotus Sutra (T. 9: 8a) says:
I tell such people that they will [attain awakening in the midst of future birth and death] because they cultivate moral precepts and keep them clean.
The Tiantai school’s Great Calming and Contemplation (T. 46:
4b) says:
Pure concentration derives from pure morality.
Referring to a passage in the Mahåparinirvå√a Sutra (T. 12: 432a–c), the Great Calming and Contemplation (T. 46: 38a) says:
If Ωala (morality) is not pure, one falls into any of the three evil paths;99 no dhyåna-samådhi, no prajñå-jñåna (wisdom knowledge), will be developed.
The Sutra of ¸Yraµgama Practices (T. 19: 131c) says:
Practitioners of dhyåna, if they don’t break o› lust, will continue to transmigrate through the three evil modes of existence, unable to escape. It is like steaming grains of sand and gravel in the hope of cooking them into boiled rice; cooked for one hundred thousand kalpas, they will still be [only] heated sand. Which path could ever be practiced for the Tathågata’s nirvana to be attained? My exposition like this is called the Buddha’s exposition. What is not like this is the exposition of a devil.
The Buddha’s teachings regard keeping precepts as preceding everything else. If anyone breaks moral precepts regulated by the Buddha, and calls himself a child of the Buddha, it can be compared to a subject who won’t obey the monarch’s orders but who [still] calls himself a subject of the monarch. [The Afterword to] the Mahå pari nirvå√a Sutra (T. 12: 901ab) says:
Ånanda said to the Buddha, “After your passing away, who will be our master?” The Buddha said, “Moral precepts [in the perfection of Ωala] will be the master for you.”
How much more so it is with the three basic learnings and the five components of the Tathågata’s being!100 They have Ωala as their first constituent. Therefore, this school has Ωala as regulated by the Buddha as its master. By practicing Ωala, one attains to it.
To summarize, the person who breaks all evil views, and who cures various evil acts as well, is called a Zen person. Concerning the evil acts, The Sutra of [Bodhisattva] Samudrajñåna (T. 17:
948a) says in elect:
At that time the bodhisattva Samudrajñåna said to the Buddha: “Now I would like to talk about the twelve evil enticements. They are: 1) for a bodhisattva not to bestow on others what is dear to oneself; 2) for one who, on seeing those who break morality, hate and despise them; 3) for one who is patient in acts of body and speech not to be so in acts of mind but to remain arrogant; 4) for one who teaches living beings to lead them into either of the two paths of the Small Vehicle (i.e., Ωråvakas and pratyekabuddhas), and to be fond of professional female singers and dancers, etc.; 5) for one who rises from the four stages of dhyåna to return to the world of desire (kåmadhåtu), to wish for a long life and not see hundreds of thousands of Buddhas appearing in it; 6) for one whose knowledge of emptiness is still immature to find fault with the five perfections (påramitås), to praise the sixth perfection, and
to sink into an evil path; 7) for one who favors dwelling in a forest (åra√yaka) not to practice for benefiting others; 8) for one not to teach the Buddha’s teachings to those who are capable of being taught; 9) for one to expound treatises not related to the Buddha’s teachings and hinder the latter from being manifested; 10) for one to call evil friends truly good ones; 11) for one to remain conceited, not to humble oneself either to one’s master or one’s parents; and 12) for one to be indulged in being wealthy, remaining lazy and arrogant— these are the twelve evil enticements.”
The Sutra of Ratnakumåra (T. 17: 952c–953c) says:
The Buddha said, “Self-cultivating bodhisattvas have three kinds of agreement between what they say and what they are: 1) They don’t deceive Buddha Tathågatas; 2) they don’t deceive any living beings; and 3) they don’t deceive themselves. Because they are determined to attain awakening, they don’t long for lesser fruits. Even though they may surer in various ways, they won’t be alarmed or upset. This is how they don’t deceive Buddhas, living beings, or themselves. “Further, there are four modes of being in which bodhisattvas don’t deceive Tathågatas: 1) being firm and stable, 2) inspiring awe, 3) exerting themselves to the utmost, and 4) being strenuous in keeping precepts. The four modes of being in which they don’t deceive living beings are: 1) being firmly determined to keep learning and cultivating themselves, 2) imparting delight to others out of friendliness, 3) sympathizing with supering people out of compassion, and 4) accepting living beings without exception. The four modes of being in which they don’t deceive themselves are: 1) being firm and stable, 2) being firm and stable without end, 3) not flattering, and 4) being free from deceit.”
The Foreword to the Brahmå Net Sutra101 says:
When you keep moral precepts and don’t feel guilty, your longings will also be fulfilled.
If we keep our Ωala or moral precepts clean, then without fail our samådhi and prajñå will be fulfilled completely.
No other blame against or doubt about the Zen school, if there were any, need to be taken up for our consideration, and thus the [third] gate, “Eliminating People’s Doubts,” has been established.
By the fourth gate, “Scriptural Verification by Ancient People of Virtue,” I mean the proofs that ancient people of virtue practiced the principle of this school. There are ten.
Dhyåna Master Nanyue [Hui]si (Nangaku Eshi) of Chen (Chin) came across Great Master102 Bodhi dharma (Daruma) and received direct teachings from him.
Besides, the Postscript to A Treatise on the Contemplation of Mind of the Tiantai school103 says:
The Great Master of the Shaolin (Shorin) Temple on Mount Song (Sezan) handed down the truth of Chan to Dhyåna Master [Hui]si of Nanyue; [Huisi] handed down the Chan truth to Dhyåna Master Zhizhe (or Zhiyi; Chisha or Chigi) of Tiantai.
9b on Mount Tiantai and personally received transmission of [Mount] Niutou; great awakening suddenly dawned on him.
These are none other than so many examples of scriptural verification for the Zen school.
Thus established is the [fourth] gate, “Scriptural Verification by Ancient People of Virtue.”
By the fifth gate, “The Sects of the Zen School’s Lineage,” I mean that this seal of the mind105 was transmitted down through the past seven Buddhas, and that the close transmission that has been continuing, one lineage106 after another, makes it uninterrupted. Reasons for the Rise of the Chan School (Showahobo Somokuroku, General Index 2, 770a) says:
And the Chan school is observed to have started in the times of the preceding Buddhas, as long ago as kalpas as numerous as dust particles.
According to the Longer Records of the Buddha’s Words:107
During the past kalpa of supernal mainfestations (vyihakalpa; zhuangyanjie; shogongo), there appeared a thousand Buddhas in the world; the last three of them were counted as the first three of the seven Buddhas with whom the present [auspicious] kalpa began.
The seven Buddhas kept entrusting one after another with the seal of the mind. Their oral transmission exists apart from this. Their lineage relationship is as108 follows: The Buddhas 1) VipaΩyin,
2) ¸ikhin, 3) ViΩvabhu, 4) Krakucchanda, 5) Kona ka muni, 6) KåΩyapa, and 7) ¸åkyamuni.
¸åkyamuni, forty-nine years after attaining awakening, was with a large assembly at a shrine named Bahuputraka (“Having Plen ty of Children”)109 on Vulture Peak.110 He praised Mahå kåΩyapa, overed him half his seat, and said:
I am entrusting you with the eye of the Dharma that is pure and clean, the sublime mind of nirvana, the reality that is without form, the authentic truth that is subtle. You should protect and uphold this.
He also ordered Ånanda to help KåΩyapa preserve the eye of the Dharma and not let it be interrupted. He also composed a verse.111
The Sutra on Handing Over a Lotus Flower (T. 16: 127b–128c) says:
The Buddha, looking at KåΩyapa far in the distance, said to him, “Welcome, KåΩyapa. It’s a long time since we met. You should take this half of the Buddha’s seat.” When the Buddha moved aside, the three thousand worlds quaked. KåΩyapa said to the Buddha, “I don’t dare sit at the seat of the Buddha’s robe and bowl. The Buddha is a great master, while I am a disciple. In the past, from the Buddha I received a saµghåta robe.112 Holding it high with esteem, I didn’t dare wear it. . . . Since that time I have had no lust. I received the Buddha’s robe when I was in the process of self-cultivation. When I raised it in my hands above my head, I attained the ultimate fruit of no-cultivation. I followed the Buddha’s suggestion and received the Tathågata’s robe. Although it is in my possession, I dare not think it has lessened in value. I only hold it in my hands but dare not place it beneath me. If [my hands are] not washed and cleaned, I also dare not hold it. How could I make little of it by placing it below my
9c
head? . . . The Lord of the Dharma had no master to follow but in a self-elected manner has attained awakening. That is not common to any nråvaka or pratyekabuddha.”113
The Buddha said, “Well said, well said. It is as you have said.” . . . The Buddha then said to Kåoyapa, “Now take this seat, and ask me anything you are wondering about. I shall expound my view for you.”
Kåoyapa then rose from his seat, bowed his head at the Buddha’s feet, and, as he was told to, sat.
The Sutra on the Great Drum of the Truth (T. 9: 291c) says:
Kåoyapa said to the Buddha, “The Tathågata is great enough to treat me respectfully. By ‘respectfully’ I mean the Tathågata once told me, ‘Come and sit with me.’ It is for this reason that I naturally feel deeply obliged to the Tathågata.”
The Buddha said, “Well said. That is why I treat you respectfully.”
[What follows is the Dharma transmission in the Zen school:]114 The first, Mahåkåoyapa; the second, Ånanda; the third, ¸ånavåsin; the fourth, Upagupta; the fifth, Dhatika; the sixth, MiΩraka; the seventh, Vasumitra; the eighth, Buddhanandi; the ninth, Buddha mitra; the tenth, Pårova; the eleventh, Pu√yayaoas; the twelfth, AΩvaghoa; the thirteenth, Kapimala; the fourteenth, Någårjuna; the fifteenth, Kå√adeva; the sixteenth, Råhulåtta; the seventeeth, Saµgha nandi; the eighteenth, Gayåoa†a; the nineteenth, Kumåra låta; the twentieth, Jayanta; the twenty-first, Vasubandhu; the twenty-second, Manorhita; the twenty-third, Kroñcaratna; the twenty-fourth, Siµha; the twenty-fifth, VaΩi≈†ha; the twenty-sixth, Puryamitra; the twenty-seventh, Prajñottara; and the twenty-eighth, Bodhidharma.
Great Master [Bodhidharma] crossed the South Asian Sea and reached Guangfu (Kofu) in Putong (Futsi) the eighth year of Liang (Ryo), the year of dingwei (teimi; hinoto-hitsuji). In November of the same year he arrived in Luoyang; it was Taihe (Taiwa), the tenth year of Wei (Gi).115 He stayed in Shaolin (Shorin) Temple on Mount Song. . . . He looked at Huike (Eka) and said:
In the past the Tathågata entrusted the eye and treasury of the Dharma to Mahåsattva Kåoyapa. Then it has been entrusted one to another, and has finally come to me. I am going to entrust it to you. You should protect and uphold it. I’ll also give you a yellowish-red garment. Use it for acquiring people’s trust in the truth. . . . Two hundred years after my death, the robe will no longer be handed down, while the Dharma will circulate throughout the worlds as many as the grains of sand of the Ganges River. . . . There will be more than a thousand, ten thousand people who accord with it secretly, and who attain it personally. . . . Listen to my verse. . . . ”116
[Here follows the Dharma transmission in the Zen school from the Second Patriarch of Chinese Chan to Eisai, in the lineage of the Huanglong (ORyo) branch:] the twenty-ninth, Great Master [Hui]ke (Eka); the thirtieth, Great Master [Seng]can (Sosan); the thirty-first, Great Master [Dao]xin (Doshin); the thirty-second, 10a Great Master [Hong]ren (Gunin); the thirty-third, Great Master [Hui- ] neng (Eno); the thirty-fourth, Great Master [Nanyue
Huai]rang (Nangaku Ejo); the thirty-fifth, Chan Master [Mazu
Dao]yi (Baso Doitsu); the thirty-sixth, Chan Master [Baizhang
Huai]hai (Hyakuj o Ekai); the thirty-seventh, Chan Master [Huangbo Xi]yun (Obaku Kiun); the thirty-eighth, Chan Master [Linji Yi]xuan (Rinzai Gigen); the thirty-ninth, Chan Master [Xinghua Cun]jiang (Koke Zonsho); the fortieth, Chan Master [Nanyuan Hui]yong (Nan’in Egy o); the forty-first, Chan Master [Fengxue Yan]zhao (Fuketsu Ensho); the forty-second, Chan Master [Shoushan Shong]nian (Shuzan SHonen); the forty-third, Chan Master [Fengyang Shan]zhao (Fun’yo Zensho); the forty-fourth Chan Master [Shishuang Chu]yuan (Sekiso Soen); the forty-fifth, Chan Master [Huanglong Hui]nan (Oryo Enan); the forty-sixth, Chan Master [Huitang Zu]xin (Kaido Soshin); the forty-seventh, Chan Master [Linyuan Wei]qing (Reigen Isei); the forty-eighth, Chan Master [Zhangling Shou]zhuo (Chorei Shutaku); the forty-ninth, Chan Master [Wushi Jie]shen (Mushi Kaijin); the fiftieth, Chan Master [Xinwen Tan]ben (Shinmon Donhi); the fifty-first, Chan Master [Xue’an Cong]jin (Setsu’an Shokin); the fifty-second, Chan Master [Xu’an Huai]chang (Ki’an Esho); the fifty-third, Eisai.
In the spring of the third year of Nin’an in Japan, the year of boshi (wuzi; tsuchinoe-ne, 1168) I intended to cross the sea. I reached the port of Hakata, Chinzei (Kyushu), where in February I happened to meet an interpreter for the two imperial courts, Li Dezhao (Ri Tokusho). He told me [he had learned] through hearsay that there was a Buddhist school called Chan flourishing in the Song dynasty. In April I crossed the sea and arrived in Mingzhou (Meishi of the Great Song, and first met a Chan master in charge of reception at Guanghuisi (Koeji). I asked him: “Patriarchs of my country, who had transmitted Chan, returned home, but the school is now neglected and lost. I came here because I intend to help the abandoned school flourish. I pray you may reveal the gist of the religion. I wonder, what is the Dharma transmission verse by the Chan school’s patriarch, Great Master Bodhi dharma?”
The receptionist monk replied, “The Dharma transmission verse by Great Master Bodhidharma is this: . . .”
I asked him, “In my country, Japan, there has been a verse by
Great Master Bodhidharma, entitled, ‘Knowing the Time of Death.’117 What do you think about its authenticity?”
The receptionist monk answered, “What is expressed there is something an evil person of little capacity composed in delusion. Speaking of the way of birth and death in our school, I would say that coming and going, living and dying, are basically equal. Originally there is no principle of generation and extinction. If anyone says he knows the time of death, he is deceiving others as to the way of our patriarch. It will do no small harm. For a long time I have heard that in the land of Japan the Buddha’s teachings have prevailed. Fortunately I have met you, my respected master. I must present you my view in written words.
“Yes, human beings have the difference of Chinese and non Chinese. But the Buddha’s teachings have the single truth of the mind. The moment one realizes oneness of the mind,118 one knows that the truth is a single gate. It is what the Diamond Sutra (T. 8: 749c) says, ‘You should give rise to the mind that abides nowhere.’
“When you want to know its original streams, please pay a visit to me. I shall speak with you about each of them. Extensively knowing the way of the patriarchs exceeds inference made from the viewpoint of the Small Vehicle.”
This was in Qiandao (Kendo) the fourth year of Song, the year of wuzi (1168). In the autumn I returned to Japan. Then, reading
Annen’s Treatise on Teaching Time Polemics, I knew the names of the nine Buddhist schools. Besides, carefully reading Chisho’s Sim ilarities and Dissimilarities of the Teaching Forms, I knew the details of Dharma transmission in the Japanese Tendai school on Mount Hiei. Next, I saw Great Master Dengyo’s Genealogy and knew that our Mount Hiei had received the transmission of the Dharma. Since then I kept nourishing this thought, and twenty years passed. I intended to pay a visit to the eight holy stupas that had been built in memory of ¸åkyamuni in India. In March, the third year of Bunji in Japan, the year of teimi (dingwei, 1187), I left my native land. I took with me a list of the lineages of the various schools as well as a book on the geography of the western districts. On reaching the land of the Song I first went to the capital, Lin’anfu, visited the Undersecretary of Pacification, and reported my wish to travel through India. I presented to him a paper which conveyed my wishes as follows:119
Dragging this half-shadow of mine on planks laid across a precipice,
I shall terminate the whole body on the equable diamond seat of awakening.
However, he did not give me a certificate; he just told me that my case was on record, and kept me from leaving for the west. I could not but weary myself thinking about India: “Is the time not yet come? Does my attainment not accord with oneness?”120 It was in Chuxi (Junki), the fourteenth year of the Brilliant Song, the year dingwei (1187). Then I climbed Mount Tiantai, and took a rest in Wannian Temple. Seeking instruction from the head priest of the temple, Chan Master [Huai]chang (Esho), I practiced Chan with him and asked the Way of him. Through him I gained a good understanding of the style of the Linji school. I recited the precepts of the Vinaya in Four Divisions. I finished reciting the precepts of the bodhisattva restraints. Finally, in July, the autumn of Shaoxi (Shoki) the second year of Song, the year of xinhai (shingai; kanoto-i, 1191)—the second year of Kenkyo in Japan—I returned home. When I parted with the Chan master, he brushed a calligraphy121 for me which read:
The Great Dharma Master of the Senkoin, Japan (by which he meant me, [Ei]sai), has had an ingenious disposition ever since his previous lives. He swiftly abandoned worldly life with its heavy entanglements of obligations and elections, followed the Buddha to receive the tonsure, wore a saµghåtarobe, magnaminously held this teaching, and, not minding the distance of ten thousand li, arrived by sea in our land of the Brilliant Song to search out the mysteries of the principle.
In the year of Qiandao wuzi (1168) he sauntered on the mountain of Tiantai and, upon seeing the excellent beauty of the mountains, rivers, and land, as well as the special purity of the seat of awakening, he greatly rejoiced. Once he gave a faithful donation, making overrings to those bodhisattvas who had gathered from the ten directions to learn to practice prajñå. He also went to the stone bridge, where he overed incense, made tea, and saluted the living five hundred great arhats.
Soon he returned to his native country. He remained in our dream for exactly twenty years. Although they did not hear from him, elder mendicants in this mountain were vividly reminded of those days. Now memories of his previous visit have been revived. Our old relationship seems to have been far from shallow. With his diligence and determination deepened, I could not but indicate the essence of the Dharma to him.
In the past, when the aged ¸åkyamuni was about to manifest perfect cessation (parinirvåva), he entrusted the mind of nirvana, the eye and treasury of the Dharma, to Mahå- kåoyapa, which has been transmitted generation after generation up to me. Now I entrust this Dharma to you. Protect and uphold it and, bearing the patriarchs’ seal on yourself, return home to help the latter-day world attain awakening. Reveal the Dharma to living beings, and keep the authentic truth continuously alive among them. I also give you a Kaaya (“dyed yellowish-red”) garment. Great Master [Bodhidharma], in the past, transmitted a robe to help people have trust in its bearer. It was an expression of the truth that originally there was nothing to which to cling. When it was handed down to the Sixth Patriarch, its transmission ceased.
Although the style is out of vogue now, I give you a sangha†a robe only for the sake of its bearer gaining people’s trust in a foreign country. I ordain you in the bodhisattva Ωala. A sta›, a bowl, and the other essentials of a monk—all of these are given to you without exception. Listen to my verse of Dharma transmission. . . .
This school, ever since the Sixth Patriarch, has gradually divided itself into sects, and has caused the Dharma to circulate over the four seas. Its generations [from Master Nanyue Huairang up to me] have grown to twenty; its lineage streams became five (i.e., the five leading Chan sects: Fayan [H ogen], Linji [Rinzai], Weiyang [Igyo], Yunmen [Unmon], and Caodong [Soto]). The one that most widely flourishes now is the Linji sect. Since the seven [past] Buddhas down to Eisai, about sixty generations have succeeded in the lineage. Indeed, it is with good reason that the teachings of the Buddha-Dharma have had public verification. In the above I gave a single branch of Dharma transmission alone. For the rest of the branches, you may see them in a diagram separately prepared. We have come to the end of the [fifth] gate, “The Sects of the Zen School’s Lineage.”
By the sixth gate, “Scriptural Evidence for Promoting People’s Confidence in the Zen School” I mean what follows:
The principle of this Zen school does not set up any words out of which to make dogma. It has been specially transmitted outside of scriptural teachings. It does not cling to passages taught; it only transmits the seal of the mind. It is free from letters, being without words. Through directly pointing to the source of the mind,122 it has one attain awakening. We see verification for this scattered in various sutras and nåstras. Let me show you a few of them to have them serve as proofs of the present school.
The Flower Ornament Sutra (T. 9, no. 278, 449c) says:
At the time of original aspiration (bodhicitta) one attains authentic awakening.
It also says (T. 10, no. 279, 89a):
Upon realizing that everything that has its own characteristics is immediately the self-nature of the mind, one fulfills the body of wisdom; no realization through others achieves this. The Heap of Jewels Sutra (T. 11, vol. 52, 308c) says:
The original nature of the mind is like the moon reflected in water.
It also says (T. 11, vol. 62, 361b):
The self-nature of everything that has its own characteristics is unobtainable. As in a dream one tries to satisfy desires, every attempt is made in vain. Things arise according to imagination and turn out to be unreal. This is also how the World honored One knows things.
The Vimalakarti Sutra (T. 14, I, 538c) says:
As the mind is free from discrimination, the Buddha’s land becomes free from discrimination.
It also says (T. 14, IX, 551c) in elect:
Vimalakarti remained silent.123
The Laçkå[vatåra]-sitra (T. 16, II, 492a) says:
The Tathågatas’ nondiscrimination dhyåna.124
The Mahåprajñåpåramitå Sutra (T. 7, fasc. 409, 49a) says:
What is seen as having form does not have its own being, and is unobtainable. Even all-knowing wisdom (sarvajñajñåna) has no being of its own and is unobtainable.
It also says:125
There being no words is called the Buddha-Dharma.
And this:
The ultimate way of reality has no words; all verbal expressions are so many secular explications.
The Diamond Sutra (T. 8, X, 749c) says:
You should give rise to the mind that abides nowhere.
It also says (T. 8, XXVI, 752a):
If anyone insists that the Tathå gata has any truth that is verbally expounded, he is blaming the Buddha without reason.
It also says (T. 8, XXVI, 752a):
If anyone sees me as form, his practice is deluded.
The Lotus Sutra (T. 9, II, 5c) says:
Only the Buddha with other Buddhas can exhaustively investigate the real form of all that has its own characteristics.
It also says (T. 9, XVI, 42c):
It is not like this; it is not deferent from this.
It also has this (T. 9, II, 10a):
It is impossible to manifest reality in words.
The Mahåparinirvå√a Sutra (T. 12: 406b) says:
The Tathågata eternally abides and does not surer change. . . . Anyone who expounds the truth in this way is a true disciple of mine.
It also says:126
Not a word have I expounded.
The Mahåprajñåpåramitå Treatise (T. 25: 190b) says:
Perfection (påramitå) of the knowledge of emptiness (prajñå) is the real truth, free from perversion, where memory, imagination, and contemplation are already removed, where verbal truth is extinguished, and innumerable transgressions are
11a done away with. It is free from discrimination; it is the mind that is constant and one. People of such honorable, deep wisdom can see the truth, knowing emptiness. It is like space, free from contamination, deceit, and words. If anyone contemplates in this way, he is regarded as seeing the Buddha. If contemplated as they truly are, the three—Buddha, knowledge of emptiness (prajñå), and nirvana—are of one characteristic; in truth, there is no difference among them.
The Mantra school’s Mahåvairocana Sutra (T. 18: 9b) says:
Being awakened that I am originally free from birth and from verbal modes of being, I have attained liberation from all faults. I have become free from causal conditioning. I know emptiness like space. Wisdom that knows reality as it truly is has arisen in me. Already free from all kinds of darkness, I am of the ultimate nature and without defilement.
The Middle Treatise (T. 30: 1b; quoted above, p. 84) says: Question: Why do you compose this treatise?
Answer: During the last five hundred-year period . . . people are dull-witted and deeply attached to. . . verbal expressions, [and give rise to perverted views. That is why] the author composed this Middle Treatise.
The Tiantai school’s Great Calming and Contemplation (T. 46:
1c and 3a) says:
Tiantai (Master Zhiyi, the speaker,) transmits Nanyue’s three kinds of cessation and contemplation. . . . In spite of the latter’s three passages, one should not be attached to any of them. Otherwise, tumors will grow on oneself. The [Mahå prajñå- påramitå] Treatise (T. 25, XVIII, 190c) says: “Knowing emptiness and not knowing emptiness—all make bondage and all make liberation.” The same is true with the three passages. The Mahåparinirvå√a Sutra (T. 12: 520b) says: “If anyone knows the Tathågata never expounds the awakened truth, that one will be called a person of much hearing. This indicates that not making exposition is at once exposition.”
The Scripture on the Explication of Underlying Meaning (T.
16: 712c) says:
The self-attained truth that is formless is free from verbal exposition and the four things. It is the awakened truth free from polemics, which is the characteristic common to everything, and which goes beyond being an object of discriminating consciousness.
By the “four things” the sutra means seeing, hearing, and other [sense] perceptions, as well as knowing by consciousness.
The Sutra of [the Jain] Satyaka’s [Instruction] (T. 9: 326a) says:
It is because the nature of everything in the world is free from discrimination.
The Sutra of Moonlight Samådhi (T. 15: 550b) says:
The self-nature of everything that has its own characteristics is equal, free from deceit, and in self-concentration (samådhi). The MañjuΩra Inquiry Sutra (T. 14: 495c) says:
That this goes beyond calculation, being free from mind, ego consciousness, and perceptive consciousnesses, and that every verbal expression is cut o› with it—this is the practice of prajñå.
The Sutra of Examining through Divination (T. 17: 907a) says:
Bodhisattva K≈itigarbha (“Earth Womb”) said, “By the one real realm I mean the self-nature of living beings. From the beginning it is free from generation and extinction, free from discrimination by its self-nature.”
The Sutra of the Diamond Samådhi (T. 9: 373a) says:
Anything that has its own characteristics is originally free from existence and nonexistence. It is free from self and other, too. It has no beginning and no end. With it, success and failure have no place.
The Sutra of King Longevity (T. 3: 387c) says:
Being self-elected, liberation is not the gift of any teacher. For my practice I am under no teacher’s care. Determined to proceed alone, I have no companion. . . . The ultimate path is free from journeying to and fro; it is deep and subtle, pure, wondrous, and true.
The Sutra of the Bodhisattva Precepts for Practicing Good (T.
30: 973b) says:
Bodhisattvas, for the sake of awakening, practice dhyåna, enjoy delight in this life, and keep body and mind calm and composed—this is called benefiting oneself. Because of the tranquility of body and mind, they do not worry living beings.
This is called benefiting others.
The Demonstration of Consciousness Only (T. 31, X, 54–59a) says in elect:
Everything of the world that has its own characteristics is nothing but what makes itself known (vijñaptimåtra), without any substance.
The Treatise on Awakening Confidence (T. 32: 576a, Liang version) says:
Free from the characteristics of verbal expression.
We might have to exhaustively quote passages on the essentials of Zen, which ¸åkyamuni expounded in his lifetime. Here, however, I have shown only a few. I hope readers will know the same is true with other sources. In other words, all the expositions by the Tathågata that appear in the sutras, some being provisional and others unconditional, are meant for living beings to accept and hold the nondual truth of the Buddha as no-mind and sentient beings as mind. For this purpose he first made the skillful means of traps
11b and nets. Venerable Annen says [in the Treatise on Teaching Time Polemics] (T. 75: 355b; quoted above, p. 102):
[T]he Zen school, with its traps and nets amply employed by ¸åkyamuni all his life, and ultimately with emphasis on the transmission of mind to mind without reliance on scriptural authority, constitutes the heart of all the Buddhas’ [teachings].
Great Master Chisho says [in the Similarities and Dissimilarities of the Teaching Forms] (T. 74: 312c; quoted above, p. 101):
Its principle is that the mind is nothing other than the Buddha. A mind freed from clinging to anything constitutes its religious act.
I pray that seekers of the Way in the latter-day world may undertake the study of the eight treasuries and cultivate the myriad practices, that they may not be deceived by the partial mind, and that they may use the strength of this Zen principle to extinguish grave sins. The Commentary on the Mahåvairocana Sutra says in elect (T. 39: 582b): “Attaining prajñå without relying on dhyåna is quite impossible.”127
If anyone can realize the aim of prajñå, his sins are certain to be extinguished. The reason is that for causing the extinction of sins nothing surpasses the real characteristics of prajñå. The Tiantai school’s Great Calming and Contemplation (T. 46: 39c; quoted above, p. 111) says:
If anyone commits grave sins of the nature of phenomena (dharmas), he will find the practice of four kinds of self-concentration to be the way of repentance. The Sutra on Contemplation of Samantabhadra says in elect: “Taking the [seated meditation] posture and focusing one’s thought on the true mode of reality. . . this is called the first repentance.”
The Sutra on the Most Wondrous Supreme Dhyåna says: “Transgressors of the four grave oneness and the five grave transgressions will, except for deepening their thought (dhyåna), have no way to be saved.”
All this provides scriptural evidence for the Zen school. Hence the [sixth] gate, “Scriptural Evidence for Promoting People’s Confidence128 in the Zen School,” has been established.
The seventh gate, “Citing a General Principle and Exhorting People to Practice Zen,” has three aspects. They are: 1) teaching, 2) Zen, and 3) the general aspect. First, by teaching I mean various teachings. People of not very brilliant capacity will first examine the admirable ideas of various teachings and schools. When they learn the essentials of Zen, those teachings will serve as the means for cultivating themselves to enter Zen. The Collection of Records from the Ancestral Mirrors quotes sixty sutras and Ωåstras, collects the excellent purports of the three schools,129 and comments on the expressions of more than three hundred authorities. It does so in order to expound the essentials of the Chan school.
Second, by Zen I mean the Buddha’s dhyåna. It is not adhering to words, not being bound by mind or thought. Therefore, one penetrates this by getting free from mind, ego consciousness, and perceptive consciousnesses. One learns this by transcending the paths of the unweakened and the awakened. In this way Zen concerns people of superb brilliance.
Third, by the general aspect I mean what follows. The so-called teachings and so-called Zen are nothing but names. To say “penetrating” and “learning” are also provisional matters. “I,” “others,” “living beings,” “awakening” (bodhi), and “nirvana” are all names, too. They don’t substantially exist. The teachings expounded by the Buddha are also names; there is nothing expounded. Therefore, the Zen principle is free from the characteristics of words, free from those objects of the mind. It is beyond thought and deliberation and ultimately unobtainable. Concerning the Buddha-Dharma (lit., “the Buddha’s awakened truth”), what has no Dharma to be expounded is called the Buddha-Dharma. What I now call Zen is an expression of that characteristic.
Since the three aspects mentioned above are provisional names, if anyone insists that the Buddha’s dhyåna has letters and words, he is blaming the Buddha, Dharma, and Sangha. Therefore, the patriarch [Bodhidharma] did not set up words out of which to make any dogma but, by directly pointing to the human mind, causes one to see one’s self-nature [as no-mind] and attain awakening.
This was the so-called Chan (Zen) gate.
He who takes hold of names and letters misses the Dharma. He who clings to characteristics and appearances is also perverted.
Originally there being no moving and nothing to be obtained is called the Buddha-Dharma,130 the Buddha’s truth. The Buddha- 11c Dharma lies just in walking, standing, sitting, and lying down. Adding even a bit to it is impossible, whereas taking away just a bit is also impossible. Realizing this, you will not waste even the slightest energy. As soon as you estimate it by deliberation to be something marvelous and mysterious, you already have nothing to do with it. Therefore, if you move, you will be arousing the base of birth and death. If you stay quiet, you will be getting drunk in the area that is dark and heavy. If you forget both movement and quietude, you will squander your Buddha-nature.131 When nothing like this is available, what will you do?132
If you clarify the principle outside the scriptural teaching, you will never seek rules in words. Instead, immediately you will see, and pull up the garment and go. An arrow that has left the bow is not bound to return; none of the thousand sages would be able to grasp it.133 If you have not reached this source of creativity, you should take care not to be so careless and arrogant as to try to cheat others. Otherwise, the final day of the year-end month134 will see you incapable of making use of it.
Have you not heard this? [In the days of the Five Dynasties in China], a Chan monk laughed at Elder Monk Fu of Taiyuan (Taigen) [when he was expounding the Mahåparinirvå√a Sutra]. Immediately then and there Fu realized Chan, with the result that his name came to be known throughout the nine divisions of the entire country. [As recorded in the Blue Cliff Record] (T. 48: 183ab, case 47, and 222bc, case 99), Fu said to the monk who laughed at him:135
Since I began lecturing on Buddhist scriptures, I have been fidgeting with my nose on the body born of my parents. Hereafter I shall never dare behave like that.
If someone goes into the sea to collect treasures, he should seek136 the “wish-fulfilling gem” (cintåma√i). If he cannot obtain one, nothing else will do. Among those who learn the Way, how can there not be one who knows a little but understands less? However, not attaining to this Great Matter is really to be grieved. A remark by an ancient man [of Chan] goes:137 “Insofar as you have not clarified the Great Matter, behave like when you lost your parents.”
¸åkyamuni, the aged man, originally made his appearance in the world for the sake of this Great Matter. Now what is the Great Matter and how is it clarified? By this I mean that one should attain great awakening once and for all; that is, one needs to see it for oneself. That alone enables you to open your own mouth and give expression to your own thoughts. On the other hand, insofar as you don’t attain, see, or reach awakening, however well you can expound the whole five thousand and forty-eight volumes of the Tripitaka, and with whatever skill during your exposition of them you can hold a bowl filled with water and not spill even a drop, this is only of the quantity level of the Dharma body. How remote it will be from the Great Matter!
Let me raise the case of the ancients who attained awakening. Try deliberating on this [passage from the Eye and Treasury of the True Dharma] (Zokuzokyo 2–23, 63b):
Venerable Luoshan138 asked Venerable Shishuang139 one day,
“When arising and perishing don’t cease, what shall I do?”
Shishuang said, “You need immediately to make yourself like cold ashes or a withered tree. Make one moment ten thousand years. Have the container and the lid fit together.”140
Luoshan did not accord with [Shishuang]. [Luoshan] then went to Venerable Yantou141 and presented the same question to him. Venerable Yantou, on hearing it, shouted, “Who is it that arises and perishes?”
At these words, Luoshan suddenly became awakened.
Now tell me, to what was he awakened? The ancients kept thinking of this, abiding in this. During all the twelve divisions of the day they continued to struggle with this [question]. For Luo shan, attaining awakening was everything. Only because worldly anxieties confusingly arose and perished without stopping in his mind did he raise that single question so as to ultimately clarify this matter.
Venerable elder masters prescribed medicines according to the disease. Some will find one dose erective. Others will need a variety of methods combined with the application of all kinds of acupuncture and moxibustion. Only with the disease gone and the medicine 12a removed does the whole body become light and clean—that fact alone verifies the elect. Among later way-seekers, those who don’t reach the original source are likely to distinguish between superior and inferior, and insist that Shishuang’s words for Luoshan were dead, whereas Yantou’s words for him were full of life. Discerning views like these are something held only after one buys sandals to travel on foot on a way-seeking journey.
One who fails to apprehend the aim of the steelyard hook wrongly clings to the measurement marks on the beam.142 A lion bites a man while a mad dog chases a clod of dirt thrown by him. Generally speaking, venerable elder masters never make a remark in vain. Way-seekers should by all means be equipped with the eye of discernment critical enough to be able to throw a pepper seed onto the tip of a needle.143 If one cannot discern what is right and what is not, it will be like poling a boat casually up the Shanxi (Senkei) Gorge.144 How could one reach the other shore?
Venerable Tianhuang145 said [in the Jingde Records of Transmission of the Lamp] (T. 51, XIV, 313b):146
Roam through your own inclinations;
Be free, carefree, following conditions.
Exhaust the feeling of being unweakened,
With no self-understanding of being awakened.
If instructions were needed, they would all, the master meant, be [like] painting legs for a snake.
[According to the Eye and Treasury of the True Dharma, fasc.
5] (Zokuzokyo 2–23, 61b),Venerable Qinglin147 said:
What is inside the patriarchs’ gate is as profoundly subtle as
traces of birds [in the sky]. When [one’s] resorts [have been] exhausted, all pass the crisis. Unless it is investigated, it can hardly be clarified. Reaching this point, you should penetrate it by getting free from mind, ego consciousness, and perceptive consciousnesses. Learn it by transcending the paths of the unweakened and the awakened. Only then can you hold it yourself. Otherwise, no one can be the child of the Chan school.
I wish I could give all such wonderful words of ancient masters, for they express the profound gist of their whole lives.
Any way-seeker who wants to practice this Dharma148 should be a bodhisattva who practices to know emptiness, to arouse great compassion, to make the comprehensive vow, to cultivate himself in self-concentration, to be equipped with a great bodhisattva’s pure, wonderful precepts, and to exert all his resorts to cause living beings to attain awakening, seeking liberation not solely for himself.
Thus149 you may relinquish all connections with the world, put the myriad a›airs to rest. Keep body and mind one, no matter whether moving or at rest. Drink and eat neither too much nor too little. Regulate your sleep, not making it too short nor too long. Sit cross-legged, keeping the eyes slightly open. In this posture, with the breath already regulated and worldly associations long forgotten, you will make yourself into one. If you realize the purport of this posture, spontaneously all the four elements of your physical being will become light and stable. You will enjoy the so-called truth of bliss and stability. For one who has already attained this, it will be like a dragon that has gotten [an ample supply of] water. To one who has not yet attained this, let me advise you to establish self-confidence and never withdraw in aversion.
When you come out of dhyåna, move your body slowly at first, and be dignified and reserved in rising. All the time preserve the strength of dhyåna as if protecting an infant. Then it will be easy for the power of dhyåna to grow. Just as divers prefer quiet waves for seeking pearls as in the moving water it is extremely difficult to find them, when the dhyåna water is clean and clear the pearl of the Mind spontaneously appears. The Sutra of Perfect Awakening (T. 17: 919a) says: “The unhindered nondiscrimination wisdom arises from dhyåna.”
Herewith we know that transcending the unweakened way of being to enter into the Awakened Way requires quietude as its necessary condition. All our basic postures of walking, standing, sitting, and lying down should rest on the strength of dhyåna.
This is something to be achieved most urgently.
If you want to attain dhyåna, you must depend on practicing morality. There is no reason for attaining dhyåna without the provision of moral precepts.
An Essential Understanding of Dhyåna Practice (T. 15: 292b) says:
It is like a monkey tied to a post. All day long it runs about, and the chain always pulls it back. When it gets to the end of the chain, it rests. The monkey’s attention, like the chain, 12b is directed to the post. Our mind is compared to this monkey. A practitioner’s self-contemplation is also like this. Gradually the mind is controlled and made to abide in itself as the object of contemplation. If the mind abides here long, it accords with the practice of dhyåna.
Therefore, if you want to accomplish this dhyåna, keep yourself morally clean without a flaw; for controlling yourself with the help of moral restraints resembles that monkey. The Sutra of Moral Conduct says:
Keep your mind tied to itself and prevent it from being negligent, just like a monkey that is attached to a chain.
I am an uncouth person born and brought up in Japan, living in a forest at the foot of a mountain. Following my predecessors’ example, I undertook long journeys across rivers and seas. Wearing a soiled robe, I spent days sitting [in meditation], facing a wall in silence. I was content with my lot and refrained from stating my view to others, for I felt deeply ashamed at my way of life which was full of stupidities.
Recently, however, following the ancient masters’ footsteps for awhile, I observed a Chinese master’s style of awakening. He was often eagerly attentive but would also very often stop. However, as soon as I burned a stick of incense to salute the master (Xu’an Hua ichang; Ki’an Esho), the relationship of guest and host was established between us. Fortunately, raising the patriarch’s instructions, I had an early opening of the eye of awakening. Repeatedly I cultivated the method of transcending birth and death and, entering the Way, I returned home. Since I have already achieved the unity of being, I would very much like to help the patriarch’s Way greatly flourish in this country of Japan. That is the only reason I have taken upon myself the responsibility for its realization and at the same time pray heartily for that result.
Because of this I have made repeated cultivation of the method of transcendence, and when I look back150 on it again and again, I see not one word to be transmitted and circulated. In the ancient days, to the repeated censure from a Jain, the Well-awakened One (Sugata) ¸åkyamuni retorted with the unity of silence. That precisely accords with the present case. Whether the school itself is shallow or deep is known by one who gains its purport. Please don’t exhaust yourself by knocking at the gate or grasping at the sky. Great Sage Någårjuna means this when he says [in the Mahå prajñåpåramitå Treatise] (T. 25, XI, 139c):
Existence is not anything; nonexistence is not anything; existence-nonexistence is not anything; neither existence nor nonexistence is not anything. This kind of exposition is also not anything.
He also says [in the same treatise] (T. 25, XVIII, 190b):
There is no verbal expansion; there are no words. If anybody
can contemplate like this, he is regarded as seeing the Buddha.
We have seen the general principle of the Zen school. The Laçkå[vatåra]-sitra (T. 16: 492a) gives four kinds of dhyåna:
1) The kind of dhyåna that serves for ignorant people; 2) that which investigates the meaning of reality; 3) that which rests on the true mode of reality (tathatå) as its base (ålambana); and 4) that which, free from discrimination, is the Tathågata’s way of being (tåthågataµ dhyånam). The last is so called because when there is penetration into the mode of the Tathågata stage, there is abiding in the personally attained noble wisdom.
These are the characteristics of Zen.
End of Fascicle Two
Fascicle Three
Now I would like to exhort youth of the latter-day world to make this Zen the right occasion for immediately attaining awakening. 12c No matter whether you might think you have heard little and have slight understanding, or whether you consider yourself too dull to gain wisdom, if you wholeheartedly practice sitting dhyåna, you will inevitably attain awakening. The Sutra of the Bodhisattva Precepts for Practicing Good (T. 30: 973b; quoted above, p. 142) says:
Bodhisattvas, for the sake of awakening, practice dhyåna, enjoy delight in this life, and keep body and mind calm and composed—this is called benefiting oneself. Because of the tranquility of body and mind, they do not worry living beings.
This is called benefiting others.
The Essentials for Chan Practice (Zokuzokyo 2–15, 419a) says:
According to my ordination teachers both of Ωala (upådhyåya) and of mantra (åcårya), what counts is to learn to practice dhyåna intently. It does not matter whether we have heard much or little.
For this reason a person of the latter-day world, no matter how dull-witted he may be, if he fastens his mind to the Buddha’s Ωala, tries making activity and rest no deferent from one another, remains concerned for all living beings, stops evil views, believes and accepts the Buddha’s words, concentrates his mind on one object, and stops various associations and related obligations, then he is really a person of dhyåna cultivation. The Bequeathed Teaching Sutra (T. 12: 1111a; quoted above, pp. 110, 124) says:
Dependence on this morality will give rise to various sorts of concentration and the wisdom that extinguishes supering.
Generally speaking, attaining confidence in just one phrase of the Buddha is the immediate way among a myriad virtues for attaining awakening. We have examples of this: [According to the Mahåprajñåpåramitå Treatise] (T. 25, XIV, 164c), when Ånanda taught the essentials of the five supernatural powers, Devadatta acquired them through cultivation in just one summer retreat. [According to the Sutra of Words of Truth on Great Acts] (T. 4: 588c–589ab, story no. 16), capanthaka, to whom the Buddha taught only one verse, attained the fruit of athwartship. A verse [in the Song Dynasty Biographies of Eminent Monks] (T. 50, XX, 837a) says:151
If one quietly sits in dhyåna for but a brief moment, this will exceed the merit of building seven-jeweled stupas as numerous as the grains of sand in the Ganges River. Even a stupa of gems will ultimately turn into dust but a single moment of the composed mind will attain authentic awakening.
The Sutra Treasury of Miscellaneous Jewels (T. 4, 494ab, story no. 114) says:
In olden days there was a monk who was aged and whose intellect was dark and hardened. When he saw young monks expound the truth of the four fruits of practice, he wished he could attain them. He told the young monks, “I pray that you will give me the four fruits of practice.” The young monks laughed in derision and told him, “We have the four fruits of practice. You should prepare a good meal for us before we give them to you.” Then the old monk rejoiced and managed to prepare a meal of rich food, and entertained them. The young monks, making a fool of the old monk, told him, “Sit in one corner of this shed. We are going to give you a fruit of practice.” When the old monk heard this, he was glad and sat. The young monks then struck the old monk on the head with a leather ball, saying, “This is the fruit of the srotaåpanna (“entering the stream toward nirvana”). The old monk heard this, fastened his thoughts to it, not scattering them, and immediately acquired the first fruit.
The young monks again made a fool of him, saying, “Although you have acquired the first fruit, still you cannot be free from seven births and deaths.” Then they made him move to another corner and, as before, struck him with the ball. The old monk strengthened his concentration and immediately attained the second fruit. In like manner, the old monk, shifting to each corner [of the room], attained all four fruits of practice and greatly rejoiced. He provided them with various meals, incense, and flowers, and asked them to allow him to return their favors.
He discussed with them the [thirty-seven] constituent factors of the Way to awakening. The young monks’ lofty utterances soon stagnated and finally stopped. The old monk at that very moment told them, “I have already attained the fruit of athwartship.” At this, all the young monks repented of belittling him.
Another story [from the Sutra Treasury of Miscellaneous Jewels] (T. 4: 494c, story no. 115) goes as follows:
In the past there was a woman who had deep confidence152 in the Three Treasures of Buddha, Dharma, and Sangha. She invited a monk to her house and made some overrings to him. After that the woman, with a sincere heart, closed her eyes, 13a sat calmly, and entreated him to expound a teaching. The monk failed to answer her request and stole away to his temple. However, she [continued to sit and] contemplate the reality of this conditioned life—impermanence, supering, and emptiness—which keep living beings from gaining self-abiding in anything. She deepened her thought in that contemplation and acquired the fruit of the srota-åpanna. As she had been able to attain this fruit, she went to the temple to find the monk in order to express her gratitude to him. The monk, ashamed, hid himself to avoid meeting her. Hearing her entreaties, however, he came out, and she then thanked him for providing her with the occasion to attain the fruit of the Way. The monk was bitterly ashamed.
These two cases reveal the virtue of confidence in the Dharma.
The Mahåprajñåpåramitå Treatise (T. 25: I, 63a) says:
What leads people to the great sea of the teachings of the Buddha-Dharma is confidence in the truth.
The Mantra school quotes the above passage and comments on it [in the Commentary on the Mahåvairocana Sutra] (Zokuzokyo 1–36, 264b):
When the god Brahmå implored him to turn the wheel of the Dharma, the Buddha said in verse:
I now open the gate of the immortal dew.
Any people confident in it will have joy.
This verse does not say that people who practice charity (dåna), morality (Ωala), listening to many discourses, perseverance (k≈ånti), great resort (vaya), dhyåna, or the knowledge of emptiness (prajñå) will have joy. It refers only to those who have confidence. This is the Buddha’s own suggestion. . . . For this reason, the power of confidence ranks first. It is not the knowledge of emptiness and virtues other than confidence that first lead one to the teachings of the Buddha-Dharma. The Diamond Sutra (T. 8: 750b) says:
Those in whom clear confidence arises that this is really true come to know the true characteristic of reality.
Ci’en’s (Jion) Commentary on the Diamond Sutra by the Dhar malak≈a√a School says:153
I declare that a moment of confidence perfuming and staying with the mind can break the unbounded extensive cycle of birth and death.
Huizhao (Esho) of Zizhou (Shishe) says in his Commentary [on the Diamond Sutra]:154
Even if one cannot attain the formless tathatå (ultimate reality), the power of confidence also can remove evils.
Therefore, through first gaining confidence in a few words of one’s master, one enters the dhyåna sea of the Buddha-Dharma. One can enter all the Buddha’s teachings only through one’s confidence in them. The Treatise on Awakening Confidence (T. 32: 590a, Tang version) says:
Question: All the Buddhas, with boundless skillful means, can benefit living beings in the ten directions. Why do living beings not always see Buddhas, observe supernatural transformations, or hear them expound the Dharma?
Answer: The Tathågatas really have such skillful means. What is required is only that living beings be free from discrimination. Then the Tathågatas will manifest themselves. In a mirror that has dirt on it no figures will appear. When the dirt is removed, [images then] appear there. It is the same with living beings. Insofar as they are not freed from dirt, their Dharma body never appears. When the dirt is gone, it appears.
The Sutra on Attaining the Mudrå that Effects the Strength of Confidence (T. 10, IV, 952b) says:
The Buddha said to MañjuΩra, “In this Jambu[dvapa] world the sun and moon manifest their circles in the water of all vessels when the water is clean and not muddy, unless hindered. Meanwhile, the sun and moon have never moved from their original places. The Tathågata is like this. Living beings who are to be transformed into their original way of being, can, with their own minds free from discrimination, all see the Tathågata. Meanwhile, the Tathågatas, as they originally are, do not move. In this way, the Tathågata will be present in the living beings in the ten directions of the world in whom confidence arises.”
Now, the monks of the Zen school who have chosen the way of being of body and mind that preserves both individual and sangha precepts (i.e., Ωala and vinaya), with the water of their mind clean and clear will immediately see their own mind, and moment after moment they will accord with every perfection (påramitå). However dull-witted and poor in wisdom they may be, because they keep morality pure and clean, the clouds of karma will vanish and the moon of the Mind will manifest itself brightly. The reason why the
Mahåparinirvå√a Sutra advocates the eternity of nirvana as the true support for morality155 is seen here.
Question: If that is the case, when we practice dhyåna, what precepts should we take?
Answer: The precepts given in the Vinaya in Four Divisions and the Brahmå Net Sutra [on the Bodhisattva ¸ala] are considered to be appropriate. I say this because in practicing them externally we learn the basic postures of Ωråvakas and internally embrace the friendly social concern of bodhisattvas.
Question: The Vinaya regulations against the five definitive distinctions of oneness and the seven groups of transgressions156 are Small [Vehicle] practices. Where is the need for our being equipped with the two vehicles? It is said that keeping the precepts for Ωråvakas is breaking the precepts for bodhisattvas. The Bodhisattva Stages (T. 30: 523a) extensively clarifies difference between the Great Vehicle and the Small Vehicle on keeping and breaking precepts, doesn’t it?
Answer: The original intent of the Buddha’s teachings lies only in avoiding evils and preventing wrongs. Concerning keeping or breaking precepts and permitting or restraining certain acts, if you grasp their purport and cultivate them, then it does not matter what vehicle you may choose. Vinaya Master Daoxuan says (in the preface to his Instructions and Admonitions on Observing Restraints, T. 45: 869b):
There are some who insist: “I am a person of the Great Vehicle. I don’t need the teachings of the Small Vehicle.” Such people internally betray the bodhisattvas’ heart and externally lack the Ωråvakas’ practice. Except for veterans in the Dharma, who could scrutinize it well?
How profound is this remark! It constitutes the central point of the Zen school. The Tiantai school’s Solutions for Propagation (T. 46, IV–1, 254a) says:
Question: “Why do we in the Great Vehicle apply precepts of the Small Vehicle and explain about the ten kinds of precept gainers?”
Answer: The Mahåparinirvå√a Sutra frequently expounds that the eternity of nirvana supports morality as its ultimate basis. We are thinking of the same principle here. The Small Vehicle works as skillful means. Then we know the mendicant bodhisattvas see no difference between themselves and Ωråvakas in regard to the six kinds of friendly mutual respect and the ten benefits for regulating morality, but that they diver with respect to the six perfections and the four extensive vows, which are lacking in the practice of the Small Vehicle. For lay bodhisattvas the three refuges (Buddha, Dharma, and Sangha) and the five precepts will all lead them to the attainment of awakening. Still more so with the Brahmå Net [Sutra on the Bodhisattva ¸ala]’s so-called eight myriad kinds of excellence appearing in one’s every posture of those who have been ordained in the Great Vehicle. All seven groups of the Buddha’s disciples actualize them. Beings of the five paths that surer from their respective modes of existence will also commonly be equipped with such excellence. How could one tolerate the breaking of precepts and call it the “Buddha vehicle”? That is why a parallel elucidation is made with the use of four phrases concerning yåna (vehicle) and Ωala (precepts) [with which one is either “relaxed” or “firm”].157
The same text says (T. 46: 255a):
Both the Mahå[parinirvå√a] Sutra (T. 12: 432bc) and the Exposition of the Ten Stages, referring to the [five] definitive distinctions of oneness and the [seven] groups of transgressions, say: “Bodhisattvas, great beings, hold those precepts of restraint.” You should158 know that precepts have no distinction of great or small. It depends on what the ordained expect of them. In other words, the Middle Way is not only a matter of emptiness and provisional forms; it also universally concerns respective precepts. Only then are we fully equipped with precepts.
The same text, in a preceding passage, says (T. 46: 254c):
The five definitive distinctions of oneness and the seven groups of transgressions given in the Mahåparinirvå√a Sutra (T. 12: 432bc) are the mendicant bodhisattvas’ precepts of restraint.
These passages mean that precepts, both great and small, are skillful means, through the cultivation of which one enters the Tathågatas’ dhyåna.
Someone insists, “One who is relaxed with Ωala (morality) while firm with yåna (vehicle or its principle) will encounter a Buddha’s lifetime. Why then should it be indispensable to practice Ωala?” But this kind of remark lacks reason. Who would wish to have Ωala relaxed? By those who encounter a Buddha’s lifetime while being relaxed with Ωala are meant those in evil [modes of existence] like någas and other beasts. When they feel grateful for longevity, they come to live in a Buddha’s lifetime due to the Buddha’s vow-power. However, it is far better to meet a Buddha in a human life or above in heaven. Concerning this, the Tiantai school’s Great Calming and Contemplation (T. 46: 39c) says:
In this way between cause and elect there are difference with reduction in the degree of transgression and thus varieties of rise and fall as its rewards. How could one say, “Keeping Ωala in reason leads to awakening; what is the use for keeping Ωala in phenomena?” It is fortunate to attain awakening as a human or heavenly being. What meaning could there be in doing one’s utmost to enter any of the three evil modes of existence (i.e., the realms of hell, hungry ghosts, and animals)?
In the present context, this passage sounds wonderful. We must, however, note the statement of the Mahåparinirvå√a Sutra (T. 12: 400c):
Being relaxed with Ωala is not considered to be relaxed. It is 13c with yåna (vehicle and its principle) that one is considered to be relaxed.
This statement refers to those who are relaxed both with yåna and Ωala [and emphasizes the importance of yåna]. It does not mean that one can favor being relaxed with Ωala.
The Great Calming and Contemplation (T. 46: 20a) further says: A sutra mentions:159
One may rather be a Devadatta160 than an Udraka Råmaputra.161
This has the same meaning as the above statement [of the Mahåparinirvå√a Sutra].
The Solutions for Propagation (T. 46: 254a, quoted above, p. 159) says: “How could one tolerate the breaking of precepts and call it the ‘Buddha vehicle’?” This passage means that, however firm one may be with yåna, breaking Ωala cannot be called the Buddha vehicle. How much less so with this Zen school? It does not seek for fulfillment in the distant future; it dares not expect some future benefit. It uses purifying precepts as skillful means. By drawing a poisoned arrow right before one’s eyes, it expects the wonderful attainment of awakening immediately in this life. The Sutra of the Bodhisattva Precepts for Practicing Good (T. 30: 973b, quoted above, pp. 142, 153) says:
Bodhisattvas, for the sake of awakening, practice dhyåna, enjoy delight in this life, and keep body and mind calm and composed—this is called benefiting oneself. Because of the tranquility of body and mind, they do not worry living beings.
This is called benefiting others.
All that this passage means is a reward in a future life, which is the case with most of the schools of the Great Vehicle. In this respect, theirs is deferent from this school’s intent. Their attainment cannot be considered very di‡cult. This Zen school, on the other hand, cuts through the devil’s trap-net right before one’s eyes. It seeks to be equal with the Tathågata’s practice. The Sutra of the Bodhisattva Precepts for Practicing Good (T. 30: 1005c) says:
When the Buddha abides in dhyåna, no devils can find an opportune moment.
If someone has recourse to the remark, “One who is relaxed with Ωala while firm with yåna will encounter a Buddha’s lifetime,” and favors breaking precepts, how is he any deferent from the one who carries a nugget of gold with him yet dies of hunger?
Besides, the passage from the Great Calming and Contemplation, “One who is relaxed with Ωala will encounter a Buddha’s lifetime,” and the passage in the Mahåparinirvå√a Sutra, “Being relaxed with Ωala is not considered to be relaxed,” are far from referring to those who break precepts and annul restraints. Those who commit grave sins are not said to be relaxed with Ωala; they should be called breakers of Ωala. So-called relaxation with Ωala refers to the person who stops short of committing a minor opens. I say this because if one commits any of the four [grave oneness] or the five grave [transgressions], he will without fail fall into the hell of unremitting torture (AvAci). For him it will be impossible in any way to encounter a Buddha’s lifetime. He who commits some minor sins will fall into the existence of a någa or other beasts but in that existence he may feel so grateful for longevity that he will be able to encounter a Buddha’s lifetime.
I sincerely hope you will abstain from using evil words, keep your body and mouth clean to follow the sincere truth of the noble teachings, keep your mind pure and clean to enter the wonderful gate of great compassion, and expect to attain Zen in this life. Does not the Sutra of ¸yraµgama Practices (T. 19: 131c; quoted above, p. 125 ) say:
Practitioners of dhyåna, if they don’t break o› lust, will continue to transmigrate through the three evil modes of existence, unable to escape. It is like steaming grains of sand and gravel in the hope of cooking them into boiled rice; cooked for one hundred thousand kalpas, they will still be [only] heated sand.
Someone says in rebuke: “The Lotus Sutra (T. 9, XI, 34b) says, ‘If anyone holds this scriptural teaching, he will be called a precept holder. He will soon attain the Buddha’s Way.’ This passage means that he who is firm with yåna will attain awakening. [What is the use for further Ωala?]”
This rebuke is wrong. We hear about being firm with yåna, whereas we have never heard of relaxation with Ωala. What we understand by the above passage is only this: In the manner of perfect permeation, which leaves no room for artificiality, every being is originally endowed with Ωala. It is on this basis that the holding of this scriptural teaching is mentioned. There cannot be any reason for acquiring the merit of Ωala in reason while breaking Ωala in phenomena. The Tiantai school’s Solutions for Propagation (T. 46, IV– 1, 254a, quoted above, pp. 159, 161) says, “How could one tolerate the breaking of precepts and call it the ‘Buddha vehicle’?”
If anyone relies on the passage from the Lotus Sutra, “he is called a precept holder,” and continues to violate Ωala in phenomena, there cannot be any reason that reading the Lotus Sutra alone will yield any expected result; it will be e‡cacious only for a distant 14a future. It is only through the practice of the contemplative gate of both phenomena and reason or, in other words, only with the application of both acupuncture and moxibustion, that the sick are healed. The Profound Meaning [of the Lotus Sutra] (T. 33: II–1, 698b) says, “The eyes of wisdom and the legs of practice in unity will reach the pond clean and good.”
The Tripitaka Dharma Master Yijing of Tang says [in his Buddhist Monastic Traditions of Southern Asia] (T. 54: 211c):
People directly point to the gate of emptiness and regard it as the Buddha’s real intent. However, they would rather know precepts also162 to be the Buddha’s intent. Their high valuation of one and low estimation of the other derive from mere assumption. While they never look into any text of Ωala or related scriptures, they copy a couple of volumes of the gate of emptiness and insist that the reason [of emptiness] contains all three collections (Tripi†aka) of Buddhist scriptures. They never think of the pain of thick, molten metal being poured down their throats. But that is the disaster they are inviting in this life at every step due to pretending to be monks, living clandestinely with other ordained monks.
It is a bodhisattva’s real determination not to let the floating bag of Ωala, which helps one to cross the sea of birth and death, become deflated. One should not make little of a small transgression. Instead, one should join the Buddha’s call made for our sake on his last day.163 The truth of his call is that one should practice both the Great and Small [Vehicles], for this alone accords with the admonition of the Benevolent Honored One.
Refraining from small transgressions while contemplating vast emptiness, accepting living beings while keeping oneself pure and clean—what fault could there be in doing this? All the eight myriad teachings of the [Great] Sage (i.e., the Buddha) will be summarized into one phrase or two: “Externally following secular ways while internally concentrating on true wisdom.”
The orthodox principle of Buddhism in the west regards keeping Ωala as its basis. One should protect the floating bag from being punctured by even a small pinprick. One should be careful not to allow the great wrong of a needle hole. The very beginning of great wrong is blamable on improper ways of clothing and eating.
To those who devote themselves to the Buddha’s teachings, liberation is not a distant goal, whereas neglecting the Honored One’s words will leave one long immersed in deep depravity.
It accords with the Buddha’s immortal teachings on his deathbed for latter-day practitioners to trust in this practice. Those who follow it are really the Buddha’s children.
The Tiantai school’s Solutions for Propagation (T. 46, IV, 259a) says:
In the world there are foolish people who insist that since the mind is free from birth everything that has its own characteristics is also free from generation, and who on that ground commit new sins. Committing crimes occurs necessarily through the three poisons [of greed, anger, and delusion]. A person who is really of no-birth will not make even a blessing, much less commit an opens. The reason is that both oneness and blessings follow the stream of birth and death.
Besides, the Great Calming and Contemplation (T. 46, IV–1, 41b) says:
This is called penitence both in phenomena and reason. With the extinction of the opens that hinders awakening and with Ωala kept clean and pure, self-concentration (samådhi) presents itself, opening up cessation and contemplation. Because the Ωala in phenomena is kept clean, the root samådhi presents itself. Because the Ωala that is none other than the Middle Way is kept clean, the king samådhi presents itself.
Commenting on this, the Solutions for Propagation (T. 46, IV– 2, 262a) says:
When “this is called” is mentioned, the author means this: If there were no Ωala in phenomena, there cannot even be worldly dhyåna. How could there be the threefold truth [of emptiness, provisionality, and the Middle Way]? Wrong is the one who might insist, “In the Great Vehicle, why should one cling to Ωala?”
Further, the same commentary says (T. 46, IV–1, 255b):
You should know that no one can go without the Vinaya regulations against any of the [five] divisions of oneness or the [seven] groups of transgressions. As for those people of the world who despise phenomena and want only to value profound reason, they are certainly aloof, empty, and baseless in their practice of contemplation. Since they lack the objects of contemplation, contemplation will not follow.
The Mahåparinirvå√a Sutra (T. 12, XVII, 467b) says:
If anyone holds this scriptural teaching while violating precepts, he is kin to devils, far from being a disciple of mine. I won’t allow him to hold and recite this scripture.
The Lotus Sutra (T. 9, II, 7c) says:
Those whose practice of precepts has gaps and omissions cannot a›ord to hold this truth.
It also says in elect (T. 9, XIV, 37b):
[Bodhisattvas] will not associate themselves with any of those who break precepts.
There should be no association with those who break precepts. How could any association be permissible with those who, while having recourse to the scriptural passage [in the Lotus Sutra] (T. 9, XI, 34b, quoted above, p. 163), “he will be called a precept holder,” will violate precepts themselves? If anyone has recourse to the passage, “he is considered to be applying164 himself toward the attainment of awakening,” while wasting the four periods [of the day] or six periods [of the day and night] without practicing dhyåna, and if 14b anyone has recourse to the passage, “he is called a precept holder,” while recklessly transgressing the fourfold or tenfold restraints, then such people will be transgressing the Great Vehicle, not to speak of going against the Small Vehicle, won’t they?
The Sutra of the Bodhisattva Precepts for Practicing Good (T.
30, I, 962a) says:
Then MañjuΩra asked the Buddha, “The word vinaya means controlling and taming. Everything that has its own characteristics is ultimately under control in its self-nature. Why does the Buddha advocate vinaya?” The Buddha said, “If ordinary beings could realize that everything that has its own characteristics is ultimately under control, no Buddha would advocate vinaya at all. Because they don’t realize that, Buddhas advocate vinaya.”
The same scripture (T. 30, II, 969c) says:
When igonorant people advocate the emptiness of all forms that have their own characteristics, they are committing grave transgressions. Even advocating something through explication for others’ benefit through delusive165 thoughts will also be a grave opens. Such will truly be disciples of a non-Buddhist path, such as Purå√a [KåΩyapa]. Purå√a insists that everything that has its own characteristics is nonexistent in its self-nature. But in the Buddha’s teachings it is existent as well as nonexistent. If anyone advocates the emptiness of everything, you should know that he misses the mark. Abiding with such a person in the biweekly recitation of the Vinaya rules (upo≈adha) will cause grave sins. The reason is that he does not realize the meaning of emptiness. He is unable to benefit others, not to speak of benefiting himself.
When ordinary ignorant people like those described above delusively expound the meaning of emptiness while unable to hold precepts, they are non-Buddhists; they are people of the devil. The Mahåparinirvå√a Sutra (T. 12: 467b, quoted above, p. 166) says: “He is kin to devils, far from being a disciple of mine.”
That is why the Zen school strongly admonishes people to hold precepts; it expects them to attain the present-life benefit through a lifetime of resort. You should not, with shallow knowledge, speak of one as surpassing others and of another as falling short. Supposing that worldly talks and discussions lack real benefit, doctrinal arguments for or against either the Great or Small [Vehicle] will all be without benefit. Likewise, the perfect permeation free from artificiality, being orally expounded by one who does not realize it, is like a good taste and cool water that hungry and thirsty people talk about but which never enters their mouths and throats. It is also like the case of a rich man, who can recite a text on operating a boat but who cannot actually operate a boat, and who is drowned.
Herewith I have established the [seventh] gate, “Citing a General Principle and Exhorting People to Practice in the Zen School.”
By the eighth gate, “A List of the Essential Patterns of Activity in the Zen School,” I mean the following ten, according to the Chan School Monastic Rules (Zokuzoyo 2–16), as well as the prevalent “pattern of monastic activities” (shi; shiki) in the large countries.
After ordination one should constantly protect morality. You should prefer a moral death to an immoral life. Therefore, mendicants should firmly hold their two hundred and fifty 14c precepts, and lay way-seekers their threefold collection of purifying precepts, especially the ten weighty and the forty-eight less weighty precepts that constitute the first of the threefold collection (Tripitakan).
This being the case, [after ordination] one should follow the scriptural teaching on Ωala and, on the occasion of posada assembly for recitation of the Vinaya rules every half-month, one should open oneself to the other practitioners. Violators of morality should be dismissed, like corpses in the great ocean, which does not allow them to remain on the bottom.
The Time of Lighting at twilight, when monks gather at the Buddha hall to o›er incense and worship;
The Time of Being in Calmness [9:00–11:00 P.M.], for dhyåna practice;
The Third Watch [11:00 P.M.–1:00 A.M.], for sleep;
The Fourth Watch [1:00–3:00 A.M.], for sleep;
The Fifth Watch [3:00–5:00 A.M.], for dhyåna practice;
The Time of the Hare [5:00–7:00 A.M.], same as twilight; Daybreak, for taking gruel;
The Time of the Dragon [7:00–9:00 A.M.], for reading scrip trues, studying, and listening to lectures by elder monks; The Time of Yu (Gu) [9:00–11:00 A.M.], for dhyåna practice;
The Time of the Horse [12:00 P.M.], for taking a meal;
The Time of the Sheep [1:00–3:00 P.M.], for bathing and [attending to other personal matters];
The Time of the Monkey [3:00–5:00 P.M.], for dhyåna practice; The Time of the Rooster [5:00–7:00 P.M.], for relaxation, released from work.
As you see, monks never slacken in their dhyåna practice, and moment after moment they repay their obligation to the state; in one period of practice after another they pray for the emperor’s longevity. Indeed, they pray that the emperor’s work for the people may long prosper and that the lamp of the Dharma may illuminate far and wide.
The above descriptions of these ten items are [given in] outline 15a only; details are given in “The Pattern of Monastic Activities” [current in the great state of Song].
Further, Zen temples have the following sixteen activities throughout the year:
15b there are specific rites to follow.
Question: Such regulations for conduct seem beyond the capacity of people of the latter-day world. They may instead cause practitioners to worry and regress. What do you think about this?
Answer: The teachings of the Buddha-Dharma are extremely easy to practice, easy to realize. The Buddha said, “This is the truth of bliss and stability.”168 The Treatise on the Treasury of Analyzed Concepts of Buddhism (T. 29, I, 2c) says in verse:
Sangha members in harmony feel joy; All sharing austerities, they rejoice.
When men and women of the world see their parents’ abilities, they think only of acquiring them. Sparing no resort, they succeed in inheriting their familial skills. Because of this, blacksmiths, tilers, weavers, magicians, farmers, and the like see their successors continue. Theirs, however, is painful and assiduous labor. Meanwhile, the skills inherited by the Buddha’s heirs is “the truth of bliss and stability.” It is unlike those worldly trades in which people [exert much resort], smashing their bones. Having a special liking for something, however, will in turn yield attachment to that particular matter. One who inhabits a big river and exercises vigorously there will, upon climbing up onto land, feel ill at ease. One that abides in the air and freely flies will be helpless on the ground. Likewise, one who has had comfort dwelling in the house of Buddhism will, on entering lay life, become troubled. Those who have been stained by and attached to evil acts will consider the teachings of the Buddha-Dharma to be extremely hard to practice.
The Great Master of Mount Koya says
in his Three Teachings Pointing to Where to Return (fasc. 9, 327):
Going to where one likes is like a stone thrown into water. Going to where one dislikes is like oil poured on water.
Those living beings who are lost in ignorance regard supering as something delightful. The Buddha said [in the Lotus Sutra] (T.
9, II, 9b):
Deeply attached to the five desires,
They behave like a yak that loves its tail.
Deeply infatuated by evil views,
They take supering to discard supering. For the sake of these living beings I give rise to great compassion.
This is not the case with the Buddha-Dharma. When one holds169 precepts in clean practice, in body and mind one abides in bliss and stability. The Bequeathed Teaching Sutra says:170
When your body is in comfort, the Way flourishes. For drinking and eating you should know the moderate measure.
One should deliberate on what this means. The Buddha’s disciples, no longer inheriting the teachings of the Buddha-Dharma, can be likened to lion cubs that have grown into sheep or cats, can’t they? They would also be like farmer’s children who have gone mad, or weaver’s children who have become prostitutes, wouldn’t they? Worldly occupations with good successors will have richness and beauty that exceed the previous ones. The Buddha’s teachings, having been exterminated, would leave idleness and indolence beyond sick children’s endurance. The present-day upspring of the Buddha are compared to those farmers and the like who have failed to take up their family trade. When such people want to eat rice, they must instead eat sandy mud. When they want to put on a robe, they have to don a piece of bark.
[Herewith I have established the [eighth] gate, “A List of the Essential Patterns of Activity in the Zen School.”]
By the ninth gate, “Information from the Large Countries,” I mean that by mentioning the manner of practice now prevailing in India and China, I wish to have people of faith and practice enter the great sea of the Buddha’s teachings. Concerning the Buddhist situation in India, I have heard the following four points:
Tokush o), then eighty years old, told me, “When I was over twenty
15c years old, I saw a monk from India in Dongjing.172 He wore a single undergarment and an upper ka≈åya robe. Even in the painful cold of winter he didn’t wear any other clothes. The next spring before he returned to India he said to me, ‘If I were to stay here, I would violate the Buddha’s rules.’”
This was in Qiandao (Kendo) the fourth year of Song, the third year of Nin’an in Japan, wuzi, tsuchinoe-ne (1168).173
In the Song dynasty twenty miracles have been cited:
People in Japan, nevertheless, tend to refer to their favorite saying, “In India and China the Buddha’s teachings have already been extinguished. They flourish only in Japan.”
[According to the Great Tang Dynasty Record of the Western Regions,] after the passing away of the Tathågata monarchs of various countries were afraid that the “diamond seat”177 would be 16a buried, so they had the seat marked with boundaries and had two statues of Bodhisattva AvalokiteΩvara built nearby. [According to the Record of the Transmission of the Dharma Treasury] (T. 50: 303c–304b), ¸åna våsin, the Third Patriarch who transmitted the Buddha-Dharma to his successor, had a robe he had worn since being an embryo, and which had grown together with him after his birth. This natural robe has been preserved by mysterious power for the sake of people’s faith in the Dharma. [According to the Great Tang Dynasty Record of the West ern Regions] (T. 51, VIII, 915b), when Xuanzang visited the two sites, the AvalokiteΩvara statues [near the diamond seat in Maga dha] were buried half up to their chests; and (T. 51, I, 873b) a small part of ¸ånavåsin’s robe [in Båmiyån] had become tattered.
Xuanzang’s pilgrimage to India was during the years of Zhen-
guan (J okan) (627–49) of the Tang;178 it was sixteen hundred years after the Tathågata passed away. The Tathågata had been dead more than a thousand years when the statues had become half buried and a small portion of the robe had become tattered. Now it is only four hundred and some years after Xuanzang’s observation. How could they all be extinguished now? How laughable people here are in their lack of estimation!
The Sutra of the Original Practice says:179
In the midland, under the bodhi tree, when a Buddha does not appear, a sage appears. When no sage appears, a god of great strength abides.
The Mahåprajñåpåramitå Sutra (T. 5, CIII, 570b) says:
No matter whether man or beast enters the hut under the bodhi tree, no ghosts can find an opportunity to attack them.
A sutra says (unidentified):
Tribes that lack virtue are not born in the midland.
The Sutra of the Original Practice says:
Buddhas will not be born in borderlands; they will be born without fail in the midland.
The Sutra on [the Prince Coming into Being with] Auspicious Responses (T. 3, I, 473b) says:
Kapilavastu is in the center of the three thousand worlds that have their own sun and moon, and of the twelve thousand heavens and earths. The reason is that the dignity of the Buddha made it impossible for him to be born in a borderland.
In the midland of India, the Tathågata attained awakening (bodhi) under a tree. There remains the diamond seat at the very site. In such a holy land, how could the Buddha’s teachings not be alive now? Indeed, what Eisai heard directly from people while staying in China must tally with the actual situation in India.
Question: According to what has been mentioned, the Buddha’s teachings vigorously flourish in India and China. Now I wonder if there are people who have attained the fruit of practice.
Answer: As I have seen with my own eyes and heard with my own ears, there are those in China who reduce themselves to ashes in samådhi, just as those in India, mentioned above.
Question: If that is the case, will Japan also have such people?
Answer: Yes, there must be.
[Question:] Here is a criticism against this kind of answer: “India and China are supremely holy lands. There may appear those whose pure fruits of practice will mature to the attainment of awakening. Japan is just a borderland. Tribes that lack virtue reside here. Therefore, it is extremely difficult to have such attainers of awakening. Besides, people lack the practice of Ωala. This makes things more difficultfor them, doesn’t it?”
Answer: The Mahåprajñåpåramitå Sutra (T. 6: 539ab, quoted above, pp. 78, 83) says:
After my death, in the last time, on the last occasion, in the last five hundred-year period when my teachings are lost, a scripture [like this] will play a great part in helping people attain awakening in the direction of northeast [as well].
In the direction of the northeast is the land of Japan. There has been no dislike of this borderland, has there? As for Ωala and vinaya, keeping the two hundred and fifty precepts of the Buddha’s day ought to be equivalent to refraining from committing the four grave oneness in the latter-day world, far distant from the time of his parinirvå√a. The Record of the Transmission of the Dharma Treasury (T. 50: 307ab) says:180
A nun of one hundred and twenty years’ age compared a group
of six evil mendicants with Upagupta. Upagupta, then, felt much ashamed. The nun said, “Revered monk, you should not feel ashamed or regretful. The Buddha said, ‘After my death, people of the first day will be better than [those] of the second day, while people of the third day will be far meaner. 16b This will continue until their beneficial virtue diminishes, their ignorance and dullness increase, and their good nature decreases.’ Reverend monk, it has been one hundred years since the Buddha’s parinirvå√a. Even if people do things unworthy of the Buddha’s disciples, this is only natural. How could it be strange?”
This being the case, the fruit of attaining awakening, the extinction of the self-afflicting passions (åsravak≈aya), won’t necessarily depend on the dignity of one’s demeanor; what is required is just the eagerly attentive, real cultivation.
In Central India monks go through the year in an unlined robe. In other places they don’t. In China and Japan monks wear lay garments, yet their attainment of the truth is the same in nature. The terrace with which their attainment works on others is also no deferent.
By “lay garments” I mean those other than the three robes for monks. The lay garments, which the Buddha prohibited monks from wearing, were two-shouldered robes, vests, and other [such clothing]. In cold districts, however, there was a robe permitted by the Buddha: the repa,181 which is called the “waist robe” here. The cold of our land cannot be as terrible as that of Båmiyån of the Himålayas, where snowflakes fly in June. And yet [monks in Båmiyån] wear a waist robe alone! Both Xuanzang and Yijing saw this on their pilgrimages.
Meanwhile, in China, the great masters Nanyue (Huisi; Nangaku Eshi, 515–77) and Tiantai (Zhiyi; Tendai Chigi, 531–97) attained the fivefold [preliminary] stage [on the way to ultimate awakening], and the sixfold [second stage, namely] purification of the six sense perceptions, [on the way toward ultimate awakening], respectively. In Japan K okei (977–1049) and his disciple En’in (d. 1050) worked miracles, which surprised heavenly and earthly gods as well as humans, and they all wore lay garments. Although they did not show the dignity of uncovering the right shoulder [and kneeling on the right knee], they kept all the precepts in their practice. That is why they attained such excellent fruits.
Recently I heard about a monk named Kakuben, of Temple, Yamada-gun, Iga Province, Japan. Kakuben lectured on the Mahåparinirvå√a Sutra from the platform. When he finished talking about Daosheng, a Chinese Buddhist who had endured death182 [before he had a scriptural verification of his view that there should be no exception for attaining awakening], Kakuben entered into final calmness on the platform [just as Daosheng had done]. Since no one knows of this, it has not been recognized how miraculous it was. However, the Essentials of the Single Vehicle (T. 74, III, 351a) [praises Kakubenand] says:
Throughout the whole country of Japan people’s capacity for the perfect teaching has reached maturity; both socials and the public, those living near the capital and in remote areas, all have taken shelter in the One Vehicle.
Besides, this country, considering its physical features, is peerless, and the Three Treasures of Buddhism have vigorously flourished [here]. If people dedicate themselves to holding the Buddhist morality, have deep confidence in their true way of being, and cultivate the dignity of the Buddha, how could it be in vain? A layman of the Great Song named Wenbo (Bunhaku), who abides in Mount Emmie (Gabisan), praised Japan, saying:
Who would divide that land from this land? Separating them is a short distance. Shining with sixty-six provinces (zhou; shi), the land extends over three thousand li. Its mountains are mines of diamonds inexhaustible. Gems that are abundant adorn the earth. The Four [Noble] Truths pervade the people’s attention. The triple Buddha image is set up deep and quiet.
I look up casually, and see all this. Why do I wait for my legs to carry me there? Take good care of yourself.
This being the case, this land is a holy place, where the Buddha’s teachings pervade. If you practice Zen assiduously and seriously, the Tathågata will certainly be pleased; your attainment of the fruit will also be realized. I hope that you will stop arguing about whether the Buddha’s teachings are flourishing or have declined in India and China, and will only cultivate the realization of selflessness, so that you will be able to let the Buddha’s teachings flourish in this country.
Concerning the Buddha’s teachings, the Sutra on the [Excellence of] the Donation of a Lamp Fire (T. 16: 803c) says:
The Buddha has four kinds of excellent, living, good teachings: 1) Ωala, 2) dhyåna, 3) prajñå, and 4) the Mind that is free of defilement.
Among these four, dhyåna comes first, because it comprehends all. The Tiantai school’s Great Calming and Contemplation (T. 46: 16c 39c; quoted above, pp. 111, 143) says:
The Sutra on the Most Wondrous Supreme Dhyåna says: “Transgressors of the four grave oneness and the five grave transgressions will, except for [dhyåna], have no way to be saved.”
To extinguish sins, dhyåna is essential. Giving rise to good is also [accomplished] through the power of dhyåna. The Mahåprajñå påramitå Treatise says in e›ect:183
Although the three vehicles have deferent spheres of activity, their attainment necessarily makes use of the power of dhyåna that is free from discrimination.
Since this is the case, the traditional eight schools of Buddhism, despite their diverting spheres of activity, must always apply dhyåna to reach their respective attainments. The same is true with the practice of Changming and nianfo (nembutsu),184 for except for dhyåna nothing else would establish a practice for immediate fruition in the next life.
For this reason, when I think of the physical features of this land, considering the latter-day world, pitying the naivety of the people, and remembering the paths trodden by the patriarchs, I earnestly desire to make flourish what has been abandoned. Nevertheless, evil conditions of various kinds obstruct me from realizing this. Even some Buddhists, out of jealousy, want to suppress it. I wonder if I should give up this land now. The [Great] Heap of Jewels Sutra (T. 11, Vol. 92, 529a) says:
Where there is talk just for the sake of talk, controversy just for the sake of controversy, there arise many self-afflicting passions. Wise people should keep away from such occasions; they should stay a hundred yojanas away from such places.
In the western seat of our government185 is a person who reproaches me; in the eastern capital there are people who stand in my way. While I want to avoid them both, I have no place to go [that is] a hundred yojanas away from either of them. I want to examine myself critically but I am far from being a wise person. What should I do in this situation? I might have to cross the vast sea again to conceal my traces in the clouds of Mount Tiantai. But my only regret is that I shall give up benefiting my native land to share in the benefit of Dharma water in a foreign land. An Approach to Truth through the Samådhi Called No Polemics186 (T. 46: 630a) says:
If someone should praise themselves as a person of great wisdom and despise all the practitioners of dhyåna, it is comparable to killing humans of the three thousand great worlds, though the gravity of this opens even surpasses the latter.
Evil187 persons who may stand in my way will naturally commit this transgression; they will be useless to the imperial court and the state. My wrongly being accused of being the root source of this is a most lamentable matter.
Herewith I have established the [ninth] gate, “Information from the Large Countries.”
By the tenth gate, “Merit Transference and Making Vows,” I mean what follows.
The Mahåprajñåpåramitå Sutra (T. 7, fasc. 543, 794c) says:
Subhati answered Maitreya, saying, “Speaking of those men and women of noble mind who abide in the bodhisattva vehicle, who practice the profound perfection of the knowledge of emptiness (prajñåpåramitå), I would say this: If they want not to reproach the Buddha but to transfer merit to other beings, they should think in this way: ‘Tathågatas are really worthy of overrings; they have attained ultimate awakening. Just as the Tathågatas, with their unhindered awakened eyes, penetrative realize, thoroughly know, that meritorious roots of virtue have such a nature, such a characteristic, and such content as is worth rejoicing, so also should I rejoice at the roots of virtue. Tathågatas are really worthy of overrings; they have attained ultimate awakening. Just as the Tathågatas, with their unhindered awakened eyes, penetratively realize, thoroughly know, that one should transfer such acts of merit toward the attainment of unsurpassed ultimate awakening, so also should I practice such transference.’”
The Buddha praised Subhiti and said, “Very good. . . .” And even188 this was said:189 “Who does the transference? What is transferred? Where is the transference directed? With the three wheels free from discrimination, being free from any expectation, let me, equally with other living beings, transfer this root of virtue toward unsurpassed ultimate awakening (anuttarå samyaksaµbodhi).”
The same sutra says (T. 6, vol. 331, 695c):
17a A bodhisattva mahåsattva (“great being”), who observes living beings supering from all kinds of diseases, will make this vow: “I should make assiduous resort, without looking back on my physical life, cultivate the six kinds of perfection (påramitås), bring beings to maturity, ultimately purify the Buddha land, and quicken the consummate attainment of unsurpassed ultimate awakening. In our Buddha land all living beings should cleanse and purify their bodies and minds and be free from the supering of any disease, even to the extent that no one hears the names of painful diseases. Making full use of these six kinds of perfection, I should cause every being to approach unsurpassed ultimate awakening.”
Therefore, I am now going to do merit transference as is stated in the sutra, make a similar vow, come across the knowledge of emptiness in one life after another, in this world after that, cultivate the supreme truth of the Tathågata’s dhyåna, work together with all living beings to cultivate the means of great compassion, and never become weary throughout the future.
The ten gates of the Treatise on Letting Zen Flourish to Protect the State have been generally explained.
Basically, the Buddha-Dharma does not itself speak out; it assumes scriptural expressions to manifest its teachings. Originally dhyåna has no intent to introduce itself; it actualizes itself only through our self-concentration (samådhi). Therefore, the expressions by which people characterize Zen, such as “the hair of a tortoise” or “the horns of a hare,” naturally reveal the living principle that is hard to be manifested, whereas the awakened truth of mind that is free from mind (wuxin; mushin) or from thought (wu nian; munen), profoundly accords with the One Mind, the innermost shrine. The purpose of this treatise is to state this meaning of the awakened truth and to let the Buddha’s teachings flourish.
I am afraid that there might be difference between the passages as they were quoted according to my understanding from the sutras, Ωåstras, and their commentaries, and the original texts themselves. I might also be mistaken in quoting their titles. The reason is that I have quoted them from memory. My mistakes may not be limited just to passages and my understanding of their meanings. I am afraid that there might be discord beween a truth and its expression. Notwithstanding all such possible mistakes, a certain revered ancient (unidentified) remarks thus:
Since I quote without the original text near at hand, I might give a wrong title. But even if the title may be wrongly quoted, how could this mean the corruption of the content?
I hope my readers will be kind enough to correct wrong quotations, if there are any.
End of Fascicle Three
A Note on the Future
On 23 August, the eighth year of Kenkyi, teishi (dingsi, hinoto-mi, 1197)190 a man named Zhang Guoan (Cho Kokuan) came from Hakata191 Harbor, Chinzei (Kyushu), and related the following:
In July of Qiandao (Kendo) the ninth year of the Great Song, J oan the third year in Japan, guisi (mizunoto-mi, 1173), I reached Lin’anfu (the present capital), visited Lingyin (Rinnin) Temple, and personally met the presiding priest, Chan Master Fohai (Fohai Huiyuan; Bukkai Eon, 1103–76).192 The master gave a sermon from the high seat, and said to me, “Twenty years after I die, the Dharma will pervade the entire world. As it is said, the sun after rising goes to the west; in the west it inevitably enters the western mountains. Then the tide surges to return to the east. On returning east, it necessarily flows and empties into the eastern sea. So, how can the Buddha-Dharma that advances to the east not reach the land of Japan? This being the case, there will be an elder monk from the eastern sea who will come to the west and transmit the Chan principle. This will never be false. You may return to your native place and tell others what I have said. Now I see you; you also see me. On the thirteenth of January next year, I shall quit the world. When you come here next time, you will hear my name alone. Please keep in mind what you have heard today. Favored by my karma from my former lives, I have seen you and talked about the pervasion of the 17b Buddha-Dharma in Japan. You may remember this and try not to forget it.”
I, Guoan, myself took leave of the master and went to my native place. In April the next year I crossed the sea to China, and on coming to the temple asked about the master. I was told that he had passed away peacefully on the thirteenth of January, just as the master had told me the previous year.193 Chan Master Fozhao194 received the imperial mandate, succeeded the seat, and held a feast for the priests in answering obligations from the state. I, Guoan, attended the assembly and stated my wishes to show gratitude to the previous master. Chan Master Fozhao praised this, and said, “You have come traveling across the sea from afar, to repay the master’s favor.”
Now, Chan Master Fohai was a man who had seen the truth of no-birth. He knew what was coming in the future very well. I, Eisai, myself have already been there, had the Dharma transmitted to me, and returned home. Unworthy as I am, there already was a coincidence. I wonder who Master Fohai could have predicted except for me. No other person crossed the sea. Of the ignorant person who had arrived there, however, what could be expected? May a person of wisdom look into the matter! It was eighteen years after Chan Master Fohai made the prediction (in 1173) when I crossed the Sea of Penglai (Horai)195 to return home [in 1191]. How . . .196 the marvelous prediction was! Turning my thoughts to the future, I am convinced that the principle of the Zen school will never diminish or die out. Fifty years after I leave the world, this school will certainly flourish most vigorously. Prompted by this thought, I, Eisai, write this.
End of A Note on the Future
[Postscript]
The three fascicles of the Treatise, which have undergone copying several times, cannot be exempt from the ambiguity of the printing process, such as the difficulty of distinguishing certain characters. This is much more so the case as these texts have passed through many years.
I once collected several copies of the old [Kanmon] edition to make a revised one. I also examined the original expressions of the sutras and Ωåstras quoted in the text. I discovered that letters and phrases that had been left out or were erroneous were many more than one or two, so I revised them. Of those that I had had no means to check, I marked them as doubtful.
Now I have come to the end of the work. Although I lack the ability to do it well, it may not be that I have supplied not even one missing word out of ten thousand. I was afraid the print might be blotted out if I were to continue storing [the text] in a case. This was why I put it into the engraver’s hands. I hope what remains incomplete in the present edition will undergo further correction by later people.
[Written] in the spring, the second month of An’ei, tsuchinoeinu (1778), sincerely noted by Bhik≈u Toshun, Descendant of the Founding Master of Kenninji.
The number before each title shows the order in which the text is first cited in this translation of the Treatise. These numbers also appear in the endnotes to ease identification and cross-referencing. Each listing includes all or some of the following information: English title used in the translation; English title in full, when applicable; Sanskrit title, when applicable (* asterisk denotes provisional Sanskritization); Romanized Chinese and/or Japanese title; name of author or translator; date of publication, when known; and collection reference number.
Translated by Prajñå, 788, ten fascicles
TaishoVol. 8, No. 261
Translated by Kumårajava, 405, one hundred fascicles
TaishoVol. 25, No. 1509
Compiled by Zongze (Sosaku), 1103, ten fascicles
Zokuzokyo 2–16
o
Translated by BuddhayaΩas with Buddhasm®ti, 410–12, sixty fascicles TaishoVol. 22, No. 1428
Brahmå Deity’s Net; Fanwangpusajiejing; Bonm o bosatsukaikyo Translation ascribed to Kumårajava, but believed to be a Chinese work of the Liu Song dynasty, 420–79, two fascicles TaishoVol. 24, No. 1484
Translated by Dharmak≈ema (385 –433), forty fascicles
TaishoVol. 12, No. 374
Beijing Tibetan Tripitaka Vol. 31, No. 788
Translated by Faxian and Buddhabhadra, 416–8, forty fascicles
TaishoVol. 22, No. 1425
Translated by Kumårajava, three fascicles TaishoVol. 15, No. 653
Beijing Tibetan Tripitaka Vol. 31, No. 791
Translated by Kumårajava (344–413), two fascicles
TaishoVol. 8, No. 245
Translated by Xuanzang, 660–3, six hundred fascicles
TaishoVols. 5–7, No. 220
Dai h okodaraniky o
Translated by Jñånagupta (561 –600), twenty fascicles
TaishoVol. 21, No. 1340
Translated by UpaΩinya, 565, seven fascicles
TaishoVol. 8, No. 231
Sections; Sishierzhang jing; Shijinish oky
A complete text was quoted at the beginning of the Baolinzhuan (H orinden), a Chan school’s record of transmission compiled in the Tang dynasty around 801. The text cited here is a recompiled version of the preceding text of the same title, TaishoVol. 17, No. 784.
Translated into Chinese by KåΩyapa-Måtaçga and Dharmarak≈a, ca. first century C.E.
Zokuz oky o 1–59
English translation by Heng-ching Shih, in the volume Apocryphal Scriptures (Numata Center, 2005)
Shou lengyanjing; ShuRyogonky o
Believed to be a Chinese compilation, ten fascicles
TaishoVol. 19, No. 945
Translated by Xuanzang, one fascicle
TaishoVol. 12, No. 390
Translated by Kumårajava, 409, four fascicles
TaishoVol. 30, No. 1564
Tiantaizong Fahuaxuanyishiqian; Tendaishi Hokke gengishakusen
Jingxi Zhanran (Keikei Tannen, 711–782), twenty fascicles
TaishoVol. 33, No. 1717
Translated by Kumårajava, 406, seven fascicles
TaishoVol. 9, No. 262
By Zhanran, ten fascicles
TaishoVol. 46, No. 1912
Shikangirei
By Zhanran, two fascicles
TaishoVol. 46, No. 1913
By Zhiyi (Great Master Tiantai), twenty fascicles
TaishoVol. 34, No. 1718
By Saich o (Great Master Dengy o, 765–822), who presented this text to
Emperor Saga in 819, one fascicle
Dengy o Daishi Zenshi (Shiga, 1926), Vol. 1, pp. 199–248
By Zhanran (Miaole; My oraku; Tannen), thirty fascicles
TaishoVol. 34, No. 1719
Translated by DharmayaΩas, 407–15, one fascicle
TaishoVol. 14, No. 566
Beijing Tibetan Tripitaka Vol. 34, No. 857
Dainichiky o Gishaku, fourteen fascicles
A commentary on ¸ubhåkarasiµha’s (637–735) Chinese translation of the Mahå vairocanå bhisaµbodhiv ikurvitå dhi≈†håna vaipulya sitrendra råja dharmaparyåya
By Yixing (683–727)
1) TaishoVol. 39, No. 1796; 2) Zokuz oky o 1–36
Translated by Saµghavarman, 518, two fascicles
TaishoVol. 14, No. 468
Translated by Saµghabhadra, 488, eighteen fascicles
TaishoVol. 24, No. 1462
Makashikan
Zhiyi’s lectures recorded by Guanding (561–632), 594, twenty fascicles TaishoVol. 46, No. 1911
Translated by Kumårajava, four fascicles
TaishoVol. 15, No. 586
Beijing Tibetan Tripitaka Vol. 33, No. 827
Translated by Kumårajava, one fascicle
TaishoVol. 8, No. 235
Dait osaiikiki
By Xuanzang, 646, twelve fascicles
Based on the author’s travels in Central and South Asia from 630–646, undertaken with the objective of visiting the original homeland of the Buddha and the sites where he lived and taught.
TaishoVol. 51, No. 2087
English translation by Li Rongxi (Numata Center, 1996)
By Enchain, 891, one fascicle
TaishoVol. 74, No. 2368
By Shenfang (Shinb o)
Text not identified. Quoted in Enchin’s Similarities and Dissimilarities of the Teaching Forms, see number 33.
Translated by Kumårajava, three fascicles TaishoVol. 14, No. 475
Beijing Tibetan Tripitaka Vol. 34, No. 843
English translation by John R. McRae (Numata Center, 2005)
TaishoVol. 75, No. 2395
Sannei Dais ok os oden
Compiled by Zanning (Sannei, 919–1002), 982, thirty fascicles
TaishoVol. 50, No. 2061
Foshuoguanfosanmeijing; Bussetsukanb utsu zanmaiky o
Translated by Buddhabhadra (368–421), ten fascicles
TaishoVol. 15, No. 643
Dharma for the Latter-day World; Dengy odaishi Mapp ot omy oki
Ascribed to Saich o (Great Master Dengy o), one fascicle
Dengy o Daishi Zenshi, Shiga 1926, Vol. I
English translation by Robert Rhodes, The Candle of the Latter Dharma (Numata Center, 1994)
Translated by Kumårajava, one fascicle
TaishoVol. 12, No. 389
English translation by J. C. Cleary, in the volume Apocryphal Scriptures (Numata Center, 2005)
Translated by Huizhi, 677, one fascicle
Zokuz oky o 2-15, 419: Vol. 110, 834b
Translated by Dharmamitra, Liu Song dynasty, 424, one fascicle
TaishoVol. 9, No. 277
Saimy osh oj oky o
Compiled in China toward the end of the Six Dynasties period, one fascicle This text is found in the appendix to Shindai Sekiguchi’s Tendai Shikan no Kenkyi.
Daih od odaraniky o
Translated by Fazhong, Northern Liang dynasty, four fascicles
TaishoVol. 21, No. 1339
Pusayingluojing; Bosatsuy orakuky o
Translated by Buddhasm®ti, 376, thirteen fascicles
TaishoVol. 16, No. 656
Translated by Nie Chengyuan, Western Jin dynasty (240–300)
TaishoVol. 15, No. 638
By Zhiyi, recorded by Guanding, ten fascicles with two parts each TaishoVol. 33, No. 1716
TaishoVol. 48, No. 2016
Daij oh ounky o
Translated by Ma√∂aråsana (?) and Saµghapåla, Liang dynasty, 503, seven fascicles
TaishoVol. 16, No. 659
(Saµvara); Daoxuanlishi Jiaojielüyi; D osenrisshi Ky okairitsugi
By Daoxuan (D osen, 596–677), one fascicle
TaishoVol. 45, No. 1897
The extant scripture is regarded to have been composed in China; the foreword quoted by Eisai is not found in the extant scripture.
Translation ascribed to Buddhatråta, Tang dynasty, one fascicle
TaishoVol. 17, No. 1824
Jizang (Kichiz o, 549–623), ten fascicles
TaishoVol. 42, No. 1824
Translated by Jñånabhadra, Tang dynasty, two fascicles
TaishoVol. 12, No. 377
Dharma; Haihuipusasuoshuojing; Kaiebosatsushosetsuky o
Translated by Zhiyan, Tang dynasty
Quoted in A Collection of Passages from Various Scriptures on Mahayana Bodhisattva Practices; Dasheng xiuxing pusaxingmenzhujingyaoji; Daij oshugy obosatsugy omonshoky oy oshi
TaishoVol. 17, No. 847
Included in A Collection of Passages from Various Scriptures on
Mahayana Bodhisattva Practices (see number 55, above)
TaishoVol. 17, No. 847
Compilation ascribed to members of the Taira clan, ca. 992, two fascicles Dainihon Bukkyo Zensho Vol. 112
Compiled by K oj o (d. 858), three fascicles
TaishoVol. 74, No. 2379
The Treatise, authored by Zhiyi, is extant (TaishoVol. 46, No. 1920, one fascicle) but the Postscript is not.
Given at the end of the Records of Important Items in the Buddhist
Tripi†aka, Vol. 8, compiled by Chan Master Foguo Weibai, end of the
Northern Song dynasty
Sh owa H ob o S omokuroku (General Index of the Sh owa Dharma Treasure) Vol. 2, 770a
I; Darghågama; Zhang’ahanjing/Dabenjing; J oagongy o/Daihongy o Translated by BuddhayaΩas and Buddhasm®ti, twenty-two fascicles
TaishoVol. 1, No. 1
Translated by Kumårajava, ten fascicles
TaishoVol. 16, No. 657
Beijing Tibetan Tripitaka Vol. 28, No. 769
Translated by Guacharo, 435–43, two fascicles
TaishoVol. 16, No. 270
Beijing Tibetan Tripitaka Vol. 35, No. 888
1) Translated by Buddhabhadra, Jin dynasty, 418–20, TaishoVol. 9, No.278, sixty fascicles
2) Translated by ¸ik≈ånanda, Tang dynasty, 695–99, TaishoVol. 10, No.
279, eighty fascicles
TaishoVol. 11, No. 310, 120 fascicles, 49 sections
Fascicle 52, section 12, translated by Xuanzang, Tang dynasty
Fascicle 62, section 16, translated by NarendrayaΩas, Northern Qi dynasty
Fascicle 92, section 25, translated by Bodhiruci, Tang dynasty
Translated by Guacharo, 443, four fascicles
TaishoVol. 16, No. 670
Darijing; Shingonshi Dainichiky o
Translated by Subhåkarasiµha and Yixing, Tang dynasty, seven fascicles TaishoVol. 18, No. 848
Saµdhinirmocana-sitra; Foshuo Jiejiejing; Bussetsu Gesetusky o
Translated by Paramårtha, Chen dynasty, one fascicle
TaishoVol. 16, No. 677
Beijing Tibetan Tripitaka Vol. 29, No. 774
English translation by John P. Keenan (Numata Center, 2000)
Translated by Bodhiruci, Wei dynasty (508–38), ten fascicles
TaishoVol. 9, No. 272
Beijing Tibetan Tripitaka Vol. 32, No. 813
Yuedengsanmeijing; Gatt ozanmaiky o
Translated by NarendrayaΩas, Northern Qi dynasty, 557, ten fascicles TaishoVol. 15, No. 639
Beijing Tibetan Tripitaka Vol. 32, No. 795
Although this translation is ascribed to Bodhipradapa (?), Sui dynasty
(589–618), it is believed to have been produced in China; two fascicles TaishoVol. 17, No. 839
TaishoVol. 17, No. 273
King Longevity (Daghita); Zhangshouwangjing; Ch oju oky o
Translator unknown, Western Jin dynasty (256–316), one fascicle
TaishoVol. 3, No. 161
This is another version of the Bodhisattvabhimi, attributed to Maitreya (Asaçga).
Translated by Gu√avarman, nine fascicles
TaishoVol. 30, No. 1580
TaishoVol. 31, No. 1585
English translation by Francis H. Cook, in Three Texts on Consciousness
Only (Numata Center, 1999)
1) TaishoVol. 32, No. 1666, one fascicle: Translation attributed toParamårtha, Liang dynasty. The authorship ascribed to AΩvagho≈a has not been confirmed.
2) TaishoVol. 32, No. 1667, two fascicles: Translated by ¸ik≈ånanda, Tangdynasty.
77. Blue Cliff Record; Collection of Chan Records: The Blue Cliff; Biyanlu; Hekiganroku
A collection of one hundred cases (k oans) for attaining awakening and related verses by Master Xuedou Chongxian (Setch o Jiken, 980–1052), with critical remarks by the compiler Yuanwu Keqin (Engo Kokugon, 1063–1135), ten fascicles
TaishoVol. 48, No. 2003
78. Eye and Treasury of the True Dharma; Zhengfayanzang; Sh ob ogenz o
A collection of cases (k oans) for attaining awakening, compiled by Dahui
Zonggao (Daie S ok o, 1089–1163), three fascicles
Zokuz oky o 2 –23
Compiled by Daoyuan (Dogen), 1040, the first year of the Jingde (Keitoku) era, thirty fascicles
TaishoVol. 51, No. 2076
Translated by Kumårajava, two fascicles
TaishoVol. 15, No. 616
Hokkuhiyuky o
Translated by Faju and Fali, Jin dynasty, 290 –306, four fascicles
TaishoVol. 4, No. 211
A collection of one hundred thirty-one stories.
Translated by Kinkara and Tanyas, Wei dynasty, 472, ten fascicles
TaishoVol. 4, No. 203
TaishoVol. 40, No. 1816
Shishi Esh o Kong oky oshaku
By Huizhao (650–714), a disciple of Xuanzang Unidentified text.
Translated by Dharmaruci, Wei dynasty, ten fascicles
TaishoVol. 10, No. 305
Beijing Tibetan Tripitaka Vol. 34, No. 867
TaishoVol. 30, No. 1579
Attributed to Någårjuna; translated by Kumårajava, seventeen fascicles TaishoVol. 26, No. 1521
By Yijing (Gij o Sanz o, 635 –713), Tang dynasty, 691, four fascicles TaishoVol. 54, No. 2125
English translation by Li Rongxi (Numata Center, 2000)
See also J. Takakusu, trans. A Record of the Buddhist Religion as Practised in India and the Malay Archipelago (671–695) by I-tsing (New Delhi: Munshiram Manoharlal, 1982, reprint)
Translated by Yijing, Tang dynasty, ten fascicles
TaishoVol. 16, No. 665
Translated by Bodhiruci, twelve fascicles
TaishoVol. 14, No. 440
Amitåyurdhyåna-sitra; Guanwuliangshoujing; KanmuRyojuky o
Translated by KålayaΩas, 424–42, one fascicle
TaishoVol. 12, No. 365
English translation by Hisao Inagaki, in the volume The Three Pure Land Sutras (Numata Center, 2003, Revised Second Edition)
Translated by Dharmanandiya, Eastern Jin dynasty, one fascicle
TaishoVol. 20, No. 1043
TaishoVol. 29, No. 1558
K ob o-daishi Zenshi Vol. 9, pp. 324–58, Mikky o bunka kenkyisho, 1978
Translated by Zhiqian, Wu dynasty (223–53), two fascicles
TaishoVol. 3, No. 185
Translated by Kinkara and Tanyas, Wei dynasty, six fascicles
TaishoVol. 50, No. 2058
By Genshin, Eshin’in (942 –1017), Yokawa, Mount Hiei, three fascicles TaishoVol. 74, No. 2370
Foshuoshidenggongde jing; Bussetsused okudokuky o
Translated by NarendrayaΩas, Qi dynasty, one fascicle
TaishoVol. 16, No. 702
Beijing Tibetan Tripitaka Vol. 34, No. 871
By Nanyue Huisi (515–77), two fascicles
TaishoVol. 46, No. 1923
1 I.e., the Zen school. The term bushing is derived from butsugoshin (“core or heart of the Buddha’s words”), in Sanskrit, buddhapravacanahidaya, a term used as the subtitle of the text in the Laçkåvatåra-sitra [66].
2 The western part of present-day Okayama Prefecture.
3 Emperor K orei was the seventh in succession from Emperor Jinmu, according to the records on divine rule by mythological emperors in the two earliest histories of Japan, the Kojiki (Records of Ancient Matters), compiled in 712 C.E., and the Nihonshoki (Chronicles of Japan), compiled in 720. Both these early histories were compiled by imperial order for clearly political purposes.
4 The eastern part of present-day Okayama Prefecture.
5 The western part of present-day Tottori Prefecture.
6 Present-day Fukuoka Prefecture, Kyushu.
7 In Japanese, rakan, “attainers of awakening among ¸åkyamuni’s disciples.”
8 Zhizhe, i.e., Zhiyi (538–597), also called Great Master Tiantai, systematized the Tiantai school’s teachings after deep thought and practice. In the Treatise on Letting Zen Flourish to Protect the State Eisai quotes from Zhiyi’s three representative works: Words and Phrases in the Lotus Sutra
[22], Great Calming and Contemplation [29], and Profound Meaning of the Lotus Sutra [47].
9 This text is dated the ninth of the eighth month of the first year of Baoqing, 1205 C.E.
10 The northern part of Kyushu.
11 Bodhisattvas (lit., “awakening [bodhi] beings [sattvas]”) are those who attain awakening but forego their own entrance into nirvana in order to help other beings attain awakening, and they constitute the spiritual ideal of the Mahayana. The bodhisattva Ωala are a set of moral precepts for Mahayana followers, both lay and monastic. Eisai, however, believed that the precepts for monks should be the same as those for the early disciples (Ωråvakas) as indicated in Buddhist Vinaya texts such as the Vinaya
in Four Divisions [4]. See also notes 30 and 31.
12 T odaiji, the head temple of the Kegon school in Nara, housed a gigantic Buddha statue, built by order of Emperor Sh omu in 752 C.E., which had burned down in 1180.
13 The southeastern part of present-day Yamaguchi Prefecture.
14 The original edition of the Treatise was printed in the sixth year of Kanmon, 1666. See the Translator’s Introduction, p. 56.
15 What Eisai means by “Mind” here is the original nature of the ordinary mind, which is no-mind. It also means the shin (“essence” or “heart”) of the busshin-shi, the “school of the Buddha’s mind.”
16 I.e., Me, in that the mind that is me is not any mind that is me.
17 In the following phrases describing Mind, Eisai draws from a variety of sources. The term “best vehicle” (Ωre≈†hayåna; zuishangsheng; saij oj o) first appears in the Diamond Sutra [31] (T. 8: 750c). See the Laçkåvatårasitra [66] for the terms “ultimate reality” (paramårtha; diyiyi; daiichigi) (T. 16: 483b) and “unsurpassed awakening” (anuttarå sam yak saµbodhi; wu shang puti; muj obodai) (T. 16: 488a). The Mahå prajñå påramitå Treatise [2] (T. 25: 519a) has: “In the contemplation of the true characteristics of all that have their own characteristics there obtains perfection of the knowledge of emptiness.” The term “one true mode of being” (dharma- dhåtu; yizhenfajie; ichishinhokkai) is found in the Demonstration of Consciousness Only [75] (T. 31: 48a). “The calm self in heroic advance” (Ωiraµ gama samådhi; lengyuansanmei; Ryogonzanmai) is the title and main theme of an early Mahayana sutra, the ¸iraµ gama samådhi-sitra, translated by Kumårajava (Taishovol. 15, no. 642, two fascicles); English translation by John McRae published under the title ¸iraçgama Samådhi Sutra (Numata Center, 1998).
18 The following two terms are from fascicle one of the Baolinzhuan (H orinden; originally ten fascicles, seven fascicles extant), an early history of the Dharma transmission of the Chan school, compiled in 801 by Zhiju (Chiko). The phrase “eye and treasury of the True Dharma” (saddharma cak≈ukoΩa?; zhengfayanzang; sh ob ogenz o) is supposedly quoted in this Chan text from the Mahåparinirvå√a Sutra [6], though the sutra (T. 12: 617b) speaks only of “transmission of the True Dharma.” See the H orinden-yakuchi, a Japanese translation of the Baolinzhuan with annotation by Ryosh o Tanaka (Tokyo: Uchiyamashoten, 2003), pp. 37–8. The phrase “sublime mind (or heart, h®daya) of nirvana” is also from the Baolinzhuan, where the Buddha cites it as one of the synonymous phrases of what he transmits to MahåkåΩyapa. See the H orinden-yakuchi, p. 30.
19 The term “three wheels” (sanlun; sanrin) is from a passage in Attending to the Lotus Sutra (Fahuayouyi; Hokkeyii) (Taishovol. 34, no. 1722, 634c) by Jizang (Kichiz o; 549–623): “The Buddha expounded the Lotus Sutra as he wanted to turn the threefold Dharma wheel: 1) the root Dharma wheel, 2) the teachings of branches and knots, and 3) absorbing the knots to return to the root.” For “eight treasuries,” see note 75. The term “four trees” (sishu; shiju) refers to the comparison of Ωråvakas, pratyekabuddhas, bodhisattvas, and Buddhas in Chapter V of the Lotus Sutra [16], “Medicinal Herbs” (T. 9: 20ab), where Ωråvakas are likened to small herbs, pratyeka- buddhas to medium herbs, and bodhisattvas to the best herbs; bodhisattvas are compared to trees and Buddhas to great trees. See also Hakiju Ui’s Bukkyo-jiten (Tokyo: Tosei-shuppansha, 1953). “Five vehicles” (wucheng; goj o), among various classifications of the vehicles for liberation, refers to the two worldly vehicles of humans and gods and the three supramundane vehicles of Ωråvakas, pratyekabuddhas, and bodhisattvas-Buddhas.
20 The term “truth of mind” (cittadharma; xinfa; shinb o) usually means either citta and dharma, i.e., mind and what is not mind, or the dharma (phenomenon) that is called citta (mind). The Sanskrit term citta dharmatå (xin faxing; shinhossh o), meaning the original, supramundane nature of the mind, would be a more precise analog for “truth of mind.” This double use of the term cittadharma/cittadharmatå finds its reason in the way the “mind of a sentient being” (sattvacitta; zhongshengxin; shuj oshin) is explained as twofold in the Treatise on Awakening Confidence [76]. See also note 118.
21 The term “golden ascetic” for MahåkåΩyapa comes from fascicle forty-six of the Sutra of the Original Practice [96], where the Buddha said to the monks (T. 3: 869a), “MahåkåΩyapa looks like a golden statue because, due to his virtuous conduct in former lives he was born into a well-o› brahman family, wealthy to the extent that he never lacked for anything, of upright and fine features. He has been foremost in ascetic practice; he has been completely contented with anything while practicing morality since becoming a mendicant; he has attained athwartship; and therefore I have assured his attainment of Buddhahood.”
22 According to Professor Seizan Yanagida, the term “special transmission independent of (or outside the) scriptural teachings” (jiaowaibiechuan; ky ogebetsuden) first appeared in the section on Master Shishuang Qingshu (Sekis o Keisho; 807–888), in fascicle six of the Collection of the Chan Patriarchal Hall (Zutangji; Sod oshi), compiled in Korea in 952 (Kyoto: Chibun-shuppansha, 1972). In this text (p. 130b) Shishuang asks a disciple of Master Xuefeng Yicun (Sepp o Gison; 828–887) what sort of opportunity for awakening Xuefeng o›ers his students. The monk replies, “The master tells us, ‘What hasn’t been, isn’t, and won’t be sung by any Buddha of the three times; what can’t be disclosed in the twelve divisions of the Buddha’s teachings has been specially transmitted in the ten directions independent
of the scriptural teachings of the three vehicles. Having cited this for you, I find my mouth crushed!’” Shishuang involuntarily cries out, “What’s the use of your being here? You’ve already sobered having your head bent down.”
In the Laçkåvatåra-sitra [66] (T. 16: 503ab), the Buddha expounds the twofold directives to the awakened truth: communication and principal aim. The latter is the principle by which practitioners get free of false discrimination, not falling into any of the alternatives of oneness and difference, both oneness and difference, and neither oneness nor difference; or of what surpasses the mind, ego-thought, and the thought-discerning faculty. This nondiscrimination is the noble mode of being personally attained and realized by past, present, and future Tathågatas. The first directive, communication, refers to a diverse collection of sutra teachings, required for various purposes and taught according to sentient beings’ capacities. Although such teachings are expressed in words, they are the self-expression of the principal aim, so they are in essence free from verbal expression. Verbal expression necessarily deviates from nondiscrimination.
Chan practitioners knew this well, and some referred to the danger of one’s eyebrows falling o› through speaking of suchness. In case twenty-seven of the Blue Cliff Record [77] (T. 51: 167c), the compiler Yuanwu Keqin admonishes anyone who wants to give expression to true reality to not spare not only their eyebrows but their very lives.
23 Vulture Peak (i.e., Mount Dhlakama), located northeast of the city of Rajghat in Magadha, India, meaning here ¸åkyamuni, who expounded many of his teachings there.
24 Cockfoot Ridge (i.e., Mount Kakotopia) in Magadha, India, meaning here MahakaΩyapa, who is said to have sequestered himself there. In the Great Tang Dynasty Record of the Western Regions [32], T. 51: 919bc, Xuanzang describes how Mahå kåΩyapa, knowing his time of death, ascended the mountain and hid himself among its three peaks, holding the Buddha’s robe, which the Buddha’s aunt Mahåprajåpata had given him.
25 For a gloss on this phrase “support of the teaching of nirvana for monastic discipline” (niepanfulü; nehanfuritsu) and other similar expressions in the text, such as “the eternity of nirvana as the true support of morality” (p. 86), “the eternity of nirvana o›ers ultimate support to monastic discipline” (p. 110–11), and “the eternity of nirvana supports morality as its ultimate basis” (p. 159), see the passage from the Mahåparinirvå√a Sutra [6] given in note 155.
26 As is expounded in the Sutra of the Benevolent King [9].
27 In the Sutra of Maitreya’s Descent and Attainment of Buddhahood (Mi le xia sheng cheng fo jing; Mirokugensh oj obutsuky o; Taishovol. 14, no. 454),
it is said that five trillion, six hundred and seventy billion years after ¸åkyamuni’s parinirvå√a Bodhisattva Maitreya will appear in the world, attain Buddhahood under a pumnåra tree, and without fail liberate humans and gods according to their capacities—lesser, middling, and greater—through his teachings at three Dharma meetings.
28 The “bubbling spring of ultimate reality” is cited as one of the five significances of the Buddhist sutras by Chengguan (Ch okan; 738–839), one of the great Tang dynasty scholars of the Flower Ornament Sutra [64], in a detailed commentary on his own commentary on the sutra, the Collected Writings for Unfolding Meanings through Following the Com monetary (Suishu Yanyichao; Zuisho English o), Taishovol. 36, no. 1736, 36a. In the phrase “for eons under a thousand Buddhas,” Eisai refers to the thousand Buddhas who are expected to appear in the future lunar-mansion kalpa; see note 107.
29 The phrase “practicing dhyåna and investigating the Way” appears in the Blue Cliff Record [77], in two comments by Yuanwu (cases two and nine). The term dhyåna (chan; zen) is commonly translated as “meditation” but in a Zen context means “getting free from thought,” the aim of Zen meditation. The Way (dao; do) refers to the Buddhist path of liberation.
30 The monastic precepts to be followed to avoid various oneness and transgressions, as enumerated in the Vinaya in Four Divisions [4], totals two hundred and fifty for monks; there are three hundred and forty-eight for nuns.
31 The threefold collection of purifying precepts are: 1) keeping the precepts of restraint (saµvara-Ωala; shelüyijie; sh oritsugikai), including the ten weighty and forty-eight less weighty precepts; 2) practicing good acts; and 3) furthering people’s aspiration for awakening. This is of a completely Mahayana nature. Saich o, founder of the Tendai school in Japan, wished to receive social approval for requiring new ordained to adopt these Mahayana precepts of the Brahmå Net Sutra on the Bodhisattva ¸ala [5], but only after his death did the government sanction this. A deferent set of the precepts of restraint in the threefold collection is given in another Maha yana text, the Bodhisattva Himi (Pusadichijing; Bosatsujijiky o), Taishovol. 30, no. 1581, I, 10, consisting of the traditional precepts for the seven groups (bhik≈us, bhik≈u√as, Ωråma√eras, Ωråma√eras, Ωik≈amånås, upåsakas, and upåsikås) of the Mahayana sangha.
According to the the Brahmå Net Sutra (T. 24: 1004b–1005a), the ten weighty transgressions that violate the precepts of restraint are: 1) killing, either taking the life of another or one’s own life, 2) stealing, 3) committing obscenity toward oneself or others without compassion, 4) lying, 5) trading in intoxicants, 6) speaking of others’ faults, 7) praising oneself while denigrating others, 8) being stingy and abusive toward alms-seekers, 9) being angry even with one who apologizes, and 10) slandering the Three Treasures (Buddha, Dharma, and Sangha). The precepts of restraint against these transgressions are called the bodhisattvas’ ten partook (lit., “what liberates one from transgressions”). The forty-eight less weighty transgressions include consuming intoxicants; eating meat or foods prepared with onions, garlic, etc.; seeing a sick person without helping them; possessing weapons for killing; rejecting Mahayana sutras and Vinayas as non-Buddhist; and so on (1005b–1009b).
The Brahmå Net Sutra also states that these precepts should be accepted equally by both monastics and lay practitioners, with no distinction in this regard, whether the practitioner is a king, prince, minister, or social; a monk, nun, or lay follower; a licentious person or a slave (1008b). One who has committed a transgression against any of the weighty precepts is said to be unable to give rise to the aspiration for awakening (bodhicitta) and will lose one’s position as a king or monk (1004b). Beginners in the practice should recite the ten weighty and forty-eight less weighty precepts of restraint each posada day, the fortnightly meeting of the sangha (1008a). This was the practice Saich o wanted to institute for ordained of the Tendai school. In this Eisai squarely parted from Saich o, saying that monks should firmly uphold the two hundred and fifty monastic precepts (see note 30), and laypeople should uphold the threefold collection of purifying precepts, especially the ten weighty and forty-eight less weighty precepts.
32 The phrase “last five hundred-year period” refers to the categorization of the time after the Buddha’s Parinirvana into five hundred-year periods, in which people’s capacity for understanding the authentic teaching of the Buddha and attaining awakening progressively declines. This concept is seen in the “Moon Treasury” section, in fascicle fifty-five of the Large Collection Sutra (Saµnipata-sitra; Dajijing; Daijikky o), Taishovol. 13, no. 397, 363ab. In the first five hundred-year period, there are many who are able to attain to wisdom and liberation; in the second, many are able to practice dhyåna but not attain liberation; in the third, many are firm in hearing, reading, and reciting the Buddha’s teachings but are not able to practice dhyåna or attain liberation; in the fourth, many are able to build stupas and temples but not to practice or study the teachings; the fifth and last five hundred-year period is a period of degeneration, when many people are contentious and argue about the Buddhist teachings. This corresponds to the “latter-day world” referred to by Eisai throughout this treatise, reflecting the widespread belief in mapp o (“age of the decadent Dharma”) in medieval Japan.
33 Tathågatas, lit. “one who comes from thusness (tathåta),” are those who have realized the true nature of reality, i.e., Buddhas.
34 “The awakened truth of Zen that supports people in keeping the precepts”: see notes 25 and 155 for similar expressions, where Eisai identifies chan (zen) with the eternity of nirvana.
35 The word “means”—correction number 1.
36 The u≈√away, a protuberance on the top of the head, is one of the thirty-two distinguishing marks of a Buddha, along with a lock of hair between the eyebrows (irnå), the sign of a thousand-spoked wheel on the soles of the feet, etc.
37 The word “having”—correction number 2.
38 “The principle of Zen” (zenshi)—By this term, Eisai seems to mean not only the Zen principle but also the Zen school and practitioners of Zen.
39 The “four kinds of restraint” are to have a mind free from thoughts of obscenity, murder, theft, and the falsehood that one has attained awakening. Toward the end of fascicle six of the Sutra of ¸iraµgama Practices [14], the Buddha finished expounding these four kinds of restraint, and now, in fascicle seven, he goes on with the present exposition.
40 The Chinese version of the sitåtapatra-dhåra√a appears in the Sutra of ¸iraµgama Practices [14], Taishovol. 19, no. 945, pp. 134–6. Three Sanskrit versions—one corrected Nepalese text and two texts restored from the Chinese—together with their Japanese translations were published in the article “Ryogonshu to Byakusangaidarani, Comparative Studies of Restored Sanskrit Texts” (Kyoto: Rinzaishi My o shin jiha Education Research Bulletin No. 1, April 2003), by Professor Toshihiko Kimura of Shitennoji International Buddhist University, Osaka. The text is in three parts; the first part mentions worshiping bodhisattvas, Ωråvakas, the Three
atra (“White Umbrella”; sita, “white”; åtapa, “causing pain,” “heat”; åtapatrå [n., f.], “heat protector,” “a large umbrella”), and that she destroys ghosts and demons, eliminates enemies’ mantras, and protects reciters of the dhåra√a from nightmares, poison, weapons, fire, and water. The third part invokes all the goddesses to protect reciters. The dhåra√a deifies a large white umbrella in the belief that just as the white umbrella protects its holder from the afflicting heat of the sun, this dhåra√a will bring about calm and composure to the reciter.
41 For understanding the phrase, “divine . . . mantras uttered by my heart Buddha (xinfo; shinbutsu),” (T. 19: 133a, I, 17), two expressions that precede this in the quoted text, the Sutra of ¸iraµgama Practices [14], o›er help (T. 19: 133a, II, 6–8): “the unsurpassed sitåtapatra-dhåra√a (or sitåtapatra-mantrapadåni), which are beams from the protuberance (u≈√a≈a) of my Buddha’s head”; “the heart-mantras uttered by the heart Buddha that is of the unseen nature of the protuberance on the Tathågata’s head and unconditioned, and that issues beams from the u≈√a≈a while [the Tathågata is] sitting in a jewel lotus flower.” The term “heart-Buddha” sounds strange but seems to have something to do with “heart (h®daya)mantras. The Chinese word xinfo also suggests another term, “mindBuddha,” as what the compilers of the sutra may have meant. In this case it means “the mind as Buddha,” and this is the interpretation adopted by Hajime Nakamura, et al., Bukkyogo-daijiten, vol. II (Tokyo: Tokyo-shoseki, 1975).
42 A yojana is an Indian unit of distance, sometimes equated to the distance that can be traveled in one day.
43 Chish o, i.e., Enchain (814–891) went to Tang China and studied both exoteric and esoteric Buddhism from 853–858. He established an altar for goma (i.e., homa, burnt overing) ritual at Onj oji, and became the fifth head priest of Enryakuji on Mount Hiei. See Hajime Nakamura, et al., Bukkyo-jiten (Tokyo: Iwanami shoten, 1992). In the Treatise Eisai quotes from his Official Document Presented to the Emperor [15] and Similarities and Dissimilarities of the Teaching Forms [33].
44 Jikaku, i.e., Ennin (794–864), first studied under Saich o, went to Tang China from 838–847, and established the basis for Tendai esoteric Buddhism. He was the third head priest of Enryakuji on Mount Hiei. His record of his nine years in Tang China seeking the Dharma, the Nitt o- guh o junreik oki, is well known. See Nakamura, et al., Bukkyo-jiten (Tokyo: Iwanami shoten, 1992).
45 The text has ¸råvasta here.
46 The eight forms of being of the Buddha include his birth, supering, attainment of awakening, and passing away (parinirvå√a). According to the Treatise on Awakening Confidence [76], T. 32: 581a, the eight forms of being are: 1) leaving the Tu≈ita Heaven, 2) entering a human womb, 3) abiding in the womb, 4) leaving the womb, 5) becoming a mendicant, 6) attaining awakening, 7) turning the wheel of the Dharma, and 8) entering nirvana.
47 The word “answer”—correction number 3.
48 The Elucidatory Comments [18] is a commentary on Zhiyi’s Profound Meaning of the Lotus Sutra [47] (see note 8) by Jingxi Zhanran (Keikei Tannen), also known as Great Master Miaole (My oraku). Zhanran (711–
782) was considered the sixth patriarch of the Tiantai school founded by Zhiyi. Before he became a monk at the age of thirty-eight, he had studied the Tiantai teachings for twenty years. Besides this text, Eisai quotes from three other of Zhanran’s commentaries on Zhiyi’s works, Solutions for Propagation [20], Calming and Contemplation: Their Meaning and Examples [21], and Notes to the Words and Phrases [24].
49 Actually, this quote is from fascicle eighteen, 472b, in the Northern version and fascicle sixteen, 715a, in the Southern version of the Mahåparinirvå√a Sutra [6].
50 The word “respecting”—correction number 4.
51 Also by Zhanran. See note 48.
52 I.e., Zhiyi. See note 8.
53 I.e., “everything that has form is empty of its self-nature.”
54 The Jingde Records of Transmission of the Lamp [79], fascicle twenty-five, about State Master Tiantaishan Deshao (891–972), cites the following record (T. 51: 407c):
There was a transmitter of Tiantai Zhizhe’s teaching named Yiji, who frequently told the master (Deshao), “Zhizhe’s teachings have become remote as the years have gone by. I am afraid many of them will be lost. Now the Xinluoguo is equipped with many of his books. Without the master’s compassionate power, who could a›ord to bring them here?” The master reported this to King Zhongyi of the Wuyueguo. The king dispatched a messenger with a letter from the master to the country, the messenger made copies there and, fully equipped, returned.
Nowadays the copies prevail.
55 Daoxuan, i.e., D osen (also Daorui; D oei; 702–760). He received transmission of the Northern school of Chan from Puji (651 –739). In 736 he came to Japan in response to a request by two monks, Fush o and Y oei, who had come to Tang China from Japan, and stayed at the Dai’anji Saitoin in Nara. Versed in Kegon and Tendai teachings, he had influence on Saich o through his disciple Gy ohy o (see note 56). See Nakamura, et al., Bukkyojiten (Tokyo: Iwanami shoten, 1992).
56 Gy ohy o (727–797) was ordained along with seven hundred others in 741 at the imperial court, and accepted the precepts and Chan practice under the guidance of Daoxuan of the Dai’anji (see note 55). Later he lived at the Sifukuji in Shiga, Omi Province. Toward the end of his life he retired to the Hisoji in Yamato Province and transmitted the Chan truth to Saich o (see note 41). See Ui, Bukkyo-jiten (Tokyo: T osei-shuppansha, 1953).
57 Dengy o, i.e., Saich o (766 or 767–822) was the founder of the Tendai school in Japan. At the age of twelve he became a disciple of Gy ohy o (see note 56) of the Kokubunji, Omi Province; he was ordained at age fourteen and took the name Saicho In 785 he entered Mount Hiei, where he built a hut to live in and began reading Buddhist scriptures such as the Lotus Sutra [19], the Sutra of Golden Light [90], and the Heart Sutra (Prajñåpåramitå- hadaya-sitra; Banruoboluomiduoxinjing; Hannyaharamitashin gy o; Taishovol. 8, no. 251), and studying various other scriptures and treatises, especially the three great treatises by the Tiantai master Zhiyi (see note 8). Three years later he consecrated his hut as a temple, naming it the Ichij oshikan-in (later known as the Konponchid o). In 794 he held a large overing service at the temple, attended by Emperor Kanmu (r. 781–806) and learned priests of the major temples of Nara. After that he was appointed to serve the imperial inner court as a priest, and his temple was ranked as a state-protecting d oj o (bodhima√∂a, “seat of awakening”). In 804, according to an imperial order by Kanmu to promote the study of the Tiantai school, Saich o went to Tang China. There he received the Tiantai transmission from Daosui and Xingman, the Chan transmission from Xiaoran, the bodhisattva Ωala (precepts) from Daozui, an esoteric method from Shunxiao and others, and returned the following year, in 805. In 806 he received public approval for his Tendai school from the imperial court. Toward the end of his life he wanted to establish a system in which practitioners would be ordained in the Mahayana Ωala to be followed by twelve years of study and practice at Mount Hiei. Though this system was not instituted during his lifetime due to opposition from other Buddhist schools in Nara, it was publicly approved after his death. See Ui, Bukkyo-jiten (Tokyo: T osei-shuppansha, 1953). In the Treatise Eisai quotes from Saich o’s Genealogy [23] and Single Mind Moral Precept [58] as well as from the Notes to the Latter-day World Dharma Lamp [39] attributed to him.
58 The word “second”—correction number 5. The phrase “fifty-third year of King Mu” (in the Kanmon-Yanagida version and the Koho Toshun Taishoversion) has been corrected to “fifty-second year of King Mu,” following two sources: 1) the biography of the monk Tan Wusui (Don Musai) of Wei in fascicle twenty-three of Daoxuan’s Continued Biographies of Eminent Monks (Xugaosengzhuan; Taishovol. 50, no. 2060, 624c–625a); and 2) the middle fascicle of the Separate Biography of Monk Falin (Horin) of Tang (Taishovol. 50, no. 2051, 207b).
59 The word “bodhisattvas”—correction number 6.
60 The word “bodhisattvas”—correction number 7.
61 The word “become”—correction number 8.
62 The word “these”—correction number 9.
63 The T oji in Kyoto represents the Kong obuji on Mount K oya.
64 The Tendai school is represented by the Enryakuji on Mount Hiei.
65 The “eight schools” are the six schools of the Nara period (710–94), Hoss o, J ojitsu, Kegon, Kusha, Ritsu, and Sanron; and the two schools of the
Heian period (795–1191), Shingon and Tendai. These were the major schools of Buddhism in Japan.
66 KåΩyåpa-Måtaçga is an Indian Buddhist who came to Luoyang, China, in 67 C.E.
67 Vajrabodhi (671–741) came to China in 720.
68 The word “rare”—correction number 10.
69 Annen (841–889 or 898), was ordained by Ennin (see note 44) in the bodhisattva Ωala in 859. After Ennin died, he studied exoteric and esoteric Buddhism under Henj o. In 884, he became a denbo-dai-ajari (“great åcårya [teacher] for transmission of the esoteric truth”) and lived at a temple called the Godai-in which he had had built on Mount Hiei.
70 The four attainments are the four stages of spiritual accomplishment of Ωråvakas: stream-enterer (srota-åpanna), once-returner (sak®dågåmin), non-returner (anågåmin) and arhat. The ultimate of the four attainments is athwartship.
71 Taigong Wan (Taik o B o), a title of honor presented to Lushang of the Zhou (Shi) dynasty.
72 According to a story described in the Mahåparinirvå√a Sutra [6] (T. 12: 450a–451a), Siddhårtha, while a bodhisattva in a former life, was deeply moved upon hearing a demon (råk≈asa) cite the first half of a verse deep in the Himålayas, and sought to hear the second half by overing himself to the demon as a reward. This is alluded to by Eisai in saying that even “half a verse” on the Dharma was not belittled even though it was recited by a demon.
73 Eisai refers here to the Collection of Records from the Ancestral Mirrors [48], T. 48: 497a.
74 The king of Pengcheng told the priests that he would take refuge in a holy person as his master someone who, as the result of having attained awakening, could manifest such miracles as making water gush from under their left shoulder and flames from under their right shoulder, fly up high into the sky, emit beams of light, and shake the earth. Master Niutou Farong criticized the king’s view, saying he was afraid that if he were to attain such powers he would be going against the Dharma and that, in such a case, a magician would be a Buddha. Awakening is the transformation of wisdom, and has nothing to do with mere changes of form, such as the difference between male and female or whether men or women have fine or ugly features or clothing. This story in the Collection of Records from the Ancestral Mirrors [48] does not appear elsewhere, such as in the biography of Master Farong in Daoxuan’s Continued Biographies of Eminent Monks (Taishovol. 50, no. 2060), compiled around 645; in the section of the Collection of the Chan Patriarchal Hall, fascicle three, that introduces Master Niutou Farong; or in the Jingde Records of Transmission of the Lamp [79], fascicle four.
Meanwhile, these three texts all introduce Farong as a master deeply respected not only by humans but also by animals and even plants in the unity of all beings. According to the Collection of the Chan Patriarchal Hall, Daoxin, the Fourth Patriarch of Chan, drawn by some omens he had observed from far away, came to see Master Farong deep in the mountains, surrounded by beings that were all friendly to him. After the Fourth Patriarch taught Master Farong how everything was empty of their characteristics, it is said that no ghosts were able to see the master to bring overrings. Nevertheless, when Master Farong had to leave the mountain, all the animals and plants, it is said, grieved upon being separated from him.
Master Farong is now regarded as the author of the Jueguanlun (Zekkanron), an early Chan text unearthed from Dunhuang. See the English translation by Gishin Tokiwa, A Dialogue on the Contemplation-Extinguished (Kyoto: Institute for Zen Studies, 1973).
75 According to the Sutra of the Bodhisattva Abiding in the Womb (The Buddha’s Teaching in a Scripture Called the Bodhisattva Descending from Tu≈ita Heaven, Abiding in the Mother’s Womb, and Expounding the Truth Extensively; Pusachutaijing; Bosatsu shotaiky o) translated by Zhu Fo nian (Taishovol. 12, no. 384, 1058b), the eight treasuries of the Buddha’s teachings are: 1) the teaching expounded when he was still in his mother’s womb, 2) the teaching expounded during the period immediately after his departure from human life, 3) the teaching of the Great Vehicle, 4) the teaching of Ωala and vinaya, 5) the teaching from each of the ten bodhisattva stages, 6) miscellaneous teachings, 7) the teaching of the vajra treasury, i.e., the esoteric teaching, and 8) the teaching of the Buddha treasury (i.e., teachings by all the Buddhas).
76 The “four grave oneness” are the four påråjika oneness that result in expulsion from the sangha. The “five grave transgressions” are 1) patricide, 2) matricide, 3) killing an arhat, 4) causing a schism in the sangha, and 5) causing blood to flow from the body of a Buddha.
77 In Chapter II, “The Tathågata’s Indestructible Body,” of the Mahåpari nirvå√a Sutra [6] (Taishovol. 12, no. 374, fasc. 3, 383c–4a; Taishovol. 12, no. 376, by Faxian, 666c–867a; Tibetan vol. 31, no. 788, 47b–49a), the story of the monk Buddhadatta (datta, “given”) and King Bhavadatta (bhava, “samsaric being”) goes as follows:
In the past, immeasurable kalpas ago, in this same city of KuΩinagara there appeared a Buddha, Tathågata, World-honored One named Nandivardhana (“Pleasure-increasing”). In those days the land was as extensive, rich, and comfortable as the Land of Bliss, Sukhåvata. The people prospered and knew no famine. The Buddha abided in the world, teaching people for immeasurable years, and under the twin Ωåla trees he entered parinirvå√a. After this the Buddha’s authentic teachings remained for immeasurable ko†is of years and forty more years before the teachings were extinguished.
Then there was a precept-keeper monk named Buddhadatta. He had many followers surrounding him to hear his lion’s roar extensively expounding the nine scriptures. He caused others to restrain from keeping servants, cows, bu›alo (“sheep” in no. 374), as prohibited by the monastic rules.
There were many ill-behaved monks who, on hearing Buddhadatta’s exposition, decided to kill him. They gathered, took weapons in hand, and went straight to Buddhadatta. The king of the land, Bhavadatta, heard of this and in order to protect the Buddha’s teachings he went immediately to save the preacher from harm. He engaged in fighting the ill-behaved monks. The king was attacked with swords, spears, diamond-pointed weapons, and arrows; no place on his body, even as small as grains of mustard seed, was left unpierced.
Buddhadatta saw this, and praised the king, “A protector of the Buddha’s authentic teachings should be like you. You will be the vessel of truth for innumerable kalpas.” The king, hearing the monk’s words, died and was reborn in the land of Ak≈obhya (“Immovable”) Buddha. His men, whose hearts were transported with joy, continued to fight, all determined to attain awakening, and after death were reborn in the Buddha land of Ak≈obhya.
The monk Buddhadatta also, after the king’s death, died and was reborn in Ak≈obhya Buddha’s presence as his chief disciple. The king became the second disciple (according to the Faxian and Tibetan versions; in no. 374 the king becomes the chief disciple).
The authentic teachings, when about to be hidden, should be protected in this way. The one who was King Bhavadatta was me (¸åkyamuni). The monk Buddhadatta was KåΩyapa Buddha, who has entered parinirvå√a. The fruit of protecting the authentic teachings in this way is immeasurable. I have gained the indestructible body and the Dharma body.
78 According to Professor Seizan Yanagida, the phrase “not setting up any words” (buliwenzi; furyimonji) first appeared in the opening remarks of a Tang dynasty Chan text, mid-eighth century, On the Genealogy from Buddha to Buddha (Xuemailun; Kechimyakuron), one fascicle, the sixth of Bodhi dharma’s Six Gates (Shaoshilumen; Sh oshitsurokumon), Taishovol. 48, no. 2009. The passage in question (T. 48: 373b) goes:
The three worlds [of desire, form, and no-form] that have been made to arise return together to one mind; one Buddha through mind transmits mind to another Buddha, setting up no words.
The text goes on to say that since no words are set up by Buddhas for transmission—only mind—not even words like buddha, bodhi, or nirvana are set up as something to be transmitted (ibid.). But this does not mean that the ordinary sentient mind is the ultimate truth for transmission. The mind that grasps itself and others as actual phenomena does not realize the original nature of mind, which is one, beyond grasping (374a, c). No one other than the Buddhas realized this empty nature of mind (376a). Thus “setting up no words” also means not setting up even the concept of “mind” as transmitter or transmitted, and this is called the transmission of mind through mind from one Buddha to another.
79 “Perfect rank” (yuanwei; en’i), one of the terms beginning with “perfect” that were frequently used since Zhiyi, means the rank of the “perfect teaching” (yuanjiao; engy o), one point of which includes all the other points in itself. See also Yanagida’s headnote for the kundoku text, Nihonshis otaikei, vol. 16 (Tokyo: Iwanami-shoten, 1972), p. 39.
80 “Perfect and immediate awakening” (yuandun; endon) means the nature of the practice whose first stage is at once both no deferent and deferent from the remaining stages, as the waxing or waning moon is both no deferent and deferent from the full moon.
81 The “sixfold immediacy” of awakening (luji; rokusoku) is a series of six concepts which stand for six stages through which the mind of awakening (bodhicitta; putixin; bodaishin) attains ultimate awakening, introduced by Zhiyi in the latter half of fascicle one of his Great Calming and Contemplation [29], T. 46: 10bc. He introduces this along with two other important themes for promoting and deepening practitioners’ understanding of the mind of awakening: the “four noble truths” (cat våryårya satyåni) and the “fourfold grand vow” (sihongshiyuan; shiguzeigan).
According to Zhiyi, practitioners need to be freed from lack of confidence and excess of pride at each stage of practice. One needs to be confident 1) in ultimate reality or reason being immediate to every moment of one’s mind (liji; risoku), 2) in the immediacy of reason through literary knowledge (mingziji; my ojisoku), 3) in one’s knowledge through the practices of contemplation (guanxingji; kangy osoku), 4) in one’s practice through the realization of approaching ultimate awakening (xiangsiji; s ojisoku), 5) in approaching ultimate awakening through the revelation of suchness (fenzhonji; bunshinsoku), and 6) in ultimate awakening through attainment (jiujingji; kuky osoku).
82 “An ancient one,” namely, Master Zhiyi, quoted from the Great Calming and Contemplation [29], T. 46: 80c.
83 The phrase “the former is a clumsy crossing”—correction number 11.
84 The phrase “and the latter a clever crossing”—correction number 12. 85 I.e., the self-nature of everything, which is empty of itself.
86 The three modes of reality (sandi; santai) are: empty (Ωinya), provisional (prajñapti), and the middle (madhya).
87 The practice of nembutsu is the recollection of Amitåbha Buddha’s vow by reciting his name.
88 The word “after”—correction number 13.
89 Dhyåna as one of the six påramitås (perfections).
90 Samådhi as one of the three Ωik≈ås, or basic Buddhist learnings.
91 CHonen (938–1016), a priest of the T odaiji, Nara, studied Sanron and Shingon teachings; in 983 he went to Song China and was accorded a cordial reception by Emperor Taizong (r. 976–97), made a pilgrimage to Wutai shan (Godaisan) and so on, and returned to Japan in 987, bringing home five thousand volumes of a newly printed Tripitaka and a Buddha image. See Nakamura, et al., Bukkyo-jiten (Tokyo: Iwanami shoten, 1992).
92 “Sangaku” means the three basic Buddhist learnings (ΩikΩås): morality (Ωala), concentration (samådhi), and wisdom (prajñå).
93 The phrase “the nondiscrimination dhyåna of the Tathågatas,” as well as “the Tathågata’s dhyåna” (see note 96) are drawn from the Laçkåvatåra-sitra [66], T. 16: 492a. Eisai considers this to represent one of the core concepts of Chan/Zen. See the quote from the Laçkåvatåra-sitra at the end of Fascicle Two of the Treatise, p. 151.
94 Emperor Toba (r. 1107–41), after leaving the throne, out of his faith in the Buddha-Dharma, visited the Tenn oji in Osaka to make overrings in its Nembutsu hall, November 12, 1149.
95 The word “school”—correction number 14.
96 The Tathågata’s dhyåna is considered to include all three of the basic Buddhist learnings (Ωik≈ås) of morality (Ωala), concentration (samådhi), and wisdom (prajñå). The concept appears in the Laçkåvatåra-sitra [66], T. 16: 492a; see also note 93.
97 Concerning “the foreword to the Sutra of Perfect Awakening” [51], the extant foreword does not include the passage quoted here.
98 The Foreword to the Brahmå Net Sutra [53], included in the Rinzai shi seiten as the Foreword to the Bodhisattvas’ Moral Precepts; this text divers from the Brahmå Net Sutra on the Bodhisattva ¸ala [5].
99 The three evil paths are the three lower realms of hell, hungry ghosts, and animals into which sentient beings may be reborn.
100 The five components of the Tathågata’s being are the three learnings (ΩikΩås) of morality (Ωala), concentration (dhyåna), and wisdom (prajñå), plus liberation and the realization of liberation.
101 Cited in the Rinzaishiseiten. See note 98.
102 The word “Master”—correction number 15.
103 The Postscript to A Treatise on the Contemplation of Mind (Tiantai Guanxinlun Aopi; Tendai Kanshinron Ohi, Taishovol. 46, no. 1920, 584), is not extant.
104 The word “selected”—correction number 16.
105 The term “seal of the mind” expresses the nonduality between the concepts of the mind as a seal for stamping and the mind as the mark stamped with the seal. It carries the same meaning as “transmitting mind through mind” (yixinchuanxin; ishidenshin), i.e., the realization that there is no transmitter or recipient, just the transmission of mind itself. See also note
78 on “not setting up any words.”
106 The word “lineage”—correction number 17.
107 The passage quoted here is not found in the Longer Records of the Buddha’s Words [61]. In the Great Root Sutra (Mahåpadåna-suttanta; Dabenji; Daihongy o; Taishovol. 1, no. 1; Daghanikåya II), ¸åkyamuni cites the names of the six Buddhas who appeared in the world before him: three in the past kalpa and three in the present auspicious kalpa (bhadrakalpa). However, the Buddha makes no reference to the name of the past kalpa or to the appearance of one thousand Buddhas.
What constitutes the source of Eisai’s quote is seen in the Account of the Three-Kalpa Three-Thousand Buddhas (Sanjiesanqianfo-yuanqi; San- g osanzenbutsu-engi; Taishovol. 14, no. 446, 364c–365a), a passage quoted from another sutra, the Sutra on Contemplation of the Two Bodhisattvas Bhai≈ajyaråja and Bhai≈ajyaråjasamudgata (Guan yao wang yao shang er pu sa jing; Kan yaku o yaku j o ni bosatsu ky o), translated by KålayaΩas in the Liu-Song dynasty, 424–442; Taishovol. 20, no. 1161. In the Account of the Three-Kalpa Three-Thousand Buddhas, ¸åkyamuni refers to the threefold one thousand Buddhas and their appearances in the world in the past “kalpa of supernal manifestations (vyihakalpa; zhuangyanjie; sh ogong o),” the present “auspicious kalpa (bhadrakalpa; xianjie; geng o),” and the future “lunar-mansion kalpa (nak≈atrakalpa; xingxiujie; seishukug o).” In the TaishoTripitaka the Account is followed by the Sutra of the Names of One Thousand Buddhas in the Past Kalpa of Supernal Manifestations (Guoquzhuangyanjieqianfomingjing; Kakosh ogong osenbutsumy oky o). After the title, before the text of the sutra, where the translator’s name would usually appear, there is a note that reads: “The translator’s name is missing. This is gleanings from the Kaiyuan (Kaigen) Buddhist Text Catalogue, recorded in the Liang (Ryo) Catalogue.” Sengyou (S oyi) of Liang, the compiler of the Liang Catalogue, includes the Account in his ¸åkya Genealogy (Shijiapu; Shakafu), Taishovol. 50, no. 2040, 9c. The Sanskrit term “vyihakalpa,” here assumed to be the original for “zhuangyanjie; sh ogong o,” has not been confirmed in any available Sanskrit text, including the Mahåvastu and the Dharmasaµgraha. For the meaning of “vyiha” I consulted Franklin Edgerton’s Buddhist Hybrid Sanskrit Dictionary (Delhi: Motilal Banarsidass, 1972, reprint).
108 The word “as”—correction number 18.
109 The stupa called “Plenty of Children” refers to the Bahuputraka shrine, called either the Bahuputraka caitya (Duozita; Tashit o) or the Bahuputraka nyagrodha (Duozishu; Tashiju), a banyan or Indian fig tree located on the road between Råjag®ha and Nålandå, which served as a shrine for people who prayed for sons. According to the Mahåvastu (“Stories of Great Events,” a Sanskrit collection of the Buddha’s legends edited by E. Senart in three volumes, Paris, 1882–97), the Licchavis presented this shrine together with three others to the Buddha and his sangha for their use (Vol. I, p. 300). In the chapter “MahåkåΩyapa’s Event of Entering Ascetic Life,” MahåkåΩyapa tells Ånanda how he left the householder life to practice under the guidance of the Buddha, met him in Råjag®ha at the Bahu- putraka shrine, was accepted as a disciple, attained arthatship in eight days, overed a seat for the Buddha by spreading out his cotton under-robe on the ground under a tree, and the Buddha gave him an under-robe in return (Vol. III, pp. 50–5).
Concerning the “Bahuputraka shrine,” see footnotes to the term in the corresponding pages in J. J. Jones’s English translation, The Mahåvastu (London: Pali Text Society, 1973, Vol. I; 1978, Vol. III). The same story of MahåkåΩyapa’s first meeting the Buddha appears in fascicle forty-six of the Sutra of the Original Practice [96], where Bahuputraka is described as a shrine deity and as a tree (T. 3: 866ab).
110 The Tiansheng Records of the Expanding Lamp (Tianshengguangdenglu; Tensh ok ot oroku) compiled in 1036, thirty fascicles, Zokuz oky o 8–306c, says:
When the Buddha preached the Dharma on Vulture Peak, heavenly beings presented flowers to him. The Buddha held a flower in his hand and showed it to the audience. KåΩyapa smiled. Then the Buddha said, “I am entrusting Mahå kåΩyapa with the eye of the Dharma that is pure and clean. . . .”
This story has its antecedent in the Sutra of the Original Practice [96], fascicle four (T. 3: 668b):
Then Dapaµkara, the Tathågata, arhan, samyaksaµbuddha, knew my mind, and smiled thereupon. An attending bhik≈u stood up from his seat, adjusted his robe, uncovered his right shoulder, paid sublime homage to the Buddha, and said: “For what reason, Most Exalted One, did the Tathågata smile?” The Buddha Dapaµkara told the bhik≈u: “You, my mendicant, have seen how this young man [Bodhisattva Megha] (megha, “cloud”) honored me with the seven stalks of lotus flowers he held, and then threw himself face down with hair spreading out on the muddy ground to make a bridge for me to tread upon. Because of this, this young man will, after an innumerable kalpa, attain awakening and be called ¸åkyamuni, the Tathågata, arhan, samyaksaµbuddha, provided with the Tathågata’s ten epithets, no deferent from me.
111 “He also composed a verse”—Here Eisai follows descriptions in the Jingde Records of Transmission of the Lamp [79], T. 51: 206a and 205b. To this he adds the place names “Bahuputraka shrine” and “Vulture Peak” in order, possibly according to the Tiansheng Records of the Expanding Lamp, Zokuz oky o 8–306c and 306a.
112 A saµghå†a robe is one of the three larger outer garments of a bhik≈u (monk).
113 A Ωråvaka (lit. “word-hearer”) refers to the original disciples of the Buddha who directly heard him teach, and more generally to a Buddhist mendicant whose practice consists in listening to the Buddha’s teachings. A pratyekabuddha (“solitary awakened one”) is a Buddhist practitioner who attains awakening through a direct understanding of the Buddha’s teachings, in particular the teaching of dependent origination, and who does not teach or guide others. Both Ωråvakas and pratyekabuddhas, as part of the Hinayana vehicle, are distinguished from the Mahayana ideal of the bodhisattva.
114 Eisai composes the following sections on the Chan/Zen school Dharma transmission according to the contents of fascicle three of the Jingde Records of Transmission of the Lamp [79].
115 Eisai follows the dates given in the Jingde Records of Transmission of the Lamp [79], fasc. 3, T. 51: 219a. According to the notes of correction later inserted in the Jingde Records, Bodhidharma reached Guangfu in Putong the first year of Liang, not the eighth year (527), and visited Luoyang in November of the same year, the first year of Zhengguang (Sh ok o), not Taihe, the tenth year of Wei (486), as is given here in the Treatise. This means that the correct date is the year of gengzi (k oshi; kanoe-ne), 520.
116 “Listen to my verse”—this is what is referred to below as Bodhidharma’s Dharma transmission verse. According to the Jingde Records of Transmission of the Lamp [79], fasc. 3, T. 51: 219c, the verse reads:
I’ve originally come to this land,
To transmit the Dharma and help the lost.
A single flower opens in five leaves;
The forming of seeds will naturally succeed.
117 Eisai refers here to a passage in fascicle eighty-six of a collection of rules of practice and oral traditions of the Tendai school, compiled by the Mount Hiei priest K oshi (1311–1348), entitled Bundles of Leaves Collected in the Valley Mist (Keiranshiishi, originally three hundred fascicles; one hundred and thirty fascicles extant). The passage (T. 76: 779c) reads:
As has been transmitted, Bodhidharma, foreseeing the time of death, said this in verse:
When one ceases to sense trickling in the jade pond, Getting some mysterious light at the bottom of the waves, There one knows impermanence.
Then one should listen to the drum of the human skull, Count the number, and know on what date to die.
This was brought by a former sea captain in the days of Song named Hansheng (Hansh o) and was entrusted to Holy Priest Y ojin of Chinzei (Kyushu). The personal tradition transmitted thereafter says:
By the jade pond is meant the mouth, by the bottom of the waves are the eyes, and by listening to the drum of the human skull is meant that at the time of the mouse on the final day of a year, one may extend both one’s hands to cover both ears and hit the head, counting the number of the monthly days of the next year. When the sound of hitting ceases to be heard, that shows the date of one’s death.
Further ways of practice cannot be cited here.
118 By “oneness” or “the single gate” of the mind, the monk seems to have meant the sentient being as mind is originally nothing other than the Buddha as no-mind. The source of this view is sought in the Treatise on Awakening Confidence [76], where the mind of a sentient being (sattvacitta), as yet unweakened, is explained to have two gates or modes of being: 1) the original, true mode (tathatå) of the mind and 2) the arising-perishing mode (samsara) of the mind. The true mode of the mind is the awakened mode of being, free of mind. The arising-perishing mode of the mind concerns how an unweakened being comes to attain awakening into the original true mode of being. Speaking of the “oneness of the mind” presupposes the above two gates. Speaking of “oneness” or “a single gate” without reference to the two gates fails to be real. The original, true mode of the mind is beyond oneness as well as twoness; it is “nothing,” of “no gate.”
119 The following verse is an adaptation from the biography of Xuanzang (Genj o), in fascicle one (T. 51: 2a) of the Biographies of Eminent Buddhist Sangha Members in the Great Tang Who Visited the Western Districts to Seek the Teachings of the Buddha-Dharma (Datang xiyu qiufagao sengzhuan; Dait osaiikiguh ok os oden; Taishovol. 51, no. 2066), by Yijing (Gij o, 635– 713).
120 Concerning the Chinese characters for these two questions, footnote number two in the Taishotext has: “The Kanmon text had a headnote that read,
‘All nine characters were possibly incorrectly transcribed.’”
121 The word “calligraphy”—correction number 19.
122 In Eisai’s expression, “through directly pointing to the source of the mind,” the “source of the mind” means “the mind that is originally the Buddha” (xin benlai shi fo; kokoro honrai kore butsu), an expression by Huangbo Xiyun ( Obaki Kiun, c. eighth–ninth centuries), according to the Record at Wanling (Wanlinglu; EnRyoroku), Taishovol. 48, no. 2012-B, 385b. In the Essentials of the Transmission of Mind (Taishovol. 48, no. 2012-A; English translation by John McRae published in this volume, pp. 1–42), Huangbo quotes the Sixth Patriarch, Huineng (T. 48: 384a):
Just when one reaches this occasion, one knows how the patriarch has come from the west, directly pointing to the human mind, and how seeing one’s nature, getting awakened to it, resides in no verbal exposition.
And this (T. 48: 383a):
You should simply eliminate the ratiocination of the ordinary [mind] and the [enlightened] realm of the sage—there is not any separate Buddha outside of the mind. The patriarch [Bodhidharma] came from the west to point out directly that all persons are in their entireties the Buddha.
123 The two lines “It also says in elect:/Vimalakarti remained silent” were lacking in the Kanmon version and added by Koho Toshun.
124 The two lines “The Laçkåvatåra-sitra says/The Tathågatas’ nondiscrimination dhyåna” were lacking in the Kanmon version and added by Koho Toshun.
125 This quote is not found in the Mahåprajñåparamitå Sutra [10], but a similar expression is found in T. 7, fasc. 531, 727c.
126 The Mahåparinirvå√a Sutra [6], T. 12: 520b has, “The Tathågata never expounds the Dharma.” The line quoted here is found in the Laçkåvatårasitra [66], T. 16: 499c.
127 The passage quoted by Eisai here is from the first version of the Commentary on the Mahåvairocana Sutra [26], the Dainichiky o Sho (Taishovol. 39, no. 1796), brought back by Kikai. It is not found in the second version, the Dainichiky o Gishaku (Zokuz oky o 1–36), brought back by Ennin. There are slight difference between the two versions. Eisai quotes from the Dainichiky o Gishaku at three other places in the text, pp. 90–1, 103–4, and 154. This is the only quote from the Dainichiky o Sho.
128 The word “Confidence”—correction number 20.
129 The three schools are the Huayan (Kegon), Faxiang (Hoss o), and Tiantai (Tendai).
130 The Kanmon version has: “Originally...obtained is called seeing the Buddha-Dharma.”
131 This four-line passage, beginning with “As soon as you estimate it. . . ,” is from the Extensive Record of Great Master Xuansha Zongyi of Fuzhou (Fuzhou Xuansha Zongyi Dashi Guanglu; Fukushi Gensha S oitsu Daishi K oroku), Zokuz oky o 2–31, 190a, a text in three fascicles of Xuansha Shibei (Gensha Shibi, 835–908), originally compiled between 900 and 907 by Zhiyan (Chigon), recompiled in 1080 by Sunjue (Sonkaku), reprinted in 1325 in three fascicles, and printed in Japan in 1690. However, Eisai may possibly have quoted the passage from the Eye and Treasury of the True Dharma [78], Zokuz oky o 2–23, 59c. The expression of the original four sentences is the same in both the Extensive Record and the Eye and Treasury. The third sentence given here by Eisai is a shortened form of the last two sentences of the original, which read:
If you let movement and quietude die out (min; bin), you will fall through and be lost (luokongwang; rakukib o). If you accept (shou; shi) both movement and quietude, you will squander your Buddha-nature.
132 In his comment on case nine of the Blue Cliff Record [77], T. 48: 149c, Yuanwu says, “Now tell me how you would grasp it. When doing like this won’t do, and not doing like this won’t do either, what will you do?”
133 The expression “an arrow that has left the bow is not bound to return” is from fascicle two of Xuansha’s Extensive Record (Zokuz oky o 2–31, 190b) (see note 131, above), where it appears in the following context: “The manner of a man of the Way is like fire that melts ice and never causes freezing, or like an arrow that has left the bow, never bound to return.” Yuanwu used this as a comment on the opening words of case thirty-seven of the Blue Cliff Record [77], T. 48: 175a: “Panshan said, ‘In this triple world there is no Dharma,’” meaning that there is no Dharma, no Buddha, nothing that has its own characteristics. Panshan Baoji (Banzan H oshaku; dates unknown) was a disciple of Mazu Daoyi (Basu D oitsu; 709–788).
The phrase “none of the thousand sages would be able to grasp it” appears in Yuanwu’s foreword to case thirty-eight of the Blue Cliff Record [77], T. 48: 175c: “If we speak about the immediacy of awakening, it will leave no sign or trace. None of the thousand sages would be able to grasp it.”
134 In his comment on case nine of the Blue Cliff Record [77] (see also note 132), Yuanwu used the expression “the final day of the year-end” to mean a closing date for settling the accounts of one’s life.
135 When Taiyuan Fu was lecturing on the boundless and responsive nature of the Dharma body (dharmakåya), a Chan practitioner in the audience laughed at him. Fu asked the practitioner why he had laughed. The Chan practitioner said that Fu could lecture on the quantity level of the Dharma body but did not see the Dharma body itself. To Fu’s further questioning on what he should do, the Chan practitioner said that he should stop lecturing for a while and go sit in a quiet room, and then he would necessarily see the Dharma body for himself. Fu followed this advice and one night, while sitting in a quiet room, on hearing the gong marking the fifth watch of the night he suddenly attained awakening.
Later, Fu went to Master Xuefeng Yicun (Sepp o Gison; 822–908) and practiced with him, not leaving to take up residence in any temple. That is why he was called Fu Shangzuo (J oza, “Elder Monk”). See also fascicle nineteen of the Jingde Records of Transmission of the Lamp [79], T. 51: 359c–360a.
136 The word “seek”—correction number 21.
137 “An ancient man of Chan”—Eisai refers here to Muzhou Daozon (Bokuji D osh o; 780?–877?), a Dharma heir to Huangbo Xiyun ( Obaki Kiun), according to the Chanmenniansongji (Zenmonnenjushi) 16, a record of Chan masters’ words and comments in verse compiled in Korea, 1226. It seems Eisai knew of this through some other source, but his contemporary source is no longer extant.
138 Luoshan Daoxian (Razan D okan; dates unknown), a Dharma heir to Yantou Quanhuo (Gant o Zenkatsu; 826–885).
139 Shishuang Qingzhu (Sekis o Keisho; 807–888), a Dharma heir to Daowu Yuanzhi (D ogo Enchi; 769–835).
140 The phrase “make one moment ten thousand years” is from the Inscription on the Confident Mind (Xinxinming; Shinjinmei), in fascicle nineteen of the Jingde Records of Transmission of the Lamp [79], T. 51: 457b:
The Dharma world of suchness has neither self nor other.
To whom accord is pressing, let me just say, “Be nondual.”
Being nondual, all are the same, leaving none uncontained.
The wise in the ten directions all enter this principal aim.
The principal aim being neither short nor long, one moment is ten thousand years.
(A variant translation of the passage appears in the English translation by Osamu Yoshida, published under the title “The Faith-Mind Maxim,” Taishovol. 48, no. 2010, in the volume Three Chan Classics, Numata Center, 1999).
In response to Luoshan’s question,“When arising and perishing don’t cease, what shall I do?”, Shishuang said, “Have the container fit the lid,” meaning for Luoshan not to separate himself from arising and perishing. Luoshan could not accord with this response and left Shishuang to go to Yantou, who responded “What is it that arises and perishes?” At this, Luoshan could be one with arising and perishing.
141 Yantou Quanhuo (Gant o Zenkatsu) a Dharma heir along with Xuefeng Yicun (Sepp o Gison) to Deshan Xuanjian (Tokusan Senkan; 782?–865).
142 In his comment on case two of the Blue Cliff Record [77], Yuanwu cites the first two lines of the Inscription on the Confident Mind (see note 140) with Master Zhaozhou Congshen’s (J oshi Jishin; 778–897) critical remarks on them. The lines read:
The ultimate Way is not hard to attain, though it dislikes selection.
Only take care not to hate or love, and the Way will be thoroughly clear.
Zhaozhou says, “As soon as there is any word, that’s a selection. I don’t abide even in being clear.” Yuanwu comments (T. 48: 141c): “Tell me where Zhaozhou abides. Do apprehend the aim of the steelyard hook. Never cling to the measurement marks on the beam.”
143 To “throw a pepper seed onto the tip of a needle”—in Chapter I, part two, of the Mahåparinirvå√a Sutra [6], fasc. 2, T. 12: 372c, a lay devotee named Cunda-Karmåraputra expresses in verse his joy at having the opportunity to o›er a meal to the Buddha. Tradition holds that the Buddha did accept the meal, which proved to be his last. In this Mahayana scripture, however, the Buddha continues discoursing about the meaning of his passing into parinirvå√a. In the verse Cunda compares the rarity and difficulty of receiving a human life and encountering a Buddha to that of throwing a pepper seed onto the tip of a needle or a blind tortoise ascending from the depths of the sea through a hole in a piece of wood floating on the surface.
144 Fascicle eighty of the Book of Jin (Shinjo, one hundred and thirty fascicles) cites the following episode with Wang Huizi ( O Kishi), the son of Wang Xizi ( O Gishi):
Huizi, who styled himself Ziyou (Shiyi) . . . once resided in Shanyin (San’in). One night it stopped snowing and cleared up for the first time. The moon looked clean and bright, and made all in the four quarters appear bright. Drinking alone, he recited a poem by Daikui (Daiki), who was then in Shan (Zhe). Immediately Huizi boarded a ship and arrived there. After a night he approached the hermitage but he stopped at the gate and returned [home]. When someone asked him the reason [for this], Huizi said, “I went there while in a joyful mood. When the mood was gone, I left. Why did I have to see [Daikui] by all means?” (Quoted from the Zhonghuashuju text, Beijing, 1974, p. 2103.)
145 Tianhuang Daowu (Tenn o D ogo; 748–807), a Dharma heir to Shitou Xiqian (Sekit o Kisen; 700–791).
146 Said by Tianhuang Daowu (Tenn o D ogo) to Longtan Chongxin (Ryitan S oshin; dates unknown), Deshan Xuanjian’s (Tokusan Senkan) master, who requested from him instruction on the essentials of the mind.
147 Qinglin Shiqian (Seirin Shiken; d. 904), a Dharma heir to Dongshan Lianjia (T ozan Ryokai).
148 The following passages on the practice of zazen are considered an abbreviated form of material found in the extant text of the Chan School Monastic Rules [3] fasc. 8, Zokuz oky o 2–16, 460c. However, according to Seizan Yanagida, this passage on the manner of practicing zazen was added to the Chan School Monastic Rules in 1202, after Eisai wrote and made public the Treatise in 1198. Professor Yanagida surmises that Eisai must have seen the same material in another source.
149 The word “Thus”—correction number 22.
150 The word “back”—correction number 23.
151 In the Tang dynasty a monk named Wuzhe (Mujaku) learned the Huayan (Kegon) teachings from Dharma Master Chengguan (Ch okan; 738–839), and in the second year of Dali (Daireki; 767) he went to Wutaishan (Godaisan) to see the region of holy persons. In May he reached the Huayansi (Kegonji) on the mountain. Then he went to a cave called Jin g angku (Kong okutsu) where after a nap he heard an old man admonishing a cow to take water. The old man invited Wuzhe to tea at his own temple nearby. After drinking a cup of tea brought by a young boy, fourteen or fifteen years old, and conversing for awhile, Wuzhe wanted to leave. Then the old man recited a verse he had composed, quoted by Eisai here in the Treatise. With deep thanks, Wuzhe parted from the old man. The latter instructed the boy to accompany Wuzhe down the mountain. The boy recited a verse: “The face with no hatred upon it is overing a gift./The mouth with no hatred in it breathes out fragrant scent./The mind with no hatred in it is a rare treasure./Being neither defiled nor disgraced, one is truly constant.” After the verse was over, and while he was still enraptured, Wuzhe suddenly lost sight of both boy and temple and saw only the mountain, forest, earth, and rocks. Wuzhe later secluded himself on this mountain and died there (T. 50: 836c–837b).
152 The word “confidence”—correction number 24.
153 The source of this quote from the Commentary on the Diamond Sutra by the Dharmalak≈a√a School [84] (Taishovol. 40, no. 1816) by C’ien (Jion) has not been identified.
154 The source of this quote from the Commentary on the Diamond Sutra [85] by Huizhao (Esh o) of Zizhou (Shishi) has not been identified.
155 The Mahåparinirvå√a Sutra [6] has this passage by the Buddha (T. 12, XXII, 493b):
Bodhisattvas hear of the great nirvana that has been unheard of. No Ωråvakas or pratyekabuddhas have ever heard that the Buddha has the eternity-delight self-purity that is never extinguished, that the Buddha-nature of the Three Treasures is beyond any discriminative characteristics, and that those who have committed the fourfold transgressions or found fault with the Mahayana scriptures, transgressors of the five grave sins, and those who have no aspiration (icchantikas), when giving rise to the aspiration to attain awakening (bodhicitta), are all equipped with Buddha-nature. But now in this scripture they can hear of it. This is my so-called hearing of what has been unheard of.
This seems to be what was meant by the Tiantai (Tendai) concept of “the eternity of nirvana as the true support for morality.”
156 These are two groups of the monastic precepts. The “five definitive distinctions of sin” include the 1) påråjika, 2) saµghåvaΩesa, 3) påya ttika and påta yantika, 4) pratideΩanaya, and 5) bodily and verbal transgressions, which include aniyata, Ωaik≈adharma, and adhikara√aΩamathå. See the quote from the Chan School Monastic Rules [3] in Gate I, p. 76, for a complete description of these Sanskrit terms.
The “seven groups of transgressions” include 1) påråjika, 2) saµ ghå vaΩesa, 3) sthilåtyaya (“coarse transgressions,” i.e., attempted påråjika and saµghåvaΩesa), 4) påya ttika and påtayantika, 5) pratideΩanaya, 6) bodily transgressions (du≈k®ta) and 7) verbal transgressions (durbhå≈ita).
157 “Four phrases concerning yåna (vehicle) and Ωala (precepts) [with which one is either relaxed or firm]”—In the Mahåparinirvå√a Sutra [6] the Buddha takes up the problem of how monks’ and bodhisattvas’ seeking liberation and keeping precepts are to be related to one another after the Buddha’s passing into parinirvå√a, for during his lifetime it was the Buddha who provided practitioners with precepts. According to the scriptural context, the term yåna seems to mean niryå√a (“going forth,” “final liberation”). The Buddha says there can be relaxation or slacking of yåna but not Ωala, for a bodhisattva’s not slacking in upholding the precepts in the mind of the Mahayana is what is meant by the “original precept” (T. 12: 400c). In the Great Calming and Contemplation [29], T. 46: 39ab, Zhiyi classifies the relation between yåna and Ωala into four: 1) being firm with both yåna and Ωala, 2) being firm with yåna and relaxing with Ωala, 3) being firm with Ωala and relaxing with yåna, and 4) relaxing with both yåna and Ωala.
158 The word “should”—correction number 25.
159 “A sutra,” unidentified. The quote cited in the Great Calming and Concentration [29] (T. 46: 20a) is found in the Treatise on the Core of Analysis of Buddhist Concepts Taken Up for Meditation (Saµyuktåbhidharma h®dayaΩåstra; Zaapitaxinlun; Z oabidonshinron), translated by Saµghavarman et al., Taishovol. 28, no. 1552. In this text Dharmatråta took up DharmaΩra’s Treatise for meditation. The Treatise on the Core of Analysis (T. 28, IX, 949c) may be the sutra referred to here.
160 Devadatta was a Buddhist who died the death of a pratyekabuddha after going through the supering of hell because of his grave transgressions. See also vol. II, “Saçghabhedavastu” (“Matters of Disunion in the Sangha”) of the Milasarvåstivåda vinayavastu (Matters of Discipline with the Original Advocates of the Existence of All; Genben shuoyiqie youbu pinaye; Konponsetsuissaiububinaya), translated by Yijing, Taishovol. 24, no. 1450, pp. 147–50.
161 Udraka Råmaputra was a non-Buddhist master practitioner of dhyåna in the days of ¸åkyamuni. See also AΩvagho≈a’s Buddhacarita, XII, verse 84 and others, translated by E. H. Johnston (Delhi: Motilal Banarsidass, 1972).
162 The word “also”—correction number 26. The Taishotext had the word fei (hi, arazu), “not” here, which has been replaced by the word yi (yaku, mata), “also,” according to the context.
163 According to the Bequeathed Teaching Sutra [40] (T. 12: 1110c), on his deathbed the Buddha said, “After I die you may respectfully make much of pråtimok≈a (i.e., liberation from all self-afflicting passions through the practice of Ωala), . . . for that is your great master.”
164 The word “applying”—correction number 27.
165 The word “delusive”—correction number 28.
166 In his Sutra of the Jeta Grove Drawings (Zhiyuantujing; Gionzuky o; two fascicles, Taishovol. 45, no. 1899, 883a–895c), Daoxuan (596–667) includes a detailed description according to tradition of the structures of the Jetavana residence built by Sudatta for the Buddha, but no drawings are found in the extant text. Daoxuan’s own title for the text, Drawings of the Jetavana Anåtha pi√ ∂i kå råma or Anåthapi√∂adasyåråma (Drawings of the Jetavana Pi√∂ada-vihåra; Zhishugeiyuantu; Gijugyienzu), lacks the word jing (ky o), i.e., sutra, which is included in the title by the author of the Foreword as well as in the closing title of each fascicle.
167 See the Mahåsåµghika Vinaya [7], T. 22: 262b. The Vinaya text says that the Tathågata visited monks’ cells once every five days in order to know 1) whether or not his disciples were attached to things of the world, 2) whether or not they indulged in secular discussions, 3) whether or not they overindulged in sleep to the detriment of practice, 4) whether or not they looked after sick monks, and 5) so that newly ordained young monks might rejoice at the sight of the Tathågata.
168 See also a passage from the Chan School Monastic Rules [3], quoted previously in Gate VII, p. 148.
169 The word “holds”—correction number 29.
170 The extant text of the Bequeathed Teaching Sutra [40] does not include this passage. It is found in Zhiyi’s Smaller Tiantai Text of Calming and Contemplation (Tiantaixiaozhiguan; Tendaish oshikan; Taishovol. 46, no.
1915) which quotes it from another, unspecified sutra (T. 46, IV, 465b).
171 The word “Hakata”—correction number 30.
172 Dongjing (Tokei), i.e., Kaifeng (Kaifi), the capital of Northern Song.
173 When Eisai, then twenty-eight years old, was about to leave for Song China.
174 Lizhou (Reishi) in Sichuan Province.
175 A year before Eisai, then fifty, returned to Japan.
176 Master Zhiyi was said to have had spiritual experiences at Guoqing (Kokusei) Temple.
177 I.e., the vajråsana, the place where Siddhårtha attained awakening under the bodhi tree.
178 During the reign of Emperor Taizong (Tais o).
179 The source of this quote and one on the following page is unidentified. The Sutra of the Original Practice [96] does not include these passages.
180 See also another passage about Upagupta and the nun from the Mahå prajñåpåramitå Treatise [2] quoted in Gate III, pp. 104–5.
181 Repa or ripta-lepa, “what sticks or adheres.”
182 Daosheng (D osh o; d. 434), of the Eastern Jin (Shin) dynasty. After becoming a Buddhist mendicant, Daosheng went to Lushan (Rozan) and lived deep in the mountains for seven years. He later practiced under the guidance of Kumårajava. From his reading of a Chinese version in six fascicles of the Nirvana Sutra (Niepanjing; Nehangy o; Taishovol. 12, no. 376), translated in 418 by Faxian (Hokken), Daoxuan believed in the scriptural standpoint that an icchantika (i.e., one who lacks the aspiration to attain awakening) can indeed attain awakening, though Faxian’s version of the sutra did not contain any passage to support this point. Contemporary Buddhist scholars faulted Daosheng for this lack of scriptural support for his view. Later a more comprehensive version of the Nirvana Sutra, translated in 422 by Dharmak≈ema (Taishovol. 12, no. 374), included the very passage that Daosheng had suggested. In the eleventh year of Yuanjia, of Song of the
Southern Dynasties, at Lushan, Daosheng was near the end of giving a Dharma talk when he suddenly saw the strands of a whisk (fuzi; hossu) in his hand fall thick and fast to the ground. Daosheng then sat upright, adopted a stern countenance, leaned on the table, and died. See the Biographies of Eminent Monks (Gaosengchuan; K os oden) compiled by Huijiao (Ek o; 497–554), Taishovol. 50, no. 2059, 366bc–367a.
Genshin, in his Essentials of the Single Vehicle [99] (T. 74: 361a), praised Daosheng by calling him a ninshibosatsu (“bodhisattva who endured death”), meaning that Daosheng said he had long endured death before his view that icchantikas could attain awakening could be demonstrated, but when scriptural support for this view finally appeared, he passed away. 183 The quoted passage is not found in the Mahåprajñåpåramitå Treatise [2].
184 The Pure Land practices of chengming (sh omy o) (“calling the name of Amitåbha Buddha”) and nianfo (nembutsu), “recalling the vow made by Amitåbha Buddha while he was a bodhisattva for the actualization of a Land of Bliss (Sukhåvata) for ordinary beings” or “chanting the Buddha’s name,” essentially the same practice as chengming.
185 Namely, Hakozaki Shrine in Hakata, Kyushu.
186 Correction number 31. Eisai mistakes this text, An Approach to the Truth through the Samådhi Called No Polemics [101] for a sutra (jing; ky o), when the word famen (h omon) in the title, Wuzhengsanmeifamen (Mus o- zan maih omon) indicates otherwise.
187 The word “evil”—correction number 32.
188 The words “And even”—correction number 33.
189 The passage that follows here is not found in the extant text. It seems to be Eisai’s interpolation.
190 A year before Eisai wrote the Treatise.
191 The last syllable “ta”—correction number 34.
192 Fohai Huiyuan (Bukkai Eon) was the successor to Yuanwu Keqin (Engo Kokugon; 1063–1135).
193 Fohai died in 1176 not 1174, as indicated here.
194 Fozhao Deguang (BusshoTokuko; 1121–1203) was a Dharma heir to Dahui Zonggao (Daie S ok o; 1089–1163). One of Fozhao’s Dharma successors was Dainichibo Nonin, who is discussed in the Translator’s Introduction, pp. 48, 49–50, 52–3.
195 “Sea of Penglai” (H orai) refers to the Bohai (Bokkai) Sea, which extends between the two peninsulas of Shandong and Liaodong in the northeastern part of China. An ancient belief held that a fabled abode of immortals called Mount Penglai (H oraisan) existed in the midst of this sea.
196 Here a character is missing.
A UNIVERSAL RECOMMENDATION FOR TRUE ZAZEN
The author of this text, Eihei Dogen, was born in Kyoto in 1200 C.E. His family was of the noble class: his father, Koga Michichika, was a minister of the imperial court and his mother was the daughter of the regent Fujiwara Motofusa. While still a young child, Dogen lost both parents—his father died when Dogen was just two years old, and five years later his mother died. It is not to imagine that the tragic events of Dogen’s childhood gave him a powerful experience of the impermanence of existence and led him to seek true awakening and total peace. Five years after his mother’s death, at the age of twelve, he renounced secular life. The following year, in 1213, he took the tonsure and received ordination in the bodhisattva precepts at Mount Hiei.
At Mount Hiei Dogen first studied the Tendai teachings, and met Myoan Eisai, who had brought the teachings of the Linji (Rinzai) school of Chan to Japan. He continued his studies under Eisai’s disciple, DoMyozen Ryonen, eventually receiving inka, the certificate of confirmation of spiritual attainment conferred from Zen master to disciple.
In 1223, Dogen traveled to China, seeking the true Awakened Way. Two years later, in 1225, he met Tiantong Rujing (1163–1228) and entered a course of intensive meditation practice (zazen) under him. During the summer retreat of that year he realized the complete dropping o› of body and mind during zazen and received formal confirmation in the Dharma from Rujing. He returned to Japan in 1227, with “the grave thought of propagating the Dharma and saving sentient beings.” He stayed first at the Kenninji in Kyoto, then the capital. In 1233 he founded the Kannond ori-in (Avalo kiteΩvara Benefactory Hall) at the site of the former Gokurakuji (Supreme Bliss Temple) in the Kyoto suburb of Uji.
In 1243 Dogen left Kyoto and went to live deep in the mountains of Echizen Province (present-day Fukui Prefecture). He founded the Dai butsu ji (Great Buddha Temple), renaming it Eiheiji (Perpetual Peace Temple) two years later. Dogen passed away in 1253. His transformational work continues even today through his spiritual legacy that has been maintained and transmitted by many generations of Zen practitioners.
Dogen is regarded by Japanese Buddhist historians as the founder of the Japanese Soto Zen school. However, the full scope of his contribution to the Buddhist tradition has long been underestimated. He was a truly great reformer of Japanese Buddhism. By his time Buddhism in Japan had undergone both evolution and involution. Scholasticism and ritualism dominated within the traditional Buddhist institutions. At the same time, several new Buddhist movements had evolved, such as the Pure Land (Jodo) and Nichiren schools founded respectively by Honen (1133–1212) and Nichiren (1222–1282), near contemporaries of Dogen. New schools struggled for ascendancy and legitimacy within the existing state-supported Buddhist institutions, often facing imperial sanction.
Facing this tumultuous situation, Dogen advocated the single Awakened Way, which went far beyond the narrow sectarian boundary of the Soto school. He stressed the significance of practice through maintaining awakening with the body, and revealed the path of “pure sitting” (shikantaza), which requires no other goal or activity. At the same time Dogen upheld the idea of universal salvation on the basis that all beings are endowed with Buddha-nature. He thus embraced both the rigorous path of early Buddhist practice and the comprehensive ideals of the Mahayana (Great Vehicle).
In 1227, at the midpoint of his career, Dogen returned from China, having found an answer to his long-standing question: Why does one need to practice, if, as is taught in the Mahayana tradition, all beings have Buddha-nature and are thus originally enlightened? Dogen realized that the path of seeking bodhi (awakening), the path of practice, was at the same time the method of saving all beings, the bodhisattva path. This work, A Universal Recommendation for True Zazen (Fukanzazengi), was written in part in response to a request from his followers. This was Dogen’s first turning of the wheel of the Dharma and also his last will and testament, as he continued to refine the text until the end of his life.
In this work Dogen o›ers a unique message of the essence of the Awakened Way in its utmost aspiration, profound perspective, and penetrating purity. Here, Dogen recommends to all the most direct and simplest way to unsurpassed awakening and unconditioned peace. He reveals the way to living one’s life in harmony with the entire world in the ten directions (the four cardinal directions, the four intermediate directions, and the zenith and nadir, i.e., everywhere), beyond the bounds of the three times (past, present and future, i.e., all times). The way demonstrated by Dogen is truly the purest practice of unified cultivation and verification. Cultivation and verification are necessary to get free of one’s karma and must not be defiled by delusion and desire.
The title Fukanzazengi reveals Dogen’s intent in writing this work. Fukan (“universal recommendation”) reflects his assurance and aspiration that all beings shall become Buddhas, i.e., awakened, and realize the awakened world, based on his conviction that “all are Buddha-nature.” Dogen was convinced that zazen (lit., za, “seated,” zen, “meditation,” zen being a transliterated form of the Sanskrit term dhyåna) is the most useful, universal form of practice for this purpose, having no discriminations, no requirements, and no fabrications. This method puts a stop to acquired habits (karmas). Gi (“true form and norm”) expresses the true essence and meaning of zazen, not just in its limited sense as the practice of seated meditation. In this respect, it points to the paramount truth or ultimate meaning (paramårtha), which puts the body, mind, and world in perfect order, free of discrimination and in total harmony beyond any boundaries.
The title itself thus demonstrates the dropping o› of body and mind—the dropping away of all karmas of the three actions of body, speech, and mind, both new actions and the karmic results of old actions. It is at once the realization of freedom from body and mind and freedom—the free use—of body and mind in perfect perspective and full function. Zazen stops all karmas and allows one to see the existential root of original purity and harmony. Here cultivation itself becomes verification. Thus, the “dignified form (i.e., the awakened form and norm) itself is Buddha.”
Though brief, the text can be seen as having four parts: 1) essence, 2) form, 3) function, and 4) existence.
The four hallmarks of zazen are not just one’s subjective experience in sitting but objective reality. True existential form is the limitless interrelation of dependent origination. The law of dependent origination (pratatyasamutpåda)—all phenomena (dharmas) come into being through a confluence of causes and conditions—works universally, penetrating throughout space and time. Freedom (priyadhåman, a Sanskrit cognate word meaning “beloved domain”) consists in familiarizing oneself with this dharma (norm and form) in knowing and acting. Purity is found in this, in transcending limited understanding and action. The locus of realization is here and now.
Here zazen is not mere meditation practice with relative means and ends, with signs and symbols, with desires to gain merit and designs to become a Buddha, or in outward forms and norms. It is instead pure freedom, the dropping o› of all these. It is “pure meditation” (zen = dhyåna)” or “devoted sitting” (shikantaza) which engages in no mental or physical fabrications, whether of conceptualization or conduct.
All the actions of the Buddhas and ancestors derive from this state of pure zazen in limitlessness. Many examples of masters who passed away while sitting or standing, or even at a prescribed time, have been recorded in Zen literature. In the Chinese Chan tradition, Juzhi always used his finger to respond to questions. There are yet other examples dating further back, to the roots of Zen in Indian Buddhism. On Ånanda’s response to KåΩyapa’s calling him, KåΩyapa bade Ånanda to take down the banner sta›, indicating that his teaching was completed. Åryadeva was admitted as Någårjuna’s disciple when he placed a needle onto the surface of water in a bowl portered by Någårjuna. KåΩyapa did not raise his mallet to admonish MañjuΩra for going out to propagate the teachings during the rainy season (summer) retreat, when monks were forbidden to leave, on hearing the Buddha ask, “Which (of the limitless) MañjuΩras do you expel?” Qingyuan’s whisk, Zhaozhou’s fist, Teshan’s stick, and Linji’s shout were all methods employed by these Zen masters to catalyze students’ attainment of awakening.
This point is underscored in the Bend owa (Lecture on the Wholehearted Practice of the Way), where Dogen says:
Though this Dharma is abundantly endowed, it never develops without cultivation; it can never be attained without verification.
And this:
As verification is already cultivation, it has no end. As cultivation is verification, it has no beginning.
And in this passage from the Genj ok oan (Realization of the Universal Truth):
When Zen Master Baochi was using his fan, a monk came and asked, “The wind-nature abides constantly everywhere and pervades everywhere. Why should the master need to use a fan?”
The master said, “You only know that the wind-nature is ever-abiding, but you have not yet realized the truth of its all pervasiveness.”
The monk asked, “What is the truth of its all-pervasiveness?” At this the master just used his fan.
The monk bowed.
When we realize the universal truth of universal unity in principle and practice as the net of Indra, or “the entire world in the ten directions as a ball of clear crystal,” we can appreciate and use all the treasures of our treasure house—the universe—at will.
The present translation is based on Ek o Hashimoto’s Fukan-zazengi no Hanashi (Discourse on the Universal Recommendation for True Zazen) (Tottori, Japan: Daijuji, 1977). This version of the text includes many new readings and interpretations based on detailed references to Dogen’s other works, especially to the earlier version of the text written in Dogen’s own hand (Chinese version) published in the first year of Tempuku, 1233, as well as the Zazengi (Standard Method of Zazen) (Japanese version in the Sh ob ogenz o; Eye and Treasury of the True Dharma), the Zazenshin (Zazen Lancet), and the Bend oh o (Methods for the Wholehearted Practice of the Way). There are many corrections of popular readings and interpretations based on textual critique, word analyses, text comparisons, and references, etc. grounded in Hashimoto’s lifelong study of the Dharma and zazen practice. Any translators and serious practitioners should study and practice with his text.
I referred to the following translations of the text when I first prepared this manuscript two decades ago:
Carl Bielefeldt, in Dogen’s Manuals of Zen Meditation (Berkeley and Los Angeles: University of California Press, 1988).
Francis D ojun Cook, in How to Raise an Ox (Los Angeles: Center Publications, 1978).
Heinrich Dumoulin, in Monumenta Nipponica, Vol. 14, Nos. 3– 4 (Tokyo: Sophia University, 1958–59).
Harry Gort and K oshin Kawagishi, A Universal Guide on the Right Way to Zazen (Tokyo: Seigan-in, 1972).
Reih o Masunaga, Introduction to Fukanzazengi (Tokyo: Seishin Shob o, 1956); in The Soto Approach to Zen (Tokyo: Layman Buddhist Society Press, 1958), pp. 101–5; and in Zen for Daily Living (Tokyo:
Shunjisha, 1964).
Norman Waddell and Masao Abe, “Dogen’s Fukanzazengi and Sh ob ogenz o Zazengi” in The Eastern Buddhist, Vol. VI, No. 2 (October 1973), pp. 121–6; and “The Universal Promotion of the Principles of Zazen” in On Zen Practice, Vol. II, edited by Taizan Maezumi and Bernard Tetsugen Glassman (Los Angeles: Zen Center of Los Angeles, 1977), pp. 13–16.
Yih o Yokoi and Brian Daizen Victoria, in Zen Master Dogen (New York: Weather hill, 1976).
A recent Internet search turned up numerous translations and references in English and other languages. There seem to be many secondary translations from other translations, not from the original Japanese. I have listed several of the English versions here, in the belief that more is not necessarily better and in the interest of not spreading misconceptions and misunderstandings. Readers should closely compare deferent versions so as to determine the most accurate renderings, even if they cannot read the original Japanese text or critical studies and expositions.
Thomas Cleary, in Sh ob ogenz o: Zen Essays by Dogen (Honolulu:
University of Hawaii Press, 1986).
Jiyu Kennett, in Selling Water by the River: A Manual of Zen Training (New York: Pantheon Books, 1972).
Gudo Nishijima and Chodo Cross, in Master Dogen’s Sh ob ogenz o, Book I (London: Windbell Publications Ltd., 1998).
Shohaku Okamura, in Shikantaza: An Introduction to Zazen (Tokyo: Sotoshi Shumucho, 1985).
Soto Zen Text Project, “Universally Recommended Instructions for Zazen,” in Soto School Scriptures for Daily Services and Practice (Tokyo: Sotoshi Shumuchu, 2001).
Kazuaki Tanahashi, in Enlightenment Unfolds: The Essential Teachings of Zen Master Dogen (Boston: Shambhala Publications, 2000).
Yasuda Joshu Roshi and Anzan Hoshin Roshi, “Fukanzazengi: How Everyone Can Sit,” in Progress into the Ordinary (Ottawa, Canada: Great Matter Publications, 1986).
A UNIVERSAL RECOMMENDATION FOR TRUE ZAZEN
by
Eihei Dogen
A Universal Recommendation for True Zazen
In exhaustive pursuit, the root of the Way is perfectly penetrating. 1a Why should you assume cultivation and verification? The supreme vehicle moves freely. Why should you consume striving and skill? Much more, its entirety is far beyond the realm of dust. Who would believe in the measures of sweeping? It never departs from right where you are. Why should you require the steps of cultivation?
And yet, if there is even the slightest discrepancy, you become separated as far apart as heaven and earth. If the slightest liking or disliking arises, the mind is lost in confusion. Even though you may achieve the insightful power of glimpsing the [Buddha’s] ground, taking pride in your understanding and enjoying enlightenment; even though you may generate the aspiration of pressing on to heaven, attaining the Way, and clarifying the mind; even though you may roam around the boundary of this realm, reaching the point of putting your head in, still you largely lack the lifepath of liberation.
Moreover, the trace of six years’ upright sitting by the innately awakened [¸åkyamuni Buddha] at Jeta Vana must be observed. And the fame of nine years’ facing the wall by the transmitter of the mind-seal [Bodhidharma] at Shaolin Temple must be heard. If the ancient sages were like this, why should you, a person of today, not exert yourself?
Therefore, you must stop comprehending the conduct of investigating words and chasing discourses. You must learn to step backward to turn your light around to reflect on yourself. Mind and body will naturally fall away and your original face will manifest itself. If you wish to attain suchness, devote yourself to suchness at once.
Now, in entering into Zen, a quiet room is suitable. Eat and drink in moderation. Abandon all relations and put all concerns to rest, not thinking of good and bad, not entertaining right and wrong. Still the driving of your heart, mind, and consciousness. Stop the measuring of memories, ideas, and meditations. No design, even that of becoming a Buddha, should be harbored. How can it (i.e., Zen) be concerned with sitting or lying down?
253
A Universal Recommendation for True Zazen
The usual practice is to spread out a thick mat and place a cushion upon it. Then sit in the full or half cross-legged position. In the full cross-legged position, place your right foot on your left thigh and your left foot on your right thigh. In the half cross-legged position, simply press your right thigh with your left foot. Wear your robes and sashes loosely but neatly and orderly.
Next, rest your right hand on your left foot, and place your left palm on your right palm, [both facing upward], with the thumb tips supporting each other.
Now, sit upright, leaning neither to left nor right, neither forward nor backward. You must align your ears over your shoulders and keep your nose in line with your navel. Rest your tongue against the upper palate, lips and teeth closed. You must always keep your eyes open. Breathe through your nose subtly and silently.
Maintaining the proper bodily alignment, exhale deeply once and rock to the left and right. Settle into the solid, steadfast seated samådhi. Fathom the unfathomed state. How do you fathom the 1b unfathomed state? Fathomless! Such is the essential art of zazen.
What is here called zazen is not learning mere meditation. It is the Dharma gate of pure peace and bliss. It is the cultivation and verification of ultimate awakening. Here, the universal truth is realized, and nets and cages are totally absent.
If you realize this tenet completely, you are like a dragon obtaining water and a tiger reclining on the mountain. You will surely know that the True Dharma will naturally manifest itself, and dullness and distraction will drop o›.
When you rise from sitting, move slowly and rise calmly and carefully. Never act hastily or violently.
Observe and appreciate that transcending the ordinary and going beyond the holy, passing away while sitting and dying while standing, all depend solely on this power. The transforming ability of a finger, a sta›, a needle, and a mallet, or the verifying utilization of a whisk, a fist, a stick, and a shout at a critical moment cannot readily be realized by the discrimination of measuring thoughts.
A Universal Recommendation for True Zazen
How can they be known even by the cultivation and verification of supernatural faculties?
These are the dignified forms beyond sounds and colors. Are they not the rules before knowledge and views? Therefore, you should not be concerned whether you are a person of lofty intellect or lowly foolishness, nor discriminated as being a sharp person or a dull one. If you strive single-mindedly, that itself is the realization of the Way. Cultivation and verification by nature does not defile.
Going forward then is totally calm and constant.
All the Buddhas, whether in this world or in other quarters, in the western heaven (India) or the eastern earth (China), equally held the Buddha-seal and altogether enjoyed the supreme style. They were fully devoted to this total sitting (shikantaza) and were totally installed in this unmoved state. Even though there are a thousand difference and a million nuances, they engaged devotedly in practicing zazen and realizing the Way.
Why should you forsake the seat of your own home and stray into the dusty realms of other countries? If you make a single misstep, you will mistakenly pass it by while directly facing it. You have ultimately obtained the functional essence of a human body. Never let the light and shadow (i.e., day and night) pass in vain. You have embraced and engaged in the essential function of the Buddha’s path. Who could enjoy the spark of a flintstone aimlessly?
Furthermore, form and substance are like dew on a blade of grass, and fleeting life is as a flash of lightning, instantly emptied and immediately lost.
May respectable Zen practitioners constantly learn the right form and never doubt the true dragon.
Urgently strive for the Way that points directly to the right target, revere the fabrication and unconditioned person, fit into the awakening (bodhi) of the Buddhas, and rightly inherit the samådhi of the ancestors. Practice in such a way constantly and you will never fail to realize suchness. The treasure house will open by itself, and you will appreciate and use it at will.
ADVICE ON THE PRACTICE OF ZAZEN
Keizan J okin (1268–1325) was one of the main patriarchs of Japanese Soto Zen, generally considered second in importance only to Dogen (1200–1253), founder of the school. Keizan established the prestigious S ojiji in Ishikawa Prefecture, and wrote more than two dozen works on the Soto approach to Buddhist theory and practice. For a comprehensive study of Keizan’s life and works in light of critical theory, see Bernard Faure, Visions of Power: Imagining Medieval Japanese Buddhism, translated by Phyliss Brooks (Princeton, NJ: Princeton University Press, 1996).
Keizan was born in Echizen Province (present-day Fukui Prefecture), where several decades earlier Dogen had established Eiheiji, which became the center of the Soto sect. He studied with Tettsi Gikai, a leading Soto figure at Eiheiji and D ojiji. He also trained under Ej o, Dogen’s main disciple, and Jakuen, a Chinese monk who was one of Dogen’s followers. In addition, he came in contact with Rinzai Zen scholars and with representatives of the Tendai, Shingon, Pure Land (J odo), and Shugend o Buddhist schools and movements on Mount Hiei and in his travels in the mountain provinces.
In absorbing these various influences and teachings—including esoteric and exoteric teachings, the Pure Land notions of self-power and other-power, the idea of sudden and gradual enlightenment, zazen practice and koan study, and traditional and independent practices— and in assimilating popular rituals, Keizan developed a highly integrative and popularizing approach. This eclectic attitude helped transform the Soto school from a conservative monastic institution to a mass movement that spread throughout the northern and northeastern provinces. Keizan was largely responsible for giving Soto an appeal based on faith and devotion as well as meditation, and he advocated a
Advice on the Practice of Zazen
close relationship with the common people in funeral and memorial services, and through social activities and construction projects.
Keizan was chronologically the Soto school’s fourth patriarch (after Dogen, Ej o, and Tettsi), but his significance for the development of the sect is recognized as being much greater. While Dogen is known as koso (founder), Keizan is known as taiso (progenitor). Similarly, Dogen is actinostele referred to as the “father” of the sect, and Keizan as its “mother.” Like Dogen, who became a monk at a young age, Keizan entered Eiheiji at age thirteen, where he came in contact with Tettsi and Ej o. At eighteen, he studied with Jakuen at H oky oji, and later traveled to the center of Tendai and Rinzai Zen Buddhism on Mount Hiei. Still unfulfilled in his religious quest, Keizan returned to train with Tettsi at Daij oji Temple, which Tettsi had converted from Shingon to Zen. Keizan attained a spontaneous enlightenment (kensh o) at age twenty-seven upon reflecting on the famous saying of the Chinese patriarch Mazu (Baso), “Everyday mind is itself the Way.”
After that, Keizan systematically studied Dogen’s Shob ogenz o
(Eye and Treasury of the True Dharma), the foundational text for Soto thought and practice, and composed his first work, the Denk oroku (Record of the Transmission of the Light), a sectarian biography written in Japanese of the fifty-three patriarchs in the Soto lineage, from ¸åkyamuni to Ej o, which remains one of the main sources for biographical studies of Dogen. Keizan stayed at numerous temples, including D okokuji. He made the Shingon Y ok oji temple into a leading center of Zen studies, and transformed the Ritsu temple Sh ogakuji (whose patriarch J oken he converted to Soto) into S ojiji, which came to rival Eiheiji as the main Soto training site. Keizan’s invaluable role in Japanese religious history was commemorated in 1909 when he was awarded the title J osai Daishi (“Great Teacher”) by Emperor Meiji.
In addition to this text, the Zazenyojinki (Advice on the Practice of Zazen), and the Denk oroku, Keizan’s main works include the Keizanshingi (Keizan’s Monastic Rules), Keizangoroku (Keizan’s Recorded Sayings), Zazensangonsetsu (Theory of Zazen for Three Types of People), and Shin jin meinentei (Reflections on the Notion of Faith).
Translator’s Introduction
Although Keizan is known for a generally eclectic approach to Zen, Advice on the Practice of Zazen, an instructional guide to zazen practice for monks and laymen, uncompromisingly insists on the priority of “zazen only” (shikantaza). Consistent with the central standpoint of Dogen, which was based on his training under his Chinese mentor Tiantong Rujing, Keizan stresses that a clear recognition of the meaning of impermanence is the key to attaining an enlightened nondiscriminatory perspective beyond all dualities through rigorous discipline and complete dedication to zazen. The practice of zazen, according to Soto theorists, is the one single method of attainment that has been followed by all Buddhists since the time of ¸åkyamuni.
Keizan’s text is greatly influenced by a number of Dogen’s writings on zazen, including the Fukanzazengi (A Universal Recommendation for True Zazen), pp. 233 –8 in this volume, H oky oki (Memoirs of the H oky o Period), Sh ob ogenz o zuimonki (Miscellaneous Talks), Bend oh o (Methods for the Wholehearted Practice of the Way), and the Zazengi (Standard Method of Zazen), Zazenshin (Zazen Lancet), Bend owa (Lecture on the Wholehearted Practice of the Way), and Sammai o zammai (The Samådhi that is the King of Samådhis) fascicles of the Sh ob ogenz o. In Advice on the Practice of Zazen, Keizan pulls together a variety of key philosophical doctrines and practical recommendations from Dogen’s thought. The central doctrines include shinjin datsu raku (the dropping o› of body and mind), jijiyi zammai (self-fulfilling samådhi), honsh o my oshu (the identity of original realization and marvelous practice), and hishiRyo (non-thinking beyond thinking and not-thinking). There are numerous specific recommendations for zazen practice, such as: regulations for posture and breathing exercises; requirements for the meditation cushion and place of practice; descriptions of the full- and half-lotus positions; techniques for focusing attention to eliminate mental distractions; methods for swaying on the meditation cushion and walking meditation; and recommendations for eating and personal associations.
An interesting contribution by Keizan is the clarification of the relation between zazen and the Buddhist ideals of teaching, practice, and realization as well as the goals of meditation, concentration, and
Advice on the Practice of Zazen
wisdom in light of Dogen’s notions of the unity of being-time and the identity of practice-in-realization. Each of the three ideals and goals is based on zazen and thus inseparably connected to one another. None is an end in itself but all are varying perspectives of the dynamically integrated temporal unfolding of sustained zazen practice.
ADVICE ON THE PRACTICE OF ZAZEN
by
Keizan J okin, Monk of T okokuji
Zazen (seated meditation) allows people to directly enlighten the primordial mind and to abide peacefully in their original state. This is known as realizing one’s original face, or manifesting the true nature of the primordial mind. Zazen is the dropping o› of body and mind and remaining detached, whether seated or lying down. It is not concerned with good or evil, and transcends the distinctions of worldly and sacred delusion and enlightenment, sentient beings and Buddhas. It relinquishes the ten thousand things, renounces all conditions, casts aside everything, and does not rely on the six senses. What is this that is nameless and cannot be identified with either body or mind? If you try to conceive of it, it is beyond thought; if you try to express it, words are exhausted. It appears both foolish and saintly. It is as high as the mountain and as deep as the ocean, yet discloses neither its full height nor depth. It is illuminatively unbound by conditions, displaying a radiance that cannot be discerned by the naked eye. It penetrates beyond thought and has a clarity above the entanglements of speech. It transcends both heaven and earth and is realized only by the entire person. It is like an immeasurably perfected person who has experienced the great death (parinirvå√a) and has unobstructed vision and unhindered action. What dust defiles it, and what obstacle can block it? Clear water originally has neither front nor back, and empty space is not bound by inside or outside. Zazen has a pristine clarity that is self-illuminating prior to distinctions of form and emptiness, subject and object. It is eternal but has never been named. The Third Patriarch (Sengcan) [provisionally] referred to it as “mind,” and Någårjuna [provisionally] referred to it as “body.” It manifests the form of Buddha-nature and actualizes the body of all Buddhas. Like the full moon, it is without absence or excess. This mind itself is nothing other than Buddha. Self-illumination shines from the past through the present, realizing the transformation of Någårjuna [who manifested himself as the moon, symbolizing Buddha-nature] and attaining the samådhi of all Buddhas. |
|
Mind originally is underestimated, and the body manifests various forms. Mind-only and body-only cannot be explained in terms of sameness or difference. Mind transforms itself and becomes body, and the manifest body has deferent forms. When one wave is generated, ten thousand waves appear; when mental discrimination arises, ten thousand dharmas appear. That is, the four elements and five skandhas interdependently originate, and the four limbs and five senses become manifest. Furthermore, the thirty-six parts [of the body] and the twelve conditions ceaselessly continue to appear. In explaining the interdependence of phenomena, the mind can be compared to ocean water and the body to waves. There are no waves without water, and no water without waves. Water and waves are inseparable, motion and stillness are indistinguishable. Therefore it is said, “The true man [who comprehends] life and death, coming and going, realizes the imperishable body of the four elements and the five skandhas.”
Now, [practicing] zazen is directly entering into the ocean of Buddha-nature and manifesting the body of all Buddhas. The fundamental purity of the radiant mind is disclosed, and the original brightness shines forth without limit. There is no increase or decrease in the waters of the ocean, and the waves are never distracted in their course. Therefore, all Buddhas appear in the world for the single minded function of causing sentient beings to realize Buddha[hood] and to attain and manifest enlightenment. Their incomparably tranquil and wondrous technique is known as zazen. It is also known as the self-fulfilling samådhi, or the king of all samådhis.
If you abide tranquilly in samådhi, it directly enlightens the primordial mind and is the true gate to the attainment of the way of Buddhas. If you wish to enlighten the primordial mind, renounce discriminative knowledge and interpretation, cast away [the distinctions between] worldly and Buddhist principles, and remove 412c all attachments. If you manifest the One True Mind, the clouds of delusion will be dispersed and the mind will be as clear as the new moon. The Buddha said, “Listening and thinking are standing outside the gate, zazen is sitting calmly in one’s own home.” How true! For listening and thinking perpetuate [one-sided] views, leaving the primordial mind in turmoil, just like being outside the gate. But zazen creates an all-pervasive restfulness, just like sitting calmly at home.
The attachments of the five desires all arise from ignorance, ignorance is due to a lack of clarity about the self, and zazen illuminates the self. For example, although the five desires may be removed, if ignorance is not yet removed that is not yet [the attainment] of a Buddha or patriarch. If you want to remove ignorance, the diligent practice of zazen is the key. An ancient said, “If distraction is removed tranquility arises, and if tranquility arises wisdom is attained, and if wisdom is attained the truth is clearly seen.” If you want to remove distractions, you must be free from thoughts of [the distinction of] good and evil, and renounce all involvement in karmic relations. The most important concern is that the mind be free from thinking and the body free from acting. When distracting relations are ended mental disturbances are subdued, and when mental disturbances are subdued the unchanging body is manifest. You continuously realize its clarity as neither extinction nor commotion.
Therefore, you must not be involved in arts and crafts or healing and divination. Furthermore, song, dance, and music, debate and rhetoric, as well as the pursuit of fame and fortune must be completely avoided. Although eulogy and lyrical poetry can in themselves contribute to calming the mind, you must not indulge in writing them. The renunciation of literature and calligraphy is a priority for seekers of the Way, and is the most erective means of regulating the mind.
Do not wear clothing that is either elegant or tattered. Fine clothes give rise to greed as well as the fear of being robbed, and this becomes an obstacle to the pursuit of the Way. To refuse clothes if overed as alms has always been a praiseworthy practice since ancient times. Even if you already own such clothes, do not indulge in wearing them. If thieves come to steal the clothes, do not bother to chase after them or regret the loss. You should wear old clothes that have been washed and mended till completely clean. If you do not clean [and mend] the clothes you will get cold and sick, and that is also an obstacle to the pursuit of the Way. Although we should not be overly concerned with physical conditions, the lack of food, clothing, and shelter is known as the three insouciances, all of which are obstructive conditions.
Do not eat food that is either raw or tough, stale or spoiled, for intestinal rumbling is a discomfort for the body and mind and an obstacle to zazen. Do not indulge in eating fine food. That is not only an obstruction for the body and mind but indicates that you have not overcome greed. Eat enough food to maintain your vitality but do not relish it. If you try to sit in meditation after you have eaten until you are full, it can cause illness. Do not attempt meditation immediately after either a large or small meal; you must wait awhile to be ready to sit. Generally, mendicants and monks should eat sparingly. That means that they should limit their portions, for example, eating two parts of three and leaving the rest. The usual medicinal foods, such as sesame and yams, should be eaten. That is an erective means of regulating the body.
When sitting in meditation, you must not lean against a wall, support, or screen to prop yourself up. Do not sit in a place susceptible to wind and storm, or in a high and exposed spot, for that can lead to illness. When sitting in meditation, your body may feel hot or cold, tight or slack, sti› or loose, heavy or light, or you may feel abruptly awakened, all because the breath is not regulated and must be controlled. The method for regulating the breath is to keep your mouth open for a while, holding deep breaths and short breaths alternately until your breathing is gradually regulated and controlled for a period of time. When awareness comes, it means that breathing is spontaneously regulated. After this, let the breath pass naturally through the nose.
The mind may feel depressed or flighty, foggy or clear. Or, sometimes it may see outside the room or inside your body. Or, it may visualize the bodies of Buddhas or the forms of bodhisattvas, or it may formulate theories, or evaluate the sutra or Nåstra literature. Such types of miraculous and unusual behavior result from a lack of regulating one’s consciousness and breathing. When attachments such as this arise, focus attention on your lap. When the mind lapses into bewilderment, focus attention on the middle of your forehead (three inches above the center of the eyebrows). When the mind is distracted, focus attention on the tip of your nose or your lower abdomen (one and a half inches below the navel). As you remain seated, focus attention on the left palm. When sitting for a long time, although you will not necessarily reach a state of tranquility, your mind will on its own be freed from distraction.
Although the traditional precepts are instructions for illuminating the mind, you must not read, write, or listen to them too much, for that will cause mental disturbances. Generally, weariness of the body and mind is the cause of illness. Do not practice zazen in a place where there may be danger from fire, flood, storms, or robbers, or near the seashore, a liquor store, or brothel; or where you may meet a widow, virgin, or geisha. Do not visit the homes of kings, important socials, or powerful people, or associate with people who indulge in their desires or who gossip. Although attending a large congregation of monks or engaging in full-scale construction projects may be of great importance, you must avoid such practices in order to concentrate on zazen. Do not be attached to explanations and [intellectual activity], for a distracted mind and confused thinking will arise from them. Do not take pleasure [in attracting] crowds or seek out disciples. Do not be distracted by various sorts of practices or learning. Do not practice zazen where it is extremely light or dark, cold or hot, or in the vicinity of rowdy men and indecent women.
You must spend time in a monastery, among wise and com- 413b passionate people. Or, you must travel deep into the mountains and valleys, practicing concentration next to flowing streams amid the mountains or clearing the mind by sitting in meditation in a valley. You must carefully observe impermanence and never forget
its significance, for this inspires the mind in the pursuit of the Way. You must lay out a thick meditation cushion so as to be comfortable during zazen. The zazen area must be perfectly clean, and if you always burn incense and o›er flowers, the good spirits who guard the Dharma, as well as Buddhas and bodhisattvas, will cast a protective aura around it. If you install an image of a Buddha, bodhisattva, or arhat there, no mischievous demons will be able to harm you. Always abide in great compassion and pity, and dedicate the immeasurable merit of zazen to all sentient beings. Do not develop pride, conceit, or self-righteousness, for these are the ways of non-Buddhists and ordinary people. Be concerned only with resorts to end attachment and realize enlightenment. The single minded concentration of zazen is the most erective means of practicing Zen. You must always wash your eyes and feet, and act with dignity and compassion to keep body and mind tranquil. You must renounce both worldly attachments and any clinging to the pursuit of the Way.
Although you must not be stingy with the Dharma, do not o›er explanations of it to anyone unless you are asked about it. Then, wait until the inquirer has asked three times and respond only if the fourth request is sincere. Of ten things you may wish to say, hold back nine. The method of followers of the Way can be likened to a winter fan waved around the mouth, or to a bell hanging in the air which does not wonder about the breeze blowing from all directions. Do not rely upon anyone in pursuing the Dharma, and do not overestimate yourself because of the Way—this is the most important consideration. Although zazen is not just a matter of teaching, practice, or realization, it encompasses all three ideals. That is, to evaluate realization only in terms of attaining enlightenment is not the essence of zazen; to evaluate practice only as following the true path is not the essence of zazen; and to evaluate teaching only as cutting o› evil and practicing good is not the essence of zazen.
Although the establishment of teaching lies within Zen, it is not ordinary teaching. Rather, the Way of simple transmission through direct pointing is an expression demonstrated by the entire body. It is speaking without phrases. At the point where thought and reason are exhausted, a single word conveys the totality of the world, and yet not a single hair is raised—isn’t this the true teaching of the Buddhas and patriarchs? Although practice is realized [in Zen], it is the practice of non-action. The body functions spontaneously, the mouth does not chant esoteric doctrine, the mind is not preoccupied with thoughts, the six senses are naturally clear and una›ected by anything. This is not the sixteen fold practice of the Buddha’s disciples, the twelvefold practice of dependent origination, or the myriad practices of the six stages of the bodhisattva. Because it is not doing any [particular] thing, it is known as acting as a Buddha. Only abiding tranquilly in the self-fulfilling samådhi of all Buddhas, or resonating in the four peaceful reposes of the bodhisattva—is this not the profound and marvelous practice of the Buddhas and patriarchs? Although realization is realized [in Zen], it is the realization of non-realization, the king of all samådhis, the samådhi that realizes the unborn, comprehensive, and spontaneous wisdom, the gate to disclosing the Tathågata’s wisdom and the path of great tranquility and harmony. It transcends the distinction between sacred and mundane, goes beyond delusion and enlightenment—is this not the realization of original enlightenment?
Although zazen is not restricted to discipline (Ωala), concentration (samådhi), or wisdom (prajñå), it encompasses all three goals. That is, although discipline is to prevent or stop evil, in zazen we observe the principle of complete nonduality, renounce the ten thousand things, put an end to all entanglements, abandon the distinction between Buddhist and worldly principles, forget attachments to the Way as well as to the world, and acknowledge neither aeration nor denial, neither good nor evil—so what is there to prevent or stop? That is the formless discipline of the primordial mind. Concentration is undivided contemplation. Zazen is the dropping o› of body and mind, renouncing [the distinction between] delusion and enlightenment. It is neither motionless nor active, neither creative nor quiescent, and resembles both fool and saint, mountain and ocean. No trace of movement or stillness originates from it. Concentration functions without form. Because it is formless, it is known as great concentration. Wisdom is discriminative awareness. In zazen, subject and object disappear on their own and mental discriminations are forever forgotten. The eye of wisdom pervades the body. Although it makes no discriminations, it clearly sees Buddha-nature. Originally without delusion, zazen cuts o› conceptualization and remains unbound and clear. Wisdom is formless; because it is formless, it is known as great wisdom.
The teaching of all Buddhas, as expressed in their own lifetimes, is nothing other than what is included in discipline (Ωala), concentration (samådhi), or wisdom (prajñå). Now, in zazen, there is no discipline that is not cultivated, no concentration that is not observed, no wisdom that is not realized. Overcoming supering, attaining the Way, turning the wheel [of the Dharma], and the attainment of enlightenment all depend on its power. Supernatural powers and illuminating the Dharma are fully rooted in zazen.
Studying Zen is also based on zazen.
If you want to practice zazen, you must first be in a quiet place and lay out a firm cushion. Do not let in either wind, smoke, rain, or dew. Keep a clean place to sit with plenty of room for your knees. Although ancient monks were reported to have sat on a diamond seat or on a huge rock, there were none who did not use a cushion. The place for sitting should not be too bright in the daytime or too dark at night, and must be kept warm in the winter and cool in the summer. That is the method [for zazen].
Renounce discriminative consciousness and terminate conceptualization. Do not try to gauge the activities of a Buddha or to judge good and evil. Make the most of your time as if your own life was at stake. The Tathågata practiced zazen in an upright position, Bodhidharma sat with single minded attention and no other concerns, Sekis o resembled a withered tree, and [Tiantong] Rujing was critical of those who sleep while doing zazen. Rujing counseled: “Attainment is reached through zazen only, not by burning incense, worship, repetition of the nembutsu, repentance, or reading or reciting sutras.” Whenever you practice zazen, you must wear the kesa (kanåya) robe (except during the night and upon arising from sleep, as per the schedule). Do not neglect to do this. The cushion (twelve inches across, thirty-six inches in diameter) should not support the entire leg. It should extend from the middle of the leg to the base of the spine. That is the zazen method of the Buddhas and patriarchs.
You may sit in either the full-lotus or half-lotus position. The method for the full-lotus is to put the right foot on the left thigh and the left foot on the right thigh. Loosen your robe and let it hang neatly around you. Then, put your right hand on your left foot and your left hand on your right foot, keeping the thumbs together, close to the body at the navel. Sit perfectly upright without leaning left or right, forward or backward. The ears and shoulders, nose and navel must be perfectly aligned. The tongue should rest on the roof of the mouth and the breath pass through the nose. The mouth is closed but the eyes are left open. Having regulated the body so that it is neither sti› nor limp, breathe deeply through the mouth one time. Then, while sitting in concentration, sway your body [to the left and right] seven or eight times, going from a greater to smaller [range of motion]. Sit upright with lofty dedication.
So, how does one think of that which is beyond thinking? By non-thinking—that is the fundamental method of zazen. You must directly break through all attachments and realize enlightenment. If you want to rise from concentration [practice], put your hands on your knees and sway the body seven or eight times, going from a smaller to greater [range of motion]. Breathe through the mouth, put your hands on the ground, and simply raise yourself from your seat. Walk deliberately to the left or the right. If drowsiness threatens while sitting, always sway the body or open your eyes wide. Also, focus attention on the top of the head, the hairline, or the forehead. If you still do not feel awake, wipe your eyes or rub your body. If that still does not awaken you, get up from your seat and walk around in the correct manner. After walking about a hundred steps, your drowsiness should surely be overcome. The method [of walking meditation] is to take a half step with each breath. Walk as if you are not walking—calm and undistracted.
If you are still not awake after walking around in this way, rinse your eyes or cool o› your head, or recite the preface to the bodhisattva vow. Or do any combination of these things so that you do not fall asleep.
You must consider the Great Matter of life and death and the swift changes of impermanence and ask yourself, “How can I sleep when the insight of the eye of the Dharma is not yet illuminated?” If drowsiness continues to threaten to overtake you, you must recite, “Because my karmic tendencies are so deeply rooted, I am now lost in the veil of fatigue—when will I awaken from my ignorance? I beg for the great compassion of the Buddhas and patriarchs to remove my supering.”
If your mind is distracted, focus attention on the tip of your nose or your lower abdomen and count the breaths coming in and out. If the distractions continue, then reflect on an instruction koan for awakening, such as “What is it that thus comes?”, “Does a dog have Buddha-nature?”, “Union’s Mount Sumeru” koan, and “Doshi’s cypress tree in the garden” koan. Artless dialogues such 414b as these are suitable. If the distractions still persist, then meditate by concentrating directly on stopping your breath or keeping your eyes shut. Or focus on the state prior to conception, before a single thought has been produced.
If you follow Buddhist practice, the twofold emptiness [of self and dharmas] spontaneously arises and mental attachments are necessarily dispersed. After emerging from concentration, to realize the majestic activities [of walking, standing, sitting, and lying down] without thought is the spontaneous manifestation of Zen enlightenment. When you actualize the underestimated differentiation of practice-in-realization, Zen enlightenment is spontaneously manifest. The primordial state before anything appeared, the condition prior to the formation of heaven and earth—the ultimate concern of the Buddhas and patriarchs is nothing other than this one thing.
Be still and calm, indifferent and free of passion, letting ten thousand years pass in an instant, like cool ashes or a withered tree, like incense burning without smoke in an ancient temple, or a piece of white silk. May this be realized!
Amitåbha (“Immeasurable Light”): A transcendental Buddha associated with great compassion, who resides over a blissful realm, or Pure Land, into which believers in his salvific power will be reborn. See also Pure Land.
Ånanda (“Joy”): The name of ¸åkyamuni’s cousin, close disciple, and personal attendant who was renowned for his ability to recite all of the Buddha’s sermons from memory.
anuttarå samyaksaµbodhi: Unsurpassed, ultimate awakening or bodhi. See also bodhi.
arhat (“worthy one”): A saint who has completely eradicated the passions and attained liberation from the cycle of birth and death (samsara); the highest stage of spiritual achievement in the Hinayana. See also Hina yana; samsara.
AvalokiteΩvara: A great bodhisattva who represents great compassion.
awakening. See bodhi.
birth and death. See samsara.
bodhi: Enlightenment; a state in which one is awakened to the inherent enlightened nature, or Buddha-nature, of all reality. See also Buddha-nature. bodhicitta (“enlightenment mind”): The aspiration to achieve enlightenment.
Bodhidharma (470–543?): An Indian monk who came to China and became the First Patriarch of the Chan/Zen school. He is said to have spent nine years facing a wall in zazen at Shaolin Temple. See also Chan school; zazen.
bodhisattva (“enlightenment being”): One who has given rise to the profound aspiration (bodhicitta) to achieve enlightenment in order to help liberate all sentient beings from samsara; the spiritual ideal of the Mahayana. Bodhisattvas enter a course of practice of the six perfections and attain various stages on the way to Buddhahood. See also Mahayana; samsara;
Buddhahood: The state of being or becoming a Buddha; the goal of the bodhisattva path.
Buddha-nature: The basic enlightened nature of sentient beings, which is chronically obscured by their ignorance and attachment to dualistic views. According to the Chan/Zen school, enlightenment is nothing other than the complete unfolding of one’s inherent Buddha-nature. See also Chan school; enlightenment.
calming and contemplation: The two meditative practices of Ωåmatha, which entails calming the mind, stilling discursive thoughts, in order to prepare a stable base for the practice of vipaΩyana, meditative insight into the nature of reality. Also called cessation and contemplation.
Chan school: A major school of East Asian Buddhism that developed in China in the sixth and seventh centuries, and was subsequently transmitted to Japan where it is known as the Zen school; so-called because of its emphasis on the practice of meditation (Skt.: dhyåna; Ch.: chan; Jp.: zen). The Chan/Zen school evolved new approaches to religious practice based on a lineal succession of Buddhas and patriarchs, in “a special transmission outside the scriptures”—direct transmission from master to disciple of the teaching and realization which does not rely on intellectual analysis or scriptural authority. The tradition traces its roots to an event related in the sutras, in which ¸åkyamuni Buddha, while teaching an assembly of followers, wordlessly raised a flower, upon which his disciple MåhakåΩyapa smiled, indicating his realization of the Buddha’s intent and teaching, without any verbal exchange. The Chan/Zen school emphasizes intensive meditation practice as the best means to a direct experience of enlightenment (bodhi) and realization of one’s own Buddhanature, which brings about the immediate transcendence of all dualistic conceptualization and a profound apprehension of ultimate reality. In the development of Chan Buddhism in China two approaches to the attainment of enlightenment came to be postulated—gradual, as the result of long practice, which was the approach adopted by the Northern school; and a sudden, spontaneous, direct experience of one’s Buddhanature, which was emphasized in the Southern school. See also bodhi; dhyåna; Buddha-nature; Måha kåΩyapa; patriarchs; Rinzai sect; ¸åkyamuni; Soto sect; ultimate reality.
cultivation and verification: The oneness of practice or sitting meditation (zazen), which represents the aspect of cultivation, and realization, which represents the aspect of verification. These are considered two inseparable aspects of the Zen religious experience according to Soto sect masters Dogen and Keizan. See also Soto sect; zazen.
dependent origination (pratatyasamutpåda): A basic Buddhist doctrine that all phenomena come into being only in dependence on causes and conditions and exist only as long as those causes and conditions prevail. Also called the law of causality.
Dharma body (dharmakåya): One of the three bodies, or manifestations of a Buddha, as ultimate reality or suchness. See also three bodies.
dharmadhåtu: The Dharma realm, the sphere of ultimate reality or suchness. See also suchness; ultimate reality.
dharma: A phenomenon, thing, or element; the elements that make up the perceived phenomenal world.
dhyåna (Ch.: chan; Jp.: zen): Meditation, a state of meditative concentration and absorption. The primary practice of the Chan/Zen school. See also Chan school.
Dapaµkara: The name of a past Buddha.
eighteen realms: The six senses, their respective six objects, and the associated six consciousnesses. See also six consciousnesses; six sense objects; six senses.
emptiness (Ωinyatå): A central and fundamental Buddhist teaching that all phenomena arise only in dependence on causes and conditions (dependent origination) and thus are “empty” of self-existence or inherent nature; nothing, therefore, has “real,” independent, permanent existence. See also dependent origination.
enlightenment: A state in which one is awakened to the true nature of all reality; a direct experience of ultimate truth or ultimate reality. Also called bodhi, awakening. See also bodhi.
esoteric: A body of Mahayana Buddhist teachings that belong to the Esoteric Buddhist tradition, known in Japan as the Shingon or Mantra schools. Esoteric Buddhism is characterized by an emphasis on ritual practices, mantras, and secret teachings that are passed directly from master to disciple in a progression of spiritual stages. See also mantra.
five hundred-year periods: Five periods that are predicted to occur after ¸åkyamuni’s lifetime, which represent a gradual decline of the Buddhist teachings and practice. In the first period, attainment of enlightenment is possible; in the second, followers steadfastly practice meditation; in
the third, followers eagerly listen to the Buddha’s teaching; in the fourth, they engage in building stupas and temples; and in the fifth, followers engage in doctrinal disputes. These correspond to the three ages of the Buddhist teachings: the age of the Right Dharma, the age of the Semblance Dharma, and the final age of the Decadent Dharma, also known as the latter-day world (mapp o). See also latter-day world.
five grave transgressions: 1) patricide, 2) matricide, 3) killing an arhat, 4) maliciously causing a Buddha to bleed, and 5) causing disharmony in the Buddhist order (sangha).
five skandhas: The five constituent elements or aggregates that make up what is experienced as one’s personality or self: form (ripa), feeling (vedåna), perception (samjñå), formations (samskåra), and consciousness (vijñåna).
four grave oneness: The four most serious oneness for Buddhist monks and nuns, which result in their expulsion from the sangha—1) killing, 2) stealing, 3) sexual activity, and 4) lying.
Four Noble Truths: The fundamental Buddhist teaching—1) the truth of supering; 2) the truth of the cause of supering; 3) the truth of the cessation of supering; and 4) the truth of the eightfold path that leads to the cessation of supering, i.e., right view, right thought, right speech, right action, right livelihood, right resort, right mindfulness, and right meditation.
Great Vehicle. See Mahayana.
Hinayana (“Small Vehicle”): A term used by Mahayana Buddhists to describe the teachings of early Buddhism, which had as its spiritual ideal the arhat. The two paths of Hinayana practice, that of Ωråvakas and pratyekabuddhas, are known collectively as the two vehicles. See also arhat; pratyekabuddha; Ωråvaka; Mahayana.
icchantika: One who has no stock of good roots and thus no possibility of attaining Buddhahood.
kalpa: An eon, an enormously long period of time.
karma: Lit., “action,” any act of body, speech, or mind, which leads to rebirth in samsara according to whether it is morally good, evil, or neutral. See also samsara.
koan (Ch.: gongan): A conundrum or paradoxical phrase, story, or episode from the life of an ancient master used as an object of meditation, which cannot be grasped or solved by reason, thus forcing the practitioner to break through to another level of comprehension. Though not exclusive to it, koan practice is especially emphasized in the Rinzai (Ch.: Linji) sect of Chan/Zen. See also Rinzai sect.
latter-day world : The final period of the Dharma, the age of the Decadent Dharma, in which authentic Buddhist teachings and practice are no longer available. See also five hundred-year periods.
MahåkåΩyapa: The disciple whom the Buddha designated as his successor, according to the Chan/Zen school. Also called KåΩyapa. See also Chan school.
Mahåsthåmapråpta (“Possessed of Great Power”): A great bodhisattva who represents the wisdom of Amitåbha. See also Amitåbha.
Mahayana (“Great Vehicle”): A form of Buddhism that developed in India around 100 B.C.E. and which exalts as its religious ideal the bodhisattva, great beings who aspire to enlightenment on behalf of all sentient beings. See also bodhisattva.
Maitreya: The future Buddha, currently still a bodhisattva.
MañjuΩra: A great bodhisattva who exemplifies transcendent wisdom.
mantra: A mystic or incantatory phrase or formula used in the rituals of Esoteric Buddhism. See also esoteric.
Måra: In Buddhist texts, the personification of death or evil; a symbol of the afflictions that hinder progress on the path to Buddhahood. meditation. See dhyåna; samådhi.
någa: A type of supernatural being in the form of a dragon or serpent.
nirvana: Liberation from samsara, a state in which all passions are extinguished and the highest wisdom attained; bodhi, enlightenment. See also bodhi; samsara.
One Vehicle: The Buddha vehicle, the Mahayana teaching that leads to complete enlightenment and attainment of Buddhahood, contrasted with the teachings of the two Hinayana vehicles. The One Vehicle includes and transcends all three vehicles of the Ωråvaka, pratyeka buddha, and bodhisattva paths. See also three vehicles; two vehicles.
patriarchs: The lineage of masters in the Chan/Zen school, beginning with the First Patriarch, Bodhidharma, an Indian monk who, according to tradition, established the Chan teaching in China in the fifth century. See also Bodhidharma; Chan school.
prajñå: Nondiscrimination or transcendental wisdom, the understanding of the emptiness of all phenomena in their actual realities. One of the six perfections (påramitås) of a bodhisattva. See also bodhisattva; emptiness; six perfections.
pratyekabuddha (“solitary enlightened one”): One who has attained enlightenment through direct observation and understanding of the principle of dependent origination without the guidance of a teacher, and who does not teach others. One of the two Hinayana vehicles. See also dependent origination; Hinayana; two vehicles.
precepts: Vows concerning moral conduct (Ωala) taken by lay Buddhists and monastics. The five basic precepts are: 1) not to kill, 2) not to steal, 3) not to commit adultery, 4) not to lie, and 5) not to take intoxicants. In addition, there are two hundred fifty monastic rules for monks and three hundred forty-eight for nuns. See also Ωala.
Pure Land: A blissful, transcendent Buddha land or realm presided over by Amitåbha Buddha, in which believers in his salvific power will be reborn. Also the name of a major East Asian Buddhist school which emphasizes the practice of worshiping Amitåbha. See also Amitåbha.
Rinzai sect (Ch.: Linji): Along with the Soto sect, one of the two main branches of Chan/Zen. Originating with the ninth-century Chinese master Linji, it was brought to Japan at the end of the twelfth century by Eisai and emphasizes the study and practice of k oans. See also k oan; Soto sect.
¸åkyamuni: The historical Buddha who lived in India in the fifth century B.C.E., and whose life and teachings form the basis of Buddhism.
samådhi: A meditative state of concentration, focusing the mind on one point; also a transcendent mental state attained by the repeated practice of meditative concentration.
Samantabhadra (“Universally Gracious”): A great bodhisattva who represents the ultimate principle, meditation, and the practice of all Buddhas. The embodiment of adherence to vows of great compassion.
samsara: The cycle of birth and death; transmigration or rebirth in the six realms of existence to which sentient beings are subject as a result of their actions (karma); the world of supering, contrasted with the bliss of nirvana. See also karma; nirvana; six modes of existence.
sangha: The community of Buddhist monastics.
¸åriputra: One of the original disciples of the Buddha, called “foremost of the wise.”
shikantaza: “Just sitting” or “pure sitting,” a form of practice of zazen involving resting in a state of alert attention free of discursive thoughts, directed on no object, and attached to no particular content; the meditative practice emphasized in the Soto school of Zen. See also Soto school; zazen.
Ωala: Moral conduct or the practice of the precepts; one of the six perfections. See also precepts; six perfections.
Ωala, samådhi, and prajñå: The three practices of morality, meditation, and wisdom, which are also three of the six perfections. Also called discipline, concentration, and wisdom; morality, concentration, and wisdom. See also six perfections.
six consciousnesses: 1) Eye consciousness, 2) ear consciousness, 3) nose consciousness, 4) tongue consciousness, 5) body consciousness, and 6) the mental sense or intellect, which result from contact between the six senses and their respective objects. See also six sense objects; six senses.
six modes of existence: The six realms of samsara existence into which sentient beings are reborn in accordance with their karma: the three higher realms of gods (devas), asuras (demigods), and human beings; and the three lower realms of animals, hungry ghosts (pretas), and hell, which are also known as the three evil paths. See also karma; samsara.
six perfections (påramitås): Six practices, or qualities, perfected by bodhisattvas on the path to Buddhahood—1) generosity (dåna), 2) morality (Ωala), 3) patience (k≈ånti), 4) energy (varya), 5) meditation (dhyåna), and 6) wisdom (prajñå). See also dhyåna; bodhisattva; Buddhahood; prajñå; Ωala.
six sense objects: The objects of perception associated with each of the six senses—1) form, 2) sound, 3) smell, 4) taste, 5) tactile objects, and 6) mental objects. See also six senses.
six senses: The six sense faculties of the 1) eyes, 2) ears, 3) nose, 4) tongue, 5) body, and 6) mind. Also called sense perceptions; sensory capabilities. See also six consciousnesses; six sense objects.
Small Vehicle. See Hinayana.
Soto sect (Ch.: Caodong): One of the two main branches of Chan/Zen
Buddhism, along with the Rinzai (Ch.: Linji) sect; founded in China during the Tang dynasty and brought to Japan in the early thirteenth century by Eihei Dogen. The Soto school emphasizes the practice of shikantaza. See also Rinzai sect; shikantaza.
Ωråvaka (“auditor”): Originally, a disciple of the Buddha, one of those who heard him expound the teachings directly; later, the term came to refer to one of the two kinds of Hinayana followers, along with pratyekabuddhas, to distinguish them from followers of the Mahayana. See also Hinayana; Mahayana; pratyekabuddha; two vehicles.
suchness: Ultimate reality, the state of things as they really are, i.e., dependently arisen and empty of inherent, independent, permanent existence. Insight into the suchness of all phenomena is prajñå, transcendental wisdom. See also dependent origination; emptiness; prajñå; ultimate reality.
Tathågata: An epithet for a Buddha, meaning one who has gone to (gata) and come from (ågata) suchness (tathå), i.e., the embodiment of the truth of suchness. See also suchness.
tathågatagarbha: Lit., the “womb (garbha) of the Tathågata,” the inherent capacity for Buddhahood within all sentient beings. See also Buddhahood; Tathågata.
ten directions: The four cardinal directions, the four intermediate directions, plus the zenith and nadir, i.e., all directions, everywhere.
three bodies: The three bodies in which a Buddha may appear—1) the Dharma body (dharmakåya), synonymous with ultimate truth or ultimate reality; 2) the reward body (saµbhogakåya), a symbolic personification of the Dharma body that a Buddha assumes both as a reward for eons of ascetic practice and in order to expound the Dharma to bodhisattvas and others; and 3) the transformation body (nirmå√akåya), an “incarnate” or “historically manifested” body of a Buddha such as ¸åkyamuni, which appears in the world to guide sentient beings in the manner best suited to their situations and abilities. See also ¸åkyamuni; ultimate reality.
three evil paths: The three lower samsara realms of animals, hungry ghosts, and hell. Also called three lower realms; three evil modes of existence. See also six modes of existence.
three periods of time: Past, present, and future.
three poisons: Greed, anger, and delusion, all of which hinder the pursuit of enlightenment.
three refuges. See Three Treasures.
Three Treasures: The Buddha, the Dharma (the Buddhist teachings), and the Sangha (the community of Buddhist followers). Also called the “three refuges” because one becomes a Buddhist upon “taking refuge” in them.
three vehicles: The three Buddhist paths followed by Ωråvakas, pratyekabuddhas, and bodhisattvas respectively. See also bodhisattva; pratyekabuddha; Ωråvaka.
three worlds: The three realms of samsara existence: the realm of desire (kåmadhåtu), i.e., the world of ordinary consciousness accompanied by desires; the realm of form (ripadhåtu), in which desires have been eliminated but the physical body remains; and the formless realm (åripya dhåtu), in which the physical body no longer exists. See also samsara.
Tripitaka: The three divisions or “baskets” (pitakas) of the Buddhist canon: the Sutras, discourses and teachings of the Buddha; the Vinaya, codes of monastic discipline; and the Abhidharma, scholastic treatises on the Buddhist teachings.
two vehicles: The two Hinayana paths of Ωråvakas and pratyeka buddhas. See also Hinayana; Ωråvaka; pratyekabuddha.
ultimate reality: Ultimate truth, the state of things as they really are, suchness; the state of enlightenment (bodhi), in which ultimate reality is apprehended. See also bodhi; suchness.
Vimalakarti: A lay bodhisattva, subject and expounder of the Vimalakarti Sutra, renowned for his great wisdom and spiritual accomplishment.
vinaya: Moral conduct or precepts, as practiced within the monastic community. Individual moral conduct is referred to as Ωala. See also Ωala.
Vinaya: Precepts and rules of conduct for monastics; along with the Abhi dharma and the Sutras, one of the three divisions of the Tripitaka. See also Tripitaka.
Way (Ch.: Dao): The Buddhist path; the ultimate state of enlightenment, bodhi. See also Awakened Way.
zazen: Seated (za) meditation (zen, from dhyåna), the practice of sitting meditation emphasized in Zen Buddhism. See also dhyåna.
Zen school. See Chan school; Soto sect; Rinzai sect.
Blofeld, John. The Zen Teaching of Huang Po on the Transmission of Mind. New York: Grove Press, 1958.
Suzuki, D. T. “Huang-po’s Sermon, from ‘Treatise on the Essentials of the Transmission of Mind’ (Denshin Hoyo),” Manual of Zen Buddhism. New York: Grove/Atlantic, 1968 (reprint), pp. 112–19. A partial translation of the text.
Tsunoda, Ryisaku, William Theodore de Bary, and Donald Keene, comp. Sources of Japanese Tradition. New York: Columbia University Press,
1958. See Eisai’s Foreword, in Chapter XII, “Zen Buddhism,” pp. 235– 6; and “Eisai: Preface to K ozen gokoku ron (Prop agation of Zen for the Protection of the Country),” pp. 241–3.
Yanagida, Seizan, trans. Chisei-zenke-no-shis o (Thoughts Expressed by Men of Zen in Medieval Japan), Nihon-shis o-taikei No. 16, Tokyo: Iwanamishoten, 1972.
Bielefeldt, Carl, trans. Dogen’s Manuals of Zen Meditation. Berkeley and Los Angeles: University of California Press, 1988.
Cleary, Thomas, trans. Shob ogenz o: Zen Essays by Dogen. Honolulu, HI: University of Hawaii Press, 1986.
Cook, Francis D ojun, trans. “Fukan Zazengi, ‘General Recommendations for Doing Zazen,’” How to Raise an Ox. Los Angeles: Center Publications, 1978, pp. 95–9.
Dumoulin, Heinrich, trans. “Allegemeine Lehren zur Förderung des Zazen von Zen-Meister Dogen,” Monumenta Nipponica, Vol. 14, Nos. 3–4 (Tokyo: Sophia University, 1958–59), pp. 430–6.
Gort, Harry, and Koshin Kawagishi, trans. A Universal Guide on the Right Way to Zazen. Tokyo: Seigan-in, 1972.
Hashimoto, Ek o. Fukan-zazen-gi no Hanashi (Discourse on the Universal Recommendation for True Zazen). Tottori, Japan: Daijuji, 1977.
Kennett, Jiyu, trans. “Evening Service. Fuzanzazengi (Zazen Rules),” Selling Water by the River: A Manual of Zen Training. New York: Pantheon Books, 1972, pp. 231–3.
Maezumi, Taizen, and Bernard Tetsugen Glassman, trans. “The Universal Promotion of the Principles of Zazen,” On Zen Practice, Vol. II. Los Angeles: Zen Center of Los Angeles, 1977, pp. 13–16.
Masunaga, Reih o. Introduction to Fukanzazengi. Tokyo: Seishin Shob o, 1956.
—. The Soto Approach to Zen. Tokyo: Layman Buddhist Society Press, 1958, pp. 101–5.
—. Zen for Daily Living. Tokyo: Shunjisha, 1964.
Nishijima, Gudo, and Chodo Cross, trans. Master Dogen’s Sh ob ogenz o, Book I. London: Windbell Publications Ltd., 1998.
Okamura, Shohaku, trans. Shikantaza: An Introduction to Zazen. Tokyo: Sotoshi Shumucho, 1985.
Soto Zen Text Project, trans. “Universally Recommended Instructions for Zazen,” Soto School Scriptures for Daily Services and Practice. Tokyo: Sotoshi Shumuchu, 2001.
Tanahashi, Kazuaki, trans. “Recommending Zazen to All People,” Enlightenment Unfolds: The Essential Teachings of Zen Master Dogen. Boston: Shambhala Publications, 2000, pp. 32–4.
Waddell, Norman, and Masao Abe. “Dogen’s Fukanzazengi and Sh ob ogenz o Zazengi,” The Eastern Buddhist, Vol. VI, No. 2 (October 1973), pp. 121–6.
Yasuda Joshu Roshi and Anzan Hoshin Roshi, trans. “Fukanzazengi: How Everyone Can Sit,” Progress into the Ordinary. Ottawa, Canada: Great Matter Publications, 1986.
Yokoi, Yih o, and Brian Daizen Victoria, trans. “A Universal Recommendation for Zazen (Fukan Zazen-gi),” Zen Master Dogen. New York: Weatherhill, 1976, pp. 45–7.
Anzan Hoshin Roshi, trans. “Zazen Yojinki,” The Art of Just Sitting: Essential Writings on the Zen Practice of Shikantaza, Second Edition. John Daido Loori, ed. Somerville, MA: Wisdom Publications, 2004, pp. 41 –50.
Cleary, Thomas, trans. and ed. “Keizan Jokin’s Zazen Yojinki,” Timeless Spring: A Soto Zen Anthology. Tokyo and New York: Weather hill, 1980, pp. 112–23.
Fauré, Bernard. Visions of Power: Imagining Medieval Japanese Buddhism. Princeton, NJ: Princeton University Press, 1996.
A Ånanda 227, 246
ancestor(s) (see also patriarch) 245,
Abe, Masao 248
255
AbhidharmakoΩa 61, 102
Annen 101, 102, 103, 122, 129,
abiding (see also self-abiding) 18,
134, 142, 199, 221
19, 38, 85, 110, 115, 117 anuttarå samyaksaµbodhi (see also
abode(s) 93, 124, 238 awakening, unsurpassed, ulti-
ten 16
mate) 71, 105, 185, 212
åcårya 47, 153, 221
Anzan Hoshin Roshi 249
Account of the Three-Kalpa Three-
Apocryphal Scriptures 195, 200
Thousand Buddhas 226
Approach to Truth through the
action(s) (see also non-action) 20,
Samådhi Called No Polemics,
36, 244, 245, 265
An 184, 210, 238
three, of body, speech, and mind
åra√yaka 126
144 arhat(s) (see also sage) 62, 80, 94,
virtuous 27
135, 172, 177, 221, 222, 270
activity(ies) 39, 48, 51, 53, 55, 56,
athwartship (see also sagehood) 91,
57, 86, 90, 100, 120, 121, 153,
92, 104, 105, 154, 155, 213, 221
183, 242, 244, 260, 269, 272, 274 artificiality 163, 168
false 17
Åryadeva 246
mental, of the mind 6, 16
Asaçga 206
monastic 168, 170, 171, 172–3 ascetic, asceticism 38, 213
acupuncture 147, 163
aspiration 112, 234, 243, 253
Advice on the Practice of Zazen for awakening, to attain awaken-
263–75
ing (see also bodhi citta) 81, 91,
affliction(s) 20, 21, 22
105, 215, 216, 234, 237
Afterword to the Mahåparinirvå√a original (see also bodhi citta) 105,
Sutra 125, 202
137
ajari. See åcårya
AΩvagho≈a 103, 131, 206, 235
Ak≈obhya 223
attachment (see also nonattach-
All-pleasing: A Commentary on the ment) 14, 20, 27, 103, 174, 266,
Rules of Discipline, The 91, 198
267, 269, 270, 271, 273, 274
Amitåbha 224, 237–8
to emptiness 73, 118
anågåmin 80, 221
291
attainment(s) 25, 28, 29, 33, 35,
92, 135, 162, 181, 183, 184, 213,
224, 241, 246, 261, 266, 267, 272 of awakening 82, 119, 159, 161,
166–7, 180, 185, 186, 218 final 65, 80 four 91, 92, 105, 221 perfect 116
Attending to the Lotus Sutra 212–
13 auditor. See Ωråvaka Augustine, Morris J. 50 autonomy 25, 42 AvalokiteΩvara 15, 177, 178
AvalokiteΩvara Benefactory Hall. See Kannond ori-in Avaci 162 awakened truth (see also Dharma)
72, 73, 77, 78, 87, 89, 90, 106,
140, 144, 186, 214, 216
Awakened Way (see also Way) 149,
241, 242, 243, 244, 245 awakening (see also bodhi; enlightenment) 52, 72, 76, 77, 78, 81, 82, 83, 87, 88, 89, 90, 91, 105,
110, 115, 116, 117, 118, 119, 124,
126, 130, 131, 136, 142, 144, 146,
147, 148, 150, 153, 154, 155, 159,
161, 162, 163, 165, 167, 179, 180,
181, 182, 206, 211, 213, 215, 216,
217, 218, 221, 223, 224, 227, 228,
229, 231, 234, 237, 241, 242, 243,
244, 246, 255, 274 authentic 137, 154 great 128, 146 perfect 116, 117 perfect and immediate 115, 224 seat of (see also bodhimaöa;
enlightenment, place of) 80,
134, 135, 220
sixfold immediacy of 117, 224 ultimate (see also anuttarå sam -
yak saµbodhi) 105, 181, 182,
185, 186, 224, 254 unsurpassed (see also anuttarå
sam yaksaµbodhi) 71, 79, 186,
212, 243, 245
B
Baizhang Huaihai 6–7, 11, 132 Båmiyån 178, 181 banyan tree 227 Baochi 246
Baolinzhuan 195, 212 Baozhi 38, 39 being (see also nonbeing) 13, 23,
26, 38, 52, 71, 83, 86, 87, 90, 98,
100, 104, 110, 111, 112, 123, 124,
125, 127, 138, 140, 148, 149, 150,
151, 157, 158, 182, 212, 214, 218,
225, 229, 244, 262 being(s) (see also living being; ordinary being; sentient being) 28, 51, 55, 79, 93, 94, 105, 116, 134,
159, 160, 161, 163, 185, 186, 211,
222, 227, 242–3
Bend oh o 247, 261 Bend owa 51, 246, 261
benefit(s) 38, 58, 73, 76, 83, 84, 89,
94, 104, 105, 106, 112, 157, 159,
161, 167, 168, 169, 172, 184 benefiting 184
oneself 142, 153, 162, 171 others 55, 116, 126, 142, 153, 162
Bequeathed Teaching Sutra 110,
111, 124, 153, 175, 200, 236 Bhavadatta, King 222–3 bhik≈u(s) (see also monk) 75, 169,
215, 227, 228 bhik≈una(s) (see also nun) 75, 212
Bielefeldt, Carl 247
Biographies of Eminent Buddhist
Sangha Members in the Great
Tang Who Visited the Western Districts to Seek the Teachings of the Buddha-Dharma 229
Biographies of Eminent Monks 237
Biography of Prince SHotoku 127,
203
birth (see also no-birth) 39, 61, 139,
165, 178, 218 birth and death (see also samsara)
24, 77, 80, 93, 104, 106, 110, 124,
133, 145, 150, 155, 156, 164, 165
Bitchi Province 61 Bizen Province 61 blessing(s) 27, 165 bliss 52, 86, 148, 173, 174, 175, 254 Blofeld, John 8
Blue Cliff Record 145, 206, 214,
215, 231, 232 bodhi (see also awakening; enlightenment) 14, 17, 19, 20, 21, 22,
24, 38, 39, 144, 179, 211, 223,
243, 245, 255 bodhicitta (see also aspiration, for awakening; mind, of enlightenment) 81, 91, 105, 137, 216, 224, 234
Bodhidharma 23, 34, 41, 49, 72, 88, 100, 102, 118, 128, 131, 133, 136,
144, 228, 230, 253, 272
Bodhidharma school. See Daruma school
Bodhidharma’s Six Gates 223 bodhima√∂a (see also awakening,
seat of; enlightenment, place of)
18, 80, 81, 220
Bodhipradapa 205 Bodhiruci 204, 205, 208 bodhisattva(s) 15, 16, 17, 22, 26,
27, 38, 51, 55, 78, 79, 81, 86, 89,
94, 106, 112, 113, 126, 127, 135,
142, 148, 153, 158, 159, 160, 162,
164, 166, 169, 186, 211, 213, 216,
217, 220, 221, 222, 228, 234, 235,
237, 238, 243, 268, 270, 271 precepts 109, 135, 148, 158, 160, 178, 220, 241 Ωala 65, 100, 136, 211, 220, 221 stages. See stage vehicle 185 vow 81, 274
Bodhisattvabhimi (see also Bodhisattva Stages) 206, 215
Bodhisattva Garland Sutra 112,
201
Bodhisattva Stages (see also Bodhi sattvabhimi) 158, 208
bodhi tree 177, 179, 237 body 19, 62, 107, 113, 126, 134, 137,
145, 147, 148, 163, 175, 222, 223,
242, 243, 244, 245, 253, 255, 265,
266, 267, 268, 270, 271, 272, 273 body and mind 27, 32, 61, 142, 148,
153, 158, 162, 175, 244, 268, 269,
270
dropping o› of 241, 244, 246,
261, 265, 271 body-only 266 Bohai Sea 238
Book of Jin 233
Book on Buddhists Compiled in the Gen k o Era, A. See Genko shaku sho
borderland(s) 179, 180 Brahmå(s) 15, 156, 217 brahman 106, 213
Brahmå Net Sutra on the Bodhisattva ¸ala 76, 77, 158, 159,
194, 215–6, 225 breath, breathing 40, 148, 261,
268, 269, 273, 274
Brief Commentary on the Ten
Wheels Sutra 101, 199
brilliance 5, 11, 14, 28, 29, 38, 144 Brilliant Song. See Song dynasty
Buddha (see also ¸åkyamuni; Tathågata; World-honored One) 5, 13– 14, 15, 18, 19, 20, 22, 23, 24, 25,
28, 29, 34–5, 38, 39, 41, 77, 79,
82, 83, 84, 86, 87, 88, 89, 90, 91,
92, 93, 94, 95, 96, 97–8, 99, 101, 103, 104–5, 107, 108, 109, 112,
115, 119, 123, 125, 126–7, 129,
130–1, 132, 135, 138, 139, 142, 143, 151, 154, 156, 157, 160,
162, 163, 164, 167, 171, 172, 174,
175, 176, 177, 178, 179, 180, 181,
182, 183, 185, 199, 212, 213, 214,
216, 217, 221, 222, 223, 226, 227,
229, 230, 231, 233, 234, 235, 236,
238, 243, 244, 245, 246, 253, 255,
265, 266–7, 271, 272 body(ies) of (see also three bodies)
21, 28, 222, 266 child, children, heirs, o›spring of
99, 125, 165, 174, 175 dhyåna of 129, 144, 162 disciples of 75, 101, 107, 159, 175,
181, 228, 271 eight forms of being of 83, 218 fundamental 11, 17, 19, 25, 26 hall 170, 178 heart- 80, 217, 218 image(s) 183, 225, 270 land 138, 186, 223 mind of 49, 61, 65, 212, 218 parinirvå√a of 84, 181, 216, 230,
235 protuberance on head of 78, 112,
217
relics of 62, 118, 172, 177
Ωala of 98, 153
Ωråvaka- 20, 26 statue(s) 81, 94, 212 teachings of 52, 75, 76, 77, 78,
79, 82, 85, 87, 90, 92, 93, 94,
96, 97, 98, 99, 100, 102, 108,
109–10, 112, 120, 122, 125,
126, 134, 142, 144, 157, 158,
165, 167, 168, 171, 175, 176,
178, 179, 180, 183, 186, 213,
216, 222, 223, 228 truth of 78, 144, 145 vehicle 159, 161, 163 words of 76, 88, 104, 153, 170,
171, 211
Buddhabhadra 194, 200, 204
Buddhabhalliya 200
Buddhacarita 235–6
Buddha-contemplation Samådhi
Sutra 108, 200
Buddhadatta 113, 222–3
Buddha-Dharma (see also Dharma)
39, 90, 97, 98, 100, 101, 103, 106,
108, 113, 116, 119, 137, 138, 144,
145, 156, 157, 172, 174, 175, 178,
179, 186, 189, 225, 230
Buddha, Dharma, and Sangha (see also three refuges; Three Treasures) 78, 91, 94, 97, 144, 155,
159, 215
Buddhahood 13, 14, 15, 17, 20, 26,
29, 36, 41, 213, 215, 230, 266
Buddhamitra 131
Buddhanandi 131
Buddha-nature 5, 13, 22, 41, 145,
230, 231, 234, 242, 243, 245, 246,
265, 266, 272, 274
Buddhas 6, 14, 15, 16, 17, 18, 20,
21, 22, 24, 25, 26, 32, 38, 39, 62,
73, 77, 78, 80, 89, 93, 94–5, 96,
97, 102, 109, 116, 126, 127, 129,
139, 157, 167, 172, 179, 213, 215, 216, 222, 223, 226, 243, 245, 255,
265, 266, 270, 271, 272, 273, 274 past seven 97, 129, 130, 136 Buddha-seal 245, 255
Buddhasm®ti 194, 201, 203
Buddha Tathågatas (see also
Tathågata) 126
Buddhatråta 202
Buddha Treasury Sutra 77, 90, 194 BuddhayaΩas 194, 203
Buddhism 5, 8, 26, 28, 29, 34, 42, 50,
54, 55, 63, 87, 102, 164, 174, 182,
183, 218, 220, 221, 242, 246, 260
Buddhist(s) 6, 7, 55, 94, 116, 176,
182, 184, 215, 220, 224, 225, 228,
235, 242, 261 historian(s), scholar(s) 49, 53,
128, 237, 242 mendicant(s), monk(s), nun(s) 47,
48, 51, 61, 94, 95, 176, 228, 237 practice(s) 52, 53, 65, 242, 259,
274
priests, teacher(s) 50, 52, 72 principles 266, 271 school(s) 51, 55, 121, 122, 133,
134, 220, 259 scripture(s), sutra(s), text(s), treatise(s) 54, 61, 66, 85, 145, 164,
173, 174, 178, 211, 215, 219 teaching(s) 20, 73, 99, 216
Buddhist Hybrid Sanskrit Dictionary 226
Buddhist Monastic Traditions of Southern Asia 164–5, 208
Bukkyo Dendo Kyokai 8
Bukkyo-g o-daijiten 218
Bukkyo-jiten 213, 218, 219, 220, 225
Bundles of Leaves Collected in the
Valley Mist 228
busshin-shi. See school of the Buddha’s mind
C
calligraphy 135, 229, 267 calming 86, 267
and contemplation (see also cessation, and contemplation) 173
Calming and Contemplation: Their
Meaning and Examples 85, 197,
218
Caodong sect (see also Soto sect) 51, 136 Caoqi 11 causal conditioning, causality 26,
140
cause(s) 37, 98, 160, 269
and conditions (see also causal
conditioning, causality) 244 Central Asia 199 certificate of ordination 49, 95,
135, 241 cessation 52, 117, 136
and contemplation (see also calm-
ing, and contemplation) 117–
18, 165 three kinds of 117–18, 140
chan (see also dyhåna; meditation;
zen) 55, 76, 128, 215, 216
Chanlinsi 88, 200
Chan master(s) 11, 133, 135, 232
Chanmenniansongji 232
Chan school (see also Zen school) 5,
6, 7, 8, 11, 23, 30, 32, 38, 39, 42,
47, 49, 51, 54, 55, 58, 62, 65, 72,
81, 87, 88, 100, 102, 107, 120,
121, 128, 129, 132–3, 135, 144,
145, 146, 148, 189, 190, 195, 203,
212, 214, 219, 220, 222, 223, 225,
228, 231, 232, 241, 246
Chan school (continued) East Mountain teaching 5 five sects of (see also Caodong sect; Fa yan sect; Linji sect; Weiyang sect; Yunmen sect) 136
Hongzhou school 7
Huanglong branch 47
Northern school 5, 219
Chan School Monastic Rules 76,
121, 129, 168, 169, 173, 193, 233,
235, 236 characteristic(s) 13, 14, 15, 16, 17,
20, 21, 23, 24, 25, 39, 42, 72, 101,
117, 118, 137, 139, 140, 141, 142,
143, 144, 145, 151, 165, 167, 185,
212, 222, 231, 234 of reality 71, 73, 124, 156
Chen dynasty 102, 128, 205
Chengdufu 176 Chengguan 215, 234 chengming 184, 237–8
Chiku Province 62
Chikuzen Province 49, 176
China 23, 30, 47, 48, 50, 51, 52, 53,
54, 56, 61, 62, 63, 72, 82, 83, 87,
88, 100, 102, 103, 121, 122, 123,
128, 129, 145, 176, 178, 180, 181,
183, 189, 196, 201, 202, 205, 218,
219, 220, 221, 225, 236, 238, 241,
242, 246, 253
Chinese 8, 52, 54, 55, 57, 132, 134,
150, 177, 182, 246, 259, 260, 261 language 54, 56, 57, 58, 61, 128,
193, 194, 195, 197, 217, 218,
229, 237, 247
Chinzei. See Kyushu
Chish o (see also Enchain) 82, 100,
102, 122, 129, 134, 142, 218 Ch ogen 66
CHonen 121, 225
Chronicles of Japan. See Nihonshohei
Chuanxin fayao. See Essentials of the Transmission of Mind
Chisei-zenke-no-shis o 56 Ci’en Ji 156, 207 cintåma√i. See wish-fulfilling gem
Cleary, J. C. 7, 200 Cleary, Thomas 248 clergy (see also monk; priest) 178 clinging 101, 116, 143, 270 clothes (see also robe) 176, 177, 267–7
Cockfoot Ridge 72, 214
Collected Writings for Unfolding
Meanings through Following the
Commentary 215
collection(s) 173, 174, 193, 206,
207, 214, 227, 228 of precepts 75, 76, 169, 215, 216 three, threefold, of teachings (see
also Tripi†aka) 73, 91, 99, 103,
164, 169
Collection of Passages from Various Scriptures on Mahayana Bodhisattva Practices, A 203
Collection of Passages on the Nembutsu Chosen in the Original Vow, A. See Senchaku Hongan
Nembutsu Shi
Collection of Records from the
Ancestral Mirrors 116–18, 144,
201, 221
Collection of the Chan Patriarchal
Hall 213, 221, 222 commentary(ies) (see also Ωåstra;
treatise) 86, 100, 115, 166, 187,
196, 197, 215, 218
Commentary on the Diamond Sutra
157, 207, 234
Commentary on the Diamond Sutra by the Dharmalak≈a√a School
156, 207, 234
Commentary on the Mahå vairo cana
Sutra 90, 104, 143, 156, 197–8,
230
Commentary on the Middle Treatise
123, 202 compassion 51, 96, 116, 127, 215,
270
great 15, 105, 112, 148, 163, 169,
175, 186, 274 concentration (see also discipline, concentration, and wisdom; morality, concentration, and wisdom; self-concentration) 110, 111, 112, 124, 125, 153, 155, 225,
261, 269, 270, 271–2, 273, 274 conceptual, conceptualization 5, 6,
15, 16, 18, 20, 31, 32, 33, 39, 245,
272
condition(s) (see also causal conditioning; causes, and conditions) 5, 11, 13, 52, 83, 96, 116, 147,
149, 184, 244, 265, 266, 268, 274 conditioned 155
dharmas 38, 40
confidence (see also faith) 49, 75,
94, 107, 109, 116, 117, 137, 143,
154, 155, 156, 157, 171, 182, 224,
230, 234 Confucian 72 confusion (see also ignorance) 31,
32, 82, 121, 253 consciousness(es) 19, 20, 141, 253,
269 discriminating, discriminative
140, 272 ego 122, 141, 144, 148 perceptive 122, 141, 144, 148 six 19, 28
consecration 63 construction projects 260, 269 contemplation (see also calming, and contemplation; cessation, and contemplation) 26, 63, 86, 87, 115, 117–18, 119, 139, 140,
149, 155, 165, 173, 212, 224, 271
Contemplation Sutra 173, 209
Continued Biographies of Eminent
Monks 220, 221
Cook, Francis H. 206, 247 Cross, Chodo 248 cross-legged position 148, 254 Ci∂apanthaka 154
cultivation (see also self-cultivation) 6, 13, 14, 16, 19, 26, 130,
150, 153, 154, 160, 171, 181, 253 and verification 243–4, 245, 246,
253, 254, 255
Cunda-Karmåraputra 233
D
Dacisi (see also Chanlinsi) 88, 177
Dahui Zonggao 206, 238
Dai’anji 88, 219 Daibutsuji 242 daihosshi 50, 54, 71 Daikui 233 Daisen 62 dåna (see also six perfections) 156 Daoist 94
Daosheng 182, 237
Daosui 220
Daowu Yuanzhi 232
Daoxin 132, 222
Daoxuan 88, 121, 128, 158, 202,
219, 220, 221, 236, 237
Daoyuan. See Dogen Daozui 220 darkness 14, 140 Daruma school 48, 49, 52, 118 de Bary, William Theodore 57 defilement 52, 61, 77, 140, 183 deity(ies) 61, 62, 79, 94, 100, 227 delusion, delusional 17, 22, 27, 32, 39, 120, 133, 165, 243, 265, 266,
271, 272 demon(s), demonic (see also råk ≈asa) 83, 104, 105, 217, 221, 270
Demonstration of Consciousness Only 142, 206, 212
Dengy o (see also Saich o) 88, 100,
102, 107, 108, 109, 127, 128, 134,
197, 200, 219
Dengy o Daishi Zenshu 197, 200
Denk oroku 260
Denshin h oy o—EnRyoroku 8
dependent origination 228, 244, 245, 271
Deshan Xuanjian 232, 233 Deshao 87, 88, 219 desire(s) 62, 94, 110, 137, 171, 243,
245, 269 five 175, 267 world of 126, 223
detachment (see also nonattach-
ment) 20, 27
deva(s) (see also god) 105 Devadatta 154, 161, 235 devil(s) 125, 162, 166, 168 devotion 259 dharma(s) 6, 11, 13, 14, 16, 17, 18,
19, 20, 22, 23, 24, 25, 26, 28, 30,
36, 38, 39, 213, 244, 266, 275 conditioned 38, 40 nature of 23, 143
Dharma (see also Buddha-Dharma;
Buddha, Dharma, and Sangha;
One Dharma; True Dharma) 14,
15, 16, 18, 20, 22, 23, 27, 28, 29,
30, 33, 34, 35, 39, 40, 41, 71, 73,
86, 88, 93, 103, 106, 121, 128,
131–2, 135, 136, 144, 145, 148,
156, 157, 159, 164, 170, 171, 172,
178, 184, 189, 190, 216, 218, 221,
227, 228, 230, 231, 232, 234, 241,
245, 246, 247, 270, 272 eye of 130, 227, 274 final period of 38 gate 254 heir 232, 233, 238 meetings, three 73, 215 robe(s) 49, 72, 171 seat 29 talk 237 transmission 88, 131–2, 134,
136, 137, 212, 228 wheel of 110, 156, 213, 218, 243,
272
Dharma body(ies) (see also three bodies) 21, 28, 38, 40, 146, 157,
223, 231 dharmadhåtu 25, 71, 212 dharmakåya. See Dharma body Dharmak≈ema 194, 237
Dharma master(s) 101, 115, 119
Dharmamitra 200
Dharmanandiya 209
Dharma-nature 26
Dharmarak≈a 195
Dharmaruci 208
Dharmasaµgraha 226
DharmaΩra 235 dharmatå. See characteristics, of
reality
Dharmatråta 235
DharmayaΩas 197 Dhatika 131 dhyåna (see also chan; meditation; zen) 6, 53, 55, 65, 76, 111, 112, 115, 120, 121, 122, 124, 125, 128, 129, 142, 143, 144, 148, 149, 151,
153, 154, 156, 157, 158, 160, 162,
163, 167, 170, 171, 183–4, 186,
216, 224, 235, 243, 245 four stages of 126 nondiscrimination 121, 138, 225,
230 worldly 121, 166
Dhyåna master(s) 101, 115, 119,
200
dialogue(s) 6, 7, 37, 274 Dialogue on the Contemplation-
Extinction, A 222 diamond seat 134, 178, 179, 272 Diamond Sutra 95, 101, 109, 134,
138, 156, 198, 212 dignity 99, 128, 177, 179, 181, 182, 270
Dapaµkara 17, 33, 227 disciple(s) 6, 12, 40, 49, 51, 53, 69,
72, 91, 97, 101, 107, 108, 130,
139, 159, 166, 167, 168, 171, 173,
175, 181, 182, 207, 211, 213, 219,
223, 227, 228, 231, 236, 241, 246,
259, 269, 271 seven groups of 75–6
discipline (see also monastic, discipline) 6, 261, 271, 272
discipline, concentration, and wis-
dom (see also Ωala, samådhi, and prajñå) 271, 272
Discourse on the Universal Recommendation of True Zazen. See
Fukan-zazen-gi no Hanashi discriminating, discrimination(s)
17, 20, 33, 36, 90, 117, 119, 138,
139, 140, 141, 151, 157, 183, 185,
214, 243, 245, 254, 266, 272 disputation 93 distraction(s) 254, 261, 267, 269,
274
doctrine(s) 5, 34, 101, 102, 261, 271 dog 26, 32, 108, 147, 274 Dogen, Eihei 51, 53, 207, 241–3,
244, 246, 247, 251, 259, 260, 261,
262
“Dogen’s Fukanzazengi and Sh ob ogenz o Zazengi” 248
Dogen’s Manuals of Zen Meditation
247 dogma 93, 107, 122, 137, 144 D ojiji 259
D okokuji 260
Dongjing 176, 236 Dongshan Lianjia 233 doubt(s) 19, 55, 75, 82, 84, 117, 127,
255
dragon(s) 62, 148, 170, 177, 254, 255 drowsiness 273–4 dualistic, dualism, duality(ies) 5, 117, 123, 261
Duanji (see also Huangbo Xiyun)
6, 9, 42
Dumoulin, Heinrich 248 Dunhuang 222
dust 5, 11, 33, 129, 154, 253, 255, 265
E
Eagle Promontory 11 earth 23, 39, 42, 71, 179, 182, 221, 234, 253, 255, 265, 274
Eastern Buddhist, The 248
Eastern Jin dynasty (see also Jin dynasty) 209, 237
Echizen Province 242, 259 Edgerton, Franklin 226 resort(s) 8, 17, 18, 19, 22, 33, 37, 38, 39, 40, 42, 49, 85, 91, 124,
148, 156, 168, 174, 186, 270 ego 6
consciousness 122, 141, 144, 148 ego (continued)
-thought 112, 214
-view 118 Eich o 66 eighteen realms 19, 28–9 eight rules of respect 92 eight schools. See school(s), eight eight stupas 63, 134, 177 eight treasuries 71, 108, 143, 169, 213, 222
Eiheiji 242, 259, 260
Eisai, Myoan 47–8, 49–54, 55, 56,
57, 58, 59, 61, 71, 88, 95, 106,
128, 132, 133, 136, 180, 189, 190,
202, 209, 211, 212, 215, 216, 217,
218, 220, 221, 225, 226, 227, 228,
229, 230, 231, 232, 233, 234, 236,
237, 238, 241
“Eisai: Preface to K ozen gokoku ron” 57
Ej o 53, 259, 260
Elucidatory Comments 52, 84–5,
115, 196, 218 emptiness 15, 21, 27, 28, 33, 72, 79,
84, 117, 118, 119, 120, 139, 140,
148, 155, 160, 164, 166, 167, 265 attachment to, ill-attached to 73,
115, 116, 118, 120 eighteenfold 86 fixed views on 49, 84, 118, 119 knowledge of (see also prajñå) 51, 71, 78, 79, 83, 89, 90, 92, 93, 98,
126, 139, 156, 185, 186, 212 twofold, of self and dharmas 274
Enchain (see also Chish o) 129, 196,
199, 218 En’in 182 enlightenment (see also awakening; bodhi) 8, 3, 15, 16, 18, 19, 20, 23, 24, 27, 29–30, 32, 33, 38, 39,
41, 253, 265, 266, 270, 271, 272,
273, 274 equivalent 25, 35 gradual 259 place of (see also awakening, seat
of; bodhi maöa) 18
spontaneous 260 sudden 259 wondrous 25, 29
Enlightenment Unfolds: The Essential Teaching of Zen Master
Dogen 249
Enni Bennen 53
Ennin (see also Jikaku) 128, 218,
221, 230 Enryakuji 218, 220 entrustment 49, 99, 100 eon(s) (see also kalpa) 13, 14, 16,
17, 18, 19, 26, 42, 73, 215 three immeasurable 17, 20
esoteric 63, 66, 100, 218, 220, 221,
271
rite(s) 61, 65 teaching(s) 47, 91, 102, 196, 222,
259
essence 15, 212, 243, 244, 255, 270
of the Dharma 14, 136 fundamental 17, 39 of the mind 5, 11, 14
Essentials for Chan Practice 111,
153, 200
Essentials of the Single Vehicle
182, 210, 237
Essentials of the Transmission of
Mind 1–42, 229–30
Essential Understanding of
Dhyåna Practice, An 149, 207
evil(s) 16, 25, 41, 53, 73, 79, 81, 84,
85, 86, 89, 94, 97, 104, 105, 110,
111, 112, 119, 126, 133, 157, 158, 163, 174, 181, 184, 238, 265, 267,
270, 271, 272 acts 125–6 enticements, twelve 126 modes of existence 93, 110, 125,
160, 161 path(s) 125, 126, 225
excommunication 76 existence 94, 105, 110, 141, 150,
159, 160, 162, 173, 241, 244, 246 six mode(s) of 23, 26 three evil modes of (see also
paths, three evil) 93, 125, 161,
163
exoteric 63, 66, 102, 218, 221, 259 expediency, expedient 85, 91
Exposition of the Ten Stages 160, 208
Extensive Record of Great Master
Xuansha Zongyi of Fuzhou
230–1
extinction 19, 24, 38, 77, 78, 85,
103, 107, 108, 133, 141, 143, 165,
181, 267 of supering 85, 93
eye(s) 28, 37, 38, 82, 83, 118, 148,
150, 155, 161, 162, 180, 229, 246,
254, 265, 270, 273, 274 awakened, of awakening 83, 150,
185 of the Dharma 130, 227, 274 discerning, of discernment 119,
147
five, fivefold 19, 94 and treasury of the (True)
Dharma 71, 132, 136, 212 of wisdom 164, 171, 272
Eye and Treasury of the True
Dharma (see also Sh ob ogenz o)
146, 147, 206, 231, 247, 260
F
face 32, 41, 72, 118, 234 and mirror 36–7 original 253, 265
faith(s) (see also confidence) 26, 29,
120, 176, 178, 225, 259 ten 16
Fajian 12
Faju 207
Fali 207
Farong 107, 221–2
Fauré, Bernard 259
Faxian 194, 222, 223, 237
Faxiang school (see also Hoss o school) 230
Fayan 72
Fayan sect 87, 136 Fazhong 201 fear 19, 20, 25, 267 Fengxue Yanzhao 132
Fengyang Shanzhao 132
Fifth Patriarch of Chan. See Hongren
Finest Style Excerpts. See Hyaku ren sh o
five five hundred-year period(s) 78,
82, 84, 88, 89, 109, 129, 140, 180,
216
five skandhas 19, 24, 266 Five Tathågatas 217
Flower Ornament Sutra 137, 204,
215
Foguo Weibai 203 Fohai Huiyuan 189, 190, 238 food(s) 107, 118, 154, 170, 216, 268
Foreword to the Bodhisattvas’
Moral Precepts 225
Foreword to the Brahmå Net Sutra
124, 127, 202, 225
form(s) 22, 25, 28, 38, 50, 54, 55,
83, 84, 86, 89, 116, 117, 130, 138,
139, 160, 167, 218, 219, 221, 243,
244, 245, 255, 265, 266, 268, 272 and emptiness 265 and norm(s) 243, 244, 245 world of 223
formless 52, 140, 157, 271, 272 four attainments (see also four fruits) 91, 92, 105, 221
four basic postures (see also walk-
ing, standing, sitting, and lying down) 108, 129
four destroyers 112 four elements 19, 24, 148, 266 four fruits (see also four attainments) 38, 154, 155
four kinds of sangha members (see
also layman; laywoman; monk; nun) 78, 85, 97, 98, 113
Four Noble Truths 182, 224
Fourth Patriarch of Chan. See
Daoxin
four trees 71, 213 Fozhao Deguang 49, 238 Fu 145, 231–2
Fujiwara Motofusa 241
Fukakusa 51
Fukanzazengi. See Universal Recommendation of True Zazen, A
Fukan-zazen-gi no Hanashi 247
Fukui Prefecture 242, 259 Fukuoka Prefecture 211 function(s), functioning 23, 42, 90, 119, 171, 244, 245, 255, 266 Fush o 219
G
Ganges River 13, 14, 15, 39, 71, 95,
103, 132, 154
Gao’an County 11
gate(s) 41, 61, 63, 64, 65, 66, 73,
134, 144, 148, 150, 156, 163, 164,
168, 229, 233, 254, 266, 267, 271
GayåΩa†a 131 Genealogy 88, 100, 134, 197, 220 generation 31, 165
and extinction 19, 24, 38, 133, 141
Genji clan 48
Genj ok oan 246
Genkoshakusho 49, 53, 56
Genshin 210, 237
Gen’yi 66
Glassman, Bernard Tetsugen 248 god(s) (see also deva) 15, 105, 118,
156, 169, 172, 179, 182, 213, 215,
217
Godai-in 221 goddesses 217 Gofukakusa, Emperor 48 Gokurakuji 241 goma ceremony. See overing, burnt good, goodness 16, 27, 41, 104, 109,
113, 119, 181, 183, 253, 265, 267,
270, 271, 272 acts 109, 215 roots 26
Gort, Harry 248
Gotoba, Emperor 47, 48, 63
Great Buddha Temple. See Dai butsuji
Great Calming and Contemplation
92, 109, 110, 111, 115, 119–20,
124–5, 140, 143, 160–1, 162,
165, 183, 198, 211, 224, 235
Great Dharma Torch Dhåra√a Sutra 78, 112–13, 195
Great Heap of Jewels Sutra (see also Heap of Jewels Sutra) 184
Great Matter 146, 274
Great Root Sutra 226
Great Song. See Song dynasty
Great Tang. See Tang dynasty
Great Tang Dynasty Record of the Western Regions 95, 178, 198–
9, 214
Great Vehicle (see also Mahayana)
29, 91, 109, 111, 112, 158, 159,
162, 164, 166, 167, 168, 169, 222,
242
greed 20, 267, 268 greed, anger, and delusion (see also
three poisons) 92, 165
group of six 105, 181 Guanding 198, 201
Guangfu 131, 176, 228
Guanghuisi 133
Guangtangsi 12
Guacharo 57, 204
Gu√avarman 206
Guoqing Temple 177, 237
Gy ohy o 88, 102, 128, 219 Gy oyi 66
H
Hakata 62, 133, 176, 189, 236, 238
Hakozaki 49
Hakozaki Shrine 238
Hanazono University 58 Hansheng 229 harmony 174, 243, 244, 271 Hashimoto, Ek o 247
Heap of Jewels Sutra (see also Great
Heap of Jewels Sutra) 137–8, 204 Heart Sutra 219
heaven(s) 14, 63, 66, 71, 160, 179,
253, 255, 265, 274 four 14 Hedong 9 hell(s) 38, 103, 162, 235 realm of 161, 225
Heng-ching Shih 195
Henj o 221
heresy 24
Himålayas 181, 221
Hinayana, Hinayanists (see also
Small Vehicle) 24, 26, 29, 38,
109, 228 hindrance(s) 97, 100, 111, 116, 120 hishiRyo. See non-thinking Hisoji 219
History of Japanese Buddhism. See
NihonBukkyoshi
H oj o. See Pengcheng, king of
H oki Province 62
H oky oji 260
H oky oki 261
Honen 50–1, 242 Hongren 5, 132 honsh o my oshu. See practice-in-
realization
H orinden-yakuchi 212 Hossh oji 66
Hoss o school (see also Faxiang school) 55, 220, 231
householder(s) (see also laity; lay -
people) 75, 227
How to Raise an Ox 247
Huaichang 135, 150 Huai River 119, 120
Huangbo Xiyun (see also Duanji)
6–7, 11, 12, 132, 229–30, 232
Huanglong Huinan 130, 133
Huang River 119, 120
Huayan school (see also Kegon school) 7, 230, 234
Huayansi 234
Huijiao 237
Huike 128, 132
Huiming 40–1
Huineng (see also Sixth Patriarch of Chan) 5, 40–1, 132, 230
Huitang Zuxin 133
Huizhao 157, 207, 234
Huizhi 200 Huizong 94 hungry ghost(s) 77 realm of 161, 225 Hyakurensho 48, 49 I
icchantikas 26, 234, 237 Ichij oshikan-in 220 Iga Province 182 ignorance (see also confusion) 82,
87, 175, 181, 267, 274 illumination (see also self-illumina-
tion) 5, 11 illusion(s) 61 impermanence 155, 228, 241, 261, 269, 271 Inagaki, Hisao 209 incarnation 64 incense 80, 135, 150, 155, 170, 270, 272, 275
India 62, 63, 64, 72, 83, 88, 95, 96, 97, 100, 103, 128, 134, 135, 176,
177, 178, 179, 180, 183, 214, 255 Central 95, 100, 181 five parts of 95, 99 Northern 200
Indra(s) 15, 217 net of 247
inka. See certificate of ordination Inscription on the Confident Mind 232
Instructions and Admonitions on
Observing Restraints 121, 158–
9, 202 intention(s), intentionality 5, 25,
105, 119, 123, 133 interpretations 21, 23, 29, 31, 32,
33, 34, 266 conceptual, conceptualized 6, 18,
20, 31, 32, 33, 39
of texts 7, 8, 52, 109, 218, 247
Introduction to Fukanzazengi 248
Invitation of Bodhisattva Avalo kiteΩ vara 173, 209
Iriya, Yoshitaka 8, 58
Ishikawa Prefecture 259
J
Jain 150
Jakuen 259, 260
Jambudvapa 157
Japan 47, 48, 49, 50, 51, 52, 55, 56,
71, 72, 83, 87, 88, 89, 97, 100,
102, 122, 128, 133, 134, 135, 149,
150, 176, 178, 180, 181, 182, 189,
211, 215, 216, 219, 220, 225, 231,
237, 241, 242, 247
Japanese 49, 50, 51, 52, 53, 54, 55,
101, 102, 134, 242, 259 Buddhism 54, 242 history 48, 260 language 8, 56, 57, 58, 193, 211,
212, 217, 247, 248, 260
Jayanta 131 Jetavana 82, 168, 236, 253 jijiyu zammai. See samådhi, selffulfilling
Jikaku (see also Ennin) 82, 128, 218
Jin dynasty (see also Eastern Jin dynasty; Western Jin dynasty)
204, 207
Jingangku cave 234
Jingde Records of Transmission of the Lamp 147, 207, 219, 221,
228, 232
Jinlin. See Sumatra
Jizang 202, 212
Jñånabhadra 202
Jñånagupta 195, 209
J odo. See Pure Land school Johnston, E. H. 236
J ojitsu school 55, 220
Jones, J. J. 227
Jueguanlun 222
Juzhi 246
K
Kaifeng. See Dongjing
Kaiyuan Buddhist Text Catalogue
226
Kaiyuansi 11 Kakuan 53
Kakuben 182 KålayaΩas 209, 226 kalpa(s) (see also eon) 116, 125,
163, 222, 223, 226, 227 as numerous as dust particles
129 auspicious 130, 226 lunar-mansion 215, 226 of supernal manifestations 129,
226 kåmadhåtu. See world, of desire Kamakura 48, 53, 54, 55 Kamo River 47, 65
Kå√adeva 131
Kanmu, Emperor 220
Kannond ori-in 241 Kapilavastu 179 Kapimala 131 karma(s) 158, 189, 243, 244 karmic 17, 244, 267, 274 ka≈åya. See robe, ka≈åya KåΩyapa (see also MahåkåΩyapa)
27, 29, 41, 98, 99, 101, 103, 130,
132, 223, 227, 246
KåΩyapa-Måtaçga 102, 195, 220
Kawagishi, K oshin 248
Kaya clan 61
Keenan, John P. 205 Keene, Donald 57 Kegon school (see also Huayan school) 55, 66, 212, 219, 220,
230, 234
Keizangoroku 260
Keizan J okin 259–62, 263
Keizanshingi 260
Keizan’s Monastic Rules. See
Keizanshingi
Keizan’s Recorded Sayings. See Keizangoroku
Kench oji 53 Kennett, Jiyu 248
Kenninji 47, 48, 51, 53, 55, 56, 69,
191, 241 kensh o. See enlightenment, spontaneous
kesa (see also robe, kaŌya) 273 Kibitsu Shrine 61 Kimura, Toshihiko 217 king(s) (see also monarch, sover-
eign) 33, 38, 78, 84, 96, 97, 107,
216, 219, 220, 223 of hell. See Yama of India 97 of Pengcheng. See Pengcheng,
king of
of Qin. See Qin, king of samådhi 165, 266, 271
Kinkara 207, 209 KissaYojoki 57 knowledge 32, 33, 79, 89, 168, 224,
255 conceptual 15 discriminative 266 of emptiness (see also prajñå) 51,
71, 78, 79, 83, 89, 90, 91, 92, 93,
98, 126, 139, 156, 185, 186, 212 k oan(s) 206, 259, 274 K oben 66
K ob o Daishi. See Kikai Koga Michichika 241 Koho Toshun 55–6, 69, 191, 220, 230
Kojiki 211
K oj o 203
K okei 182
Kokubunji 219
Konakamuni 130
Kond o, Tessh o 50
Kong obuji 220
Konponchido. See Ichijoshikanin
Korea 72, 87, 122, 213, 232 K orei, Emperor 61, 211
K oshi 228
Koun Ej o. See Ej o
K ozanji 66
K ozengokokuron. See Treatise on Letting Zen Flourish to Protect the State, A
Krakucchanda 130 Kroñcaratna 131 k≈ånti (see also six perfections) 156
K≈itigarbha 141
Kikai 175, 209, 230
Kumårajava 106, 193, 194, 196,
198, 199, 200, 204, 207, 208, 212,
237
Kumåralåta 131
Kunlun 176
Kusha school 55, 102, 220
KuΩinagara 222
Kyoto 47, 48, 50, 51, 53, 55, 56, 63,
65, 66, 220, 241, 242 Kyien Ryochin 69
Kyushu 48, 49, 133, 176, 189, 211,
229, 238
L
laity (see also lay; layman; laypeo-
ple; laywoman) 178 Land of Bliss 222, 238
Laçkåvatåra-sitra 55, 57, 138, 151, 204, 211, 212, 214, 225, 230
Lanxi Daolong 53
Laozi 123
Large Collection Sutra 216 Later Han dynasty 128 latter-day world 52, 73, 84, 85, 86,
87, 89, 92, 103, 105, 106, 107,
108, 109, 136, 143, 153, 165, 174,
180, 184, 216 lay (see also laity) 72, 159, 169,
174, 181, 182, 211, 216, 233 layman, laymen 75, 78, 97, 128,
182, 261 laypeople 73, 87, 178, 216 laywoman, laywomen 75, 78, 97, 168
Lecture on the Wholehearted Practice of the Way. See Bend owa
letters (see also phrases; words) 108, 119, 137, 144, 191
Liang Catalogue 226
Liang dynasty (see also Northern
Liang dynasty) 102, 121, 123,
131, 142, 201, 206, 226, 228 Liaodong 238 liberation 14, 16, 83, 140, 141, 148,
165, 213, 215, 216, 225, 235, 236,
253
Li Dezhao 62, 133, 176 lightning 40, 255 Lin’anfu 134, 189 lineage(s) 57, 75, 88, 100, 129, 130, 132, 134, 136, 137, 226, 260
Lingsu 94
Lingyin Temple 189
Linji lu. See Recorded Sayings of Linji
Linji sect, school (see also Rinzai school) 7, 47, 135, 136, 241
Huanglong branch of 47, 132 Linji Yixuan 7, 73, 132, 246 Linyuan Weiqing 133
Li Rongxi 199, 208 Liu Song dynasty 194, 200, 226 living being(s) (see also being; sentient being) 79, 92, 93, 106, 109, 110, 116, 119, 123, 126, 127, 129,
136, 141, 142, 144, 148, 153, 155,
157, 162, 164, 169, 172, 173, 175,
185, 186 Lizhou 176, 237 location 15, 21, 25–6, 30, 32 Longer Records of the Buddha’s
Words 129–30, 203, 226
Longtan Chongxin 233
Longxingsi 11 Lotus assembly 24 lotus flower(s) 218, 227 Lotus Sutra 62, 84, 85, 86–7, 90, 92,
103, 109, 124, 128, 139, 163, 166,
172, 173, 175, 196, 212–13, 219 Louyao 64
Luoshan Daoxian 146, 147, 232 Luoyang 72, 132, 220, 228 Lushan 237 Lushang. See Taigong Wan lust 15, 27, 125, 130, 163
M
Maezumi, Taizen 248 Magadha 178, 214
Mahåkåla 217
MahåkåΩyapa (see also KåΩyapa)
72, 130, 131, 136, 212, 213, 214,
227
Mahåparinirvå√a Sutra 52, 76–7,
84–5, 87, 98, 99, 105, 109, 110,
111, 113, 125, 139, 140, 145, 158,
159, 160, 161, 162, 166, 168, 172,
182, 194, 212, 214, 219, 221, 222,
230, 233, 234, 235
Mahåprajåpata 214 Mahåprajñåpåramitå Sutra (see also Prajñåpåramitå Sutra) 78, 83–4, 86, 87, 89–90, 93, 108,
109, 110–11, 113, 125, 138, 172,
179, 180, 185–6, 195, 230
Mahåprajñåpåramitå Treatise 75,
82, 92, 103, 104–5, 109, 139,
140, 150–1, 154, 156, 183, 193,
212, 237 Mahåsåµghika Vinaya 77, 194, 236 mahåsattva 186 Mahåsthåmapråpta 15
Mahåvaibhå≈å-Ωåstra 61
Mahåvairocanåbhisaµbodhivikur vitådh≈†hånavaipulyasitrendra råjadharmaparyåya 198
Mahåvairocana Sutra 139–40,
204–5, 230
Mahåvastu 226, 227
Mahåvastu, The 227
Mahayana (see also Great Vehicle)
26, 29, 32, 39, 84, 85, 119, 122,
123, 211, 212, 215, 216, 220, 228,
233, 234, 235, 242
MaheΩvara 118 Maitreya 73, 185, 206, 214–15 ma√∂ala 63, 100 Ma√∂aråsana 201
MañjuΩra 15, 91, 157, 167, 177, 246
MañjuΩra Inquiry Sutra 91, 141, 198 Manorhita 131 mantra(s) 51, 63, 80–1, 153, 173,
217 heart- 217–18 “white umbrella” 80, 217
Mantra school (see also Shingon school) 90, 104, 139, 156
mapp o (see also latter-day world) 52, 216
Måra 24, 38, 39
måras. See four destroyers master(s) (see also Chan master; Dharma master; Dhyåna master; Vinaya master; Zen master) 13, 19, 23, 25, 30–2, 34–5, 36– 7, 40–2, 53, 61–7, 69, 72, 82, 88,
100, 101, 104, 107, 115, 119, 120,
123, 125, 126, 130, 131, 134, 147,
148, 150, 173, 177, 181, 189–90,
213, 219, 221, 222, 233, 235, 236,
245, 246–7
Master Dogen’s Sh ob ogenz o 248
Masunaga, Reih o 248
Matters of Discipline with the Original Advocates of the Existence of All. See Mila sarvåsti våda- vinaya vastu
“Matters of Disunion in the
Sangha.” See Saçghabhedavastu
Maudgalyåyana 107
Mazu Daoyi 6, 7, 132, 231, 260 McRae, John R. 199 measurement marks on the beam,
metaphor of 147, 232
medicine(s) 33, 39, 147 meditation (see also dhyåna) 22, 23,
53, 55, 150, 215, 235, 241, 243,
245, 253, 254, 259, 268, 269 cushion 261, 270 pure (see also shikantaza) 244,
245
seated (see also sitting; zazen) 6,
111, 143, 243, 265 walking 261, 274
meditation, concentration, and
wisdom 261–2 Megha 227
Meiji, Emperor 260
Memoirs of the H oky o Period. See
H oky oki
mendicant(s) (see also monk) 75,
78, 81, 87, 181, 213, 218, 227,
228, 237, 268 mental 27, 119, 245, 274
activity(ies) 6 calculation 25 discrimination(s) 266, 272 distractions 261 disturbances 267, 269 fabrication(s) 245
merit(s) 13, 22, 27, 87, 99, 103,
104, 109, 124, 154, 163, 173, 185,
245, 270 field(s) of 107, 121, 169
merit transference 75, 185–6
Methods for the Wholehearted Practice of the Way. See Bend oh o
Miaole (see also Zhanran) 89, 197,
218 middle (see also Middle Way) 117, 224
Middle Treatise 84, 100, 109, 140,
196
Middle Way 86, 160, 165, 166 midland (see also India) 179 Mii Temple 61
Minamoto Sanetomo 48 Minamoto Yoriiye 48 mind (see also Mind; no-mind; One
Mind) 5, 6, 13–29, 32–3, 34–8,
39, 40, 41, 49, 61, 65, 71, 73, 81,
84, 90, 92, 98, 101, 104, 108, 111,
112, 120, 121, 122, 126, 137, 138, 139, 141, 142, 143, 144, 147, 148, 149, 153, 154, 156, 157, 158, 162, 163, 165, 171, 175, 185, 186, 189, 212, 213, 214, 217, 218, 223, 224, 226, 227, 229, 230, 233, 234, 241,
243, 244, 145, 146, 153, 160, 261,
265, 266, 267, 268, 269–70, 271,
274
essence of 5, 11, 14 fundamental 18, 19, 23, 26, 29 fundamentally pure 17, 23 of the Mahayana 32, 235 nature of (see also mind-nature)
22, 137, 223 of nirvana 71, 130, 136, 212 oneness of 134, 229 ordinary 34, 212, 230 primordial 265, 266, 267, 271 and realms 21, 22, 24, 25, 26,
36–7
sagely 34 seal of (see also mind-seal) 27–8,
65, 129, 130, 137, 226 that abides nowhere 134, 138 transmission of 35–6, 102, 142,
223, 226 true 24, 25, 116 truth of 37, 40, 72, 134, 186, 213
Mind (see also One Mind) 71, 102,
116, 149, 158, 183, 212 mind-ground 21, 23 mind-nature (see also mind, nature
of) 24, 36
mind-only 266 mind-seal (see also mind, seal of; One Mind, seal of) 12, 253
Ming’an. See Eisai, Myoan
Ming dynasty 56, 69
Mingxun 200
Mingzhou 62, 133 minister(s) 78, 79, 94, 98, 120, 174, 216, 241
Miscellaneous Talks. See Sh ob ogenz o zuimonki. MiΩraka 131 monarch(s) 77, 79, 94–5, 97, 98,
99, 112, 120, 122, 125, 178 monastery(ies) 64, 66, 96, 97, 269 monastic(s) 211, 216, 259 activities 168, 170, 171 discipline (see also vinaya) 72,
75, 76, 111, 214 precepts (see also Ωala) 89, 109,
215, 216, 235 rules 99, 176, 223 Mongols 63 monk(s) (see also bhik≈u; mendicant; priest) 7, 31, 32, 40, 41, 47, 48, 49, 51, 52, 61, 62, 64, 75, 77,
78, 88, 94, 95, 96, 97, 133, 136, 145, 154–5, 155–6, 158, 164,
170–1, 173, 174, 176–7, 177–8,
181, 182, 189, 211, 213, 215, 216,
218, 219, 220, 222, 223, 228, 229,
234, 235, 236, 246–7, 259, 260,
261, 263, 268, 269, 272 monkey, parable of 149 Monumenta Nipponica 248
moon 71, 98, 137, 157, 158, 179,
224, 233, 265, 266 moral 50, 53, 76, 149, 169
conduct (see also Ωala) 76, 77, 79,
85, 121 precepts (see also Ωala; vinaya)
78, 85, 98, 99, 108, 109, 111,
124, 125, 127, 149, 211 morality (see also Ωala; vinaya) 49,
51, 52, 80, 81, 85, 98, 99, 103,
109, 110, 111, 112, 124, 125, 126,
149, 153, 156, 158, 159, 160, 169,
171, 182, 213, 225 support for 85–6, 158, 159, 214,
234 morality, concentration, and wisdom (see also morality, meditation, and wisdom; Ωala, samådhi, and prajñå) 225
morality, meditation, and wisdom (see also morality, concentration, and wisdom; Ωala, samådhi, and prajñå) 22, 53 Mount Dayu 178
Mount Dongye 178
Mount Emei 182
Mount G®dhraki†a. See Vulture
Peak
Mount Hiei 49, 61, 66, 73, 88, 100,
101, 134, 210, 218, 219, 220, 221,
228, 241, 259, 260
Mount Huangbo 11, 12, 42
Mount K oya 175, 220
Mount Kukku†apåda. See Cockfoot
Ridge
Mount Nichi o 61
Mount Niutou 72, 88, 107, 128
Mount Penglai 238
Mount Qingliang 177
Mount Song 128, 132
Mount Sumeru 86, 118, 274
Mount Tianlong 65
Mount Tiantai 62, 63, 65, 71, 88,
128
Mount Tianton 64 Mount Yuwang 49, 62, 177 moxibustion 147, 163 Mu, King 88, 220
Milamadhyamakakårikå 196
Milasarvåstivådavinayavastu 235
Muromachi period 56 Muzhou Daozon 232 DoMyozen 51, 66, 241
N
någa(s) 105, 160, 162
Någårjuna 103, 131, 150, 196,
208, 246, 265
Nakamura, Hajime 218, 219, 225 Nålandå 64, 177, 227 name(s) (see also letters; words)
13, 15, 32, 102, 121, 144, 145 nameless 265
Nandivardhana 222
Nans o Ryosaku 56, 69
Nanyuan Huiyong 132
Nanyue Huairang 132, 136, 140
Nanyue Huisi 103, 128, 181, 210
Nara 66, 88, 128, 212, 219, 220,
225
Nara period 220
Nåråya√a 217 NarendrayaΩas 204, 205, 210 nature (see also self-nature) 15, 22,
25, 116, 141, 181, 185, 215, 217,
224, 231, 255 awakened 152 awareness 21 of dharmas 23, 143 essential 15 fundamental 23 mind-, of mind 24, 36, 137, 212,
213, 223, 265 nirvana 22 original 116, 120, 137, 212, 213,
223 pure 23 of reality 216 samådhi 122
of space 14 true 23, 216, 244, 265 ultimate 140 wind- 246–7 Needle of Zazen. See Zazenshin nembutsu 50, 118, 122, 184, 224, 237–8, 272
Nembutsu school (see also Pure
Land school) 122, 225 nianfo. See nembutsu Nichiren 242
Nichiren school 242
Nie Chengyuan 201
NihonBukkyoshi 50, 53 Nihonshis otaikei 224 Nihonshohei 211 nirmå√akåya. See transformation body
nirvana 20, 21, 22, 52, 72, 80, 85,
86, 93, 110, 125, 139, 144, 154,
158, 159, 211, 214, 216, 218, 223,
234, 245 mind of 71, 130, 136, 212
Nirvana Sutra 237
Nishijima, Gudo 248 Nitt oguh ojunreik oki 218 no-birth 165, 190 no-cultivation 130 no-dispute 92, 93 no-form, world of. See world, of noform
no-mind 15, 16, 17, 18, 19, 22, 39,
142, 144, 212, 229 non-action 271 nonattachment (see also detach-
ment) 20
nonbeing 13, 23, 30, 38 non-Buddhist(s) 83, 85, 95, 167,
168, 216, 235, 270 nondiscrimination dhyåna 121, 138, 225, 230 wisdom 149
nondiscrimination 214 nondual, nonduality 142, 226, 232,
271 nonexistence 141, 150 Nonin 48, 49–50, 52–3, 238 non-realization 271 nonseeking 20 non-thinking 261, 273 no-practice 80 Northern Liang dynasty (see also
Liang dynasty) 201, 205
Northern Qi dynasty 204, 205
Northern Song dynasty (see also Song dynasty) 203, 236
“Notes on Taking Tea for Nourishing Life.” See KissaYojoki
Notes on the Memorial Temple for
Dharma Master Senko from the
Country of Japan 55, 64
Notes on the One ThousandBuddha Pavilion of the Celebrated Mountain Taibai 64 Notes to the Latter-day World
Dharma Lamp 108, 200, 220
Notes to the Words and Phrases
89, 197, 218 novice(s) 75, 178 nun(s) 52, 75, 78, 94, 97, 104–5,
168, 181, 215, 216, 237 eight rules of respect 92
O
ocean 39, 115, 128, 169, 176, 265,
266, 272 opens(s) (see also transgression)
52, 78, 162, 165, 167, 184, 215,
222
five definitive distinctions of 158,
160, 166 four grave 76, 111, 143, 162, 180,
183, 222 overing(s) 15, 62, 77, 106, 118,
135, 155, 172, 173, 185, 220, 222,
225, 234 burnt 51, 218
Official Document Presented to the
Emperor 82, 196, 218
Oj oin Temple 182
Okamura, Shohaku 248
Okayama Prefecture 211 Omi Province 219
One Dharma 23
One Mind 11, 13, 14, 15, 23, 24, 28, 29, 116, 117–18, 186, 266 seal of 63
oneness 116, 118, 135, 214, 229, 245
of the mind (see also One Mind)
134, 229
One Thousand Buddhas’ Towering
Pavilion 64
One Vehicle 29
On the Genealogy from Buddha to
Buddha 223 On Zen Practice 248 ordinary being(s), people, person 5,
16, 21, 23, 24, 26, 27, 82, 110,
167, 238, 270 ordination 153, 169, 172, 241 original face. See face, original Osaka 217, 225 other-power 259
P
pagoda 64 pañcaΩala. See precepts, five Panshan 231 påråjikås. See oneness, four grave paramårtha. See reality, ultimate;
truth, ultimate, of ultimate meaning
Paramårtha 205, 206 Parikhå 107 parinirvå√a 84, 86, 88, 136, 180,
181, 214, 216, 218, 222, 223, 233,
235, 265 PårΩva 131 passion(s) 55, 120, 169, 275
self-afflicting 118, 119, 181, 184,
236
path(s), pathway(s) 11, 14, 18, 20,
26, 72, 73, 97, 99, 104, 119, 120,
125, 141, 144, 148, 172, 184, 215,
242, 243, 253, 255, 270, 271 five 159
non-Buddhist 167
three evil (see also evil, paths)
125, 126, 225 two 126
patriarch(s) 6, 22, 34, 36, 40, 41, 61,
76, 102, 106, 107, 109, 123, 133,
134, 136, 144, 148, 150, 184, 218,
230, 259, 260, 267, 271, 273, 274 peace 8, 241, 243, 245, 254 Pei Xiu 7, 9, 11 Pengcheng, king of 107, 221 perceptive faculties (see also sense, perceptions) 6, 17, 18
perfect and immediate awakening
115, 224 perfect attainment 116 perfect awakening 116, 117 perfect cessation (see also pari nir vå√a) 136
perfection(s) (see also påramitå; six perfections) 117, 125, 126, 158
of the knowledge of emptiness (see
also prajñåpåramitå) 91, 139,
185, 212 perfect permeation 163, 168 perfect practice 116 perfect principle 61, 102 perfect rank 115, 224 perfect teaching 100, 182, 224
Perpetual Peace Temple. See
Eiheiji phenomena, phenomenon (see also dharma) 25, 26, 27, 28, 86, 116,
143, 161, 163, 165, 166, 213, 223,
244, 266 phrase(s) (see also letter; word) 32,
86, 95, 109, 154, 159, 164, 191,
235, 271 pilgrimage(s) 63, 95, 177, 179, 181,
225
Piöola 107
Piçgala 196
Postscript to A Treatise on the Contemplation of Mind 128, 203, 225
power(s) (see also other-power; self-
power; vow, -power) 178, 219,
221, 253, 254, 272 of confidence 156, 157 of dhyåna 149, 183 supernatural, supramundane 20,
87, 105, 107, 154, 272 practice(s) 5, 11, 14, 15, 16, 18, 20,
27, 32, 38, 49, 50, 51, 52, 53, 61,
62, 65, 72, 81, 82, 85, 86, 87, 92,
98, 103, 105, 112, 117, 118, 120,
121, 122, 124, 133, 141, 143, 149, 154–5, 158, 159, 162, 163, 165,
166, 169, 170, 171, 173, 175, 176,
180, 182, 184, 211, 213, 216, 219, 224, 228, 229, 233, 236, 237–8,
241, 242, 243, 244, 245, 247, 254,
259, 260, 261, 262, 267, 269, 270,
271, 273, 274 myriad 13, 14, 28, 143, 271 perfect 116 sixteen fold 271 ten 16 twelvefold 271
practice-in-realization 262, 274 prajñå (see also knowledge, of emptiness; Ωala, samådhi, and prajñå; wisdom) 22, 23, 24, 51, 52, 53, 55, 71, 72, 78, 93, 95, 98,
110, 122, 127, 135, 139, 141, 143,
156, 183, 225, 271, 272 Prajñå 193 prajñå-jñåna. See wisdom, -knowledge
prajñåpåramitå (see also perfec-
tion, of the knowledge of emptiness) 91, 94, 185 Prajñåpåramitåh®daya-sitra. See
Heart Sutra
Prajñåpåramitå Sutra (see also
Mahå prajñåpåramitå Sutra) 172 Prajñottara 131 pråtimok≈a 216, 236 pratatyasamutpåda. See dependent origination
pratyekabuddha(s) 24, 26, 80, 126,
131, 213, 228, 234, 235 precept(s) (see also Ωila; vinaya) 52, 53, 65, 76, 78, 79, 80, 85, 98, 105, 118, 119, 121, 124, 125, 127, 135, 158, 159, 160, 161, 162, 163, 164,
166, 168, 169, 170, 175, 178, 182,
211, 215–16, 219, 222, 235, 269 bodhisattva 65, 109, 135, 148,
158, 160, 220, 241 five 80, 111, 159, 178 forty-eight less weighty 76, 169,
215, 216 holder 163, 166–7 monastic, for monastic discipline
75, 76, 89, 109, 215, 235 moral 78, 85, 98, 99, 108, 109,
111, 124, 125, 127, 149, 211 of restraint 109, 115, 160, 215– 16
Small Vehicle, for Ωråvakas 109,
158, 159, 211 ten weighty 76, 169, 215, 216 threefold collection of 76, 169,
215, 216 three hundred and forty-eight
215 two hundred and fifty 111, 169,
180, 215, 216 priest(s) (see also clergy; monk) 49,
50, 51, 52, 53, 54, 55, 56, 61, 64,
66, 69, 72, 73, 76, 95, 106, 128,
135, 173, 189, 190, 218, 220, 221, 225, 228, 229
principle(s) 11, 15, 82, 99, 120, 133, 135, 145, 159, 160, 161, 164, 214,
247, 266, 27 Chan 189 general 73, 75, 102, 143, 151, 168 living 96, 186 perfect 61, 102 ultimate 100, 117 worldly 271
Zen, of Zen, of the Zen school 54,
79, 80, 82, 83, 93, 99, 101, 109,
116, 118, 122, 127, 129, 137,
143, 144, 151, 190, 217
Profound Meaning of the Lotus
Sutra 52, 115, 164, 201, 211, 218 Progress Into the Ordinary 249 provisional, provisionality 84, 117,
142, 144, 160, 166, 193, 224 teachings 23, 84 Puji 219 pumnåra tree 215 Pu√yamitra 131
Pu√yayaΩas 131
Purå√a KåΩyapa 167
Pure Land 25, 178
Pure Land practice, school, teaching 50, 51, 237, 242, 259 Putong 131, 228
Q
Qianguang. See Senko
Qi dynasty 210
Qin dynasty (see also Eastern Qin dynasty) 209
Qinglin Shiqian 147, 233
Qingyuan 246 Qin, king of 94 quietude 145, 149, 231
R
Råhulåtta 131
Råjag®ha 107, 214, 227 råk≈asa (see also demon) 104, 221 ratiocination 31, 32, 33, 34, 35, 36,
230
reality 24, 86, 117, 130, 139, 140,
151, 155, 244 characteristics of 71, 73, 124, 156 one 23, 103 three modes of 121, 224 true, true mode of, true nature of,
truth of 51, 90, 103, 111, 143,
151, 214, 216 ultimate 49, 52, 71, 73, 138, 157,
212, 215, 224 realization (see also practice-inrealization) 11, 17, 18, 23, 62, 79, 118, 119, 121, 137, 150, 183,
224, 225, 226, 244, 246, 255, 261,
262, 270, 271, 274
Realization of the Universal Truth.
See Genj ok oan
realm(s) 14, 15, 17, 21, 22, 23, 24,
25, 26, 35, 36–7, 42, 141, 253, 255 of animals 161, 225 of the devas 105 eighteen 19, 28–9 enlightened 34, 230 of hell 161, 225 of hungry ghosts 161, 225 sensory 21, 24, 26 three lower 225
reason 92, 116, 136, 138, 160, 161,
163, 164, 166, 213, 224, 271 and phenomena 116, 163, 165
Reasons for the Rise of the Chan
School 129, 203
Record at Wanling 229
Recorded Sayings of Linji 7
Record of the Buddhist Religion as
Prac tised in India and the Malay
Archipelago (671–695) by I-tsing,
A 208
Record of the Transmission of the
Dharma Treasury 178, 180–1,
209
Record of the Transmission of the
Light. See Denk oroku
Records of Ancient Matters. See
Kojiki
Records of Important Items in the Buddhist Tripitaka 203
Reflections on the Notion of Faith. See Shinjinmeinentei Reizei, Emperor 48 relics 51, 62, 63, 83, 118, 172, 177 religion 54, 55, 73, 87, 94, 103, 110,
118, 133 state-supported 52, 54, 55 state-supporting 52, 55
religious 5, 7, 8, 11, 22, 50, 53, 55,
65, 260 act 101, 143 observance(s) 77, 99 person(s) 15, 21, 33, 37 practice 5, 14, 20, 27, 32
repa (see also robe) 181, 237 restraint(s) (see also self-restraint)
61, 99, 120 fourfold, four kinds of 80, 167, 217 precepts of 109, 115, 160, 215–16 tenfold 167
retreat(s) 171, 172
summer 62, 106, 154, 171, 172,
241, 246 winter 171, 172
reward body (see also three bodies) 28
Rhodes, Robert 200
Ribenguo Qianguangfashi Citangji. See Notes on the Memorial Temple for Dharma Master Senko from the Country of Japan
Rinzai sect, school (see also Linji school) 7, 47, 49, 51, 54, 136,
241, 259, 260 Rinzaishiseiten 202, 225 rite(s) 172, 174 esoteric 65 samaya 61
Ritsu school (see also Vinaya school)
55, 220, 260 ritual, ritualism 242, 259 goma (see also overing, burnt) 218 leader (see also åcårya) 47
robe(s) 24, 40, 41, 80, 96, 130, 132,
136, 150, 175, 176, 177, 178, 179,
181, 214, 227, 254, 273 Dharma 49, 72, 171 ka≈åya 136, 176, 273 saµghå†a 130, 135, 136, 170, 228
robe and bowl 101, 130 root(s) 28, 63, 185, 213, 244, 246,
253 good 26
samådhi 165
of virtue 95, 109, 113, 185
Ryoben 49
“Ryogonshu to Byakusangaidarani, Comparative Studies of Restored
Sanskrit Texts” 217 Ryosokuin 55, 69
S
Saga, Emperor 197 sage(s), sagehood, sagely (see also arhat; athwartship) 5, 34, 35, 36,
38, 39, 62, 72, 94, 105, 110, 145,
179, 231, 253
Saich o (see also Dengy o) 47, 88, 100,
197, 200, 215, 216, 218, 219–20 sak®dågåmin 80, 221
¸åkya Genealogy 226
¸åkyamuni 33, 63, 65, 72, 75, 82,
85, 89, 102, 103, 129, 130, 134,
136, 142, 146, 150, 168, 211, 214,
223, 226, 227, 235, 253, 260, 261 Ωåla trees 222 samådhi(s) (see also meditation; self-concentration; Ωala, samådhi, and prajñå) 22, 51, 52, 53, 55, 81, 87, 98, 103, 110, 121,
122, 127, 141, 165, 173, 177, 180,
186, 224, 225, 254, 255, 261, 266,
271, 272 of all Buddhas 265, 271 dhyåna- 125
king 165, 266, 271 nembutsu 122 root 165 self-fulfilling 261, 266, 271
Ωiraµgama 71, 212
Samådhi that is the King of Samå- dhis, The. See Sammai o zammai Samantabhadra 15, 178 samaya 61 saµbhogakåya. See reward body Saµghabhadra 198 Saµghanandi 131 Saµghapåla 201 saµghå†a. See robe, saµghå†a Saµghavarman 198, 235 Sammai o zammai 261
samsara (see also birth and death) 14, 16, 21, 33, 229 Samudrajñåna 126 saµvara. See restraint ¸ånavåsin 103, 131, 177, 178 sangaku. See three learnings Sangaku school 121
sangha (see also four kinds of
sangha members) 65, 78, 85, 88, 91, 97, 98, 99, 105, 106, 113, 158,
169, 174, 215, 216, 222, 227
Sangha. See Buddha, Dharma, and
Sangha
Saçghabhedavastu 235
Sanlun school (see also Sanron school) 100, 123
Sanron school (see also Sanlun school) 55, 100, 220, 225
Sanskrit 57, 193, 211, 213, 217,
226, 227, 235, 243, 244 ¸åriputra 77, 78, 83, 90
Ωåstra(s) (see also commentaries; treatise) 66, 99, 115, 123, 129,
137, 144, 187, 191, 269 scholar(s), scholarship 7, 52, 58, 64,
82, 102, 128, 169, 215, 237, 259 school(s) 34, 39, 42, 48, 49, 50, 51,
52, 53, 63, 66, 76, 82, 88, 99, 100,
101–2, 104, 108, 109, 115, 121,
122–3, 125, 127, 128, 129, 133,
134, 136, 137, 144, 150, 162, 190,
219, 220, 225, 242, 259 of the Buddha’s Mind 49, 61, 65, 212
Chan 23, 32, 47, 52, 54, 62, 72,
87, 88, 100, 102, 121, 129, 133,
144, 148, 195, 212, 228 Daruma 48, 49, 118 eight 55, 101, 122, 183, 220 of Hongzhou 7 Kegon 66, 212
Kusha 102
Linji 7, 135, 241 Mantra 90, 104, 139, 156 of Mazu 6, 7 Nembutsu 122 Nichiren 242 nine 101–2, 122, 134 Northern, of Chan 5, 219 Pure Land 242, 259
Sangaku 121
Sanlun 100, 123
Shingon 47, 100, 101, 102, 259
Shigendo 259
Soto 53, 242, 259, 260
Tendai 47, 48, 50, 54, 55, 61, 63,
65, 66, 73, 82, 101, 134, 215,
216, 219, 220, 228, 259 three 47, 101, 144, 230 Tiantai 84, 85, 87, 92, 100, 110,
111, 115, 119, 121, 124, 128,
140, 143, 159, 160, 163, 165,
183, 211, 218, 220
Tiantai Lotus 100
Vinaya 99, 101
Zen 8, 47–51, 53, 54, 55, 56, 61,
72, 73, 75, 80, 81, 83, 93, 99– 100, 101–2, 106, 107–8, 109–
12, 115–16, 118–19, 121–4,
127, 129, 143, 151, 158, 159,
161, 162, 168–9, 173, 176, 190,
211, 217, 228, 242 scripture(s) (see also sutra) 40, 52, 57, 63, 66, 77, 78, 83, 85, 86, 87, 89, 97, 108, 113, 115, 128, 129,
145, 164, 166, 167, 170, 173, 174,
178, 180, 202, 219, 223, 233, 234
Scripture on the Explication of
Underlying Meaning 140, 205 seal 27–8, 136, 226 Buddha- 245, 255 mind-, of the mind, of the One
Mind 12, 63, 65, 129, 130, 137,
226, 253 of the Supreme Vehicle 11
Sea of Penglai 190, 238
Second Patriarch of Chan. See
Huike
seeking 13, 19, 20, 30, 31, 35, 37, 87, 113, 135, 148, 149, 218, 235,
241, 243
Sekiguchi, Shindai 201
Sekis o (see also Shishuang Chu yuan) 272
self 6, 17, 19, 24, 30, 42, 49, 52, 71,
90, 116, 141, 212, 232, 267, 274 self-abiding 116, 155 self-afflicting passions. See passions, self-afflicting
self-attained truth. See truth, selfattained
self-binding passions. See passions,
self-binding
self-conceit 115, 118 self-concentration (see also samådhi)
51, 81, 87, 98, 111, 120, 129, 141,
143, 148, 165, 173, 186 self-confidence 148 self-contemplation 149 self-cultivating, self-cultivation 6,
126, 130 self-elected 131, 141 self-expression 214 self-fulfilling samådhi. See
samådhi, self-fulfilling
self-illumination 265 self-nature 25, 28, 84, 86, 101, 117,
137, 141, 144, 167, 219, 224 self-power 259 self-purity 234 self-restraint 51, 169, 170 self-righteousness 270 self-understanding 147
Selling Water by the River: A Manual of Zen Training 248
Senart, E. 227
Senchaku Hongan Nembutsu Shi
50
Sengcan 132, 265
Sengyou 226
Senko (see also Eisai) 61, 65 Senkoin 135
Sennyiji 66 sense(s) (see also six senses, sense
perceptions, sensory capabilities)
28, 266 faculties 90 objects (see also six sense objects)
28 perceptions (see also perceptive faculties) 141
sensory realm(s) 21, 23, 24, 26 sentient being(s) (see also living beings) 5, 8, 13, 14, 16, 17, 20, 21, 25, 26, 28, 29, 142, 213, 214, 225, 229, 241, 265, 266, 270
Separate Biography of Monk Falin of Tang 220 Shan 233
Shanxi Gorge 147
Shaodong 238
Shaolin Temple 128, 132, 253 Shenfang 101, 199 Shenxiu 40 Shiga 219 shikantaza (see also sitting) 242,
244, 245, 255, 261
Shikantaza: An Introduction to Zazen 248
Shingon school (see also Mantra school) 47, 51, 55, 90, 100, 101,
102, 173, 220, 225, 259, 260 shinjin datsuraku. See body and
mind, dropping o› of
Shinjinmeinentei 260 Shinsen-en 63
Shiren, Kokan 49–50, 53–4, 56
Shishuang Chuyuan (see also
Sekis o) 132
Shishuang Qingzhu 146–7, 213, 232 Shitennoji International Buddhist
University 217
Shitou Xiqian 233
Sh ob ogenz o (see also Eye and
Treasury of the True Dharma)
206, 247, 260, 261
Sh ob ogenz o: Zen Essays by Dogen 248
Sh ob ogenz o zuimonki 261 Sh ogakuji 260 shogun, shogunate 48 Sh omu, Emperor 212 sh omy o. See chengming Shore, Je›rey 57
Shoushan Shongnian 132
Shu (see also Sichuan Province) 106
Shugend o school 259
Shunj o 66
Shunxiao 220
Sichuan Province (see also Shu)
106, 237 Siddhårtha 221, 237 siddhi 80
¸ikhin 130
Ωik≈amånå(s) (see also novice) 75,
215
¸ik≈ånanda 204, 206
Ωik≈ås. See three learnings
Ωala (see also moral conduct, precepts; morality; precepts) 22, 51, 53, 85, 98, 103, 109, 110, 121,
125, 127, 153, 156, 158, 159,
160–1, 162, 163, 164, 165–6,
169, 180, 183, 220, 222, 225, 235,
236, 271, 272 bodhisattva 65, 100, 136, 211,
220, 221 perfection of 125 saµvara- 99, 121, 215
Ωala, samådhi, and prajñå (see also discipline, concentration, and wisdom; morality, concentration, and wisdom; morality, meditation, and wisdom; three learnings) 55, 98, 122
silence 16, 22, 40, 150 Siµha 131
Similarities and Dissimilarities of the Teaching Forms 100–1, 122,
134, 142–3, 199, 218
Single Mind Moral Precept 127–8,
203, 220 sitting (see also four basic postures; meditation, seated; shikantaza; walking, standing, sitting, and lying down; zazen) 38, 42, 105, 108, 120, 145, 149, 150, 153, 218,
231, 242, 244, 245, 253, 254, 255,
267, 268, 269, 272, 273, 274 six consciousnesses 19, 28 Six Dynasties period 201
Sixfold Prajñåpåramitå Sutra 75,
193
six perfections (see also påramitå)
13, 14, 28, 108, 112, 126, 159,
186, 224 six sense objects 19 six senses, sense perceptions, sen-
sory capabilities 19, 23, 28, 29,
182, 265, 271
Sixth Patriarch of Chan (see also
Huineng) 5, 11, 40–1, 136, 230 skandhas. See five skandhas skillful means 29, 109, 117, 123,
142, 157, 159, 160, 161 slander(ing) 73, 79, 89, 90, 91, 93, 98, 99, 103, 215
Smaller Tiantai Text of Calming and Contemplation 236
Small Vehicle (see also Hinayana)
109, 126, 134, 158, 159, 167, 169 S ojiji 259, 260 solitary enlightened one. See pratyekabuddha
Solutions for Propagation 85, 93,
121, 159–60, 161, 163, 165–6,
196, 218
Song dynasty (see also Liu-Song dynasty; Northern Song dynasty) 47, 49, 51, 53, 55, 58, 61, 62, 63, 64, 71, 87, 102, 123,
129, 133, 134, 135, 171, 173, 176,
177, 182, 189, 225, 229, 236, 237
Song Dynasty Biographies of Eminent Monks 102, 154, 199
Soto Approach to Zen, The 248
Soto sect, school (see also Caodong sect) 51, 53, 136, 242, 259, 260,
261
Soto School Scriptures for Daily
Services 248
Sources of Japanese Tradition 57
South Asia 199
South Asian Sea 131, 176, 177 Southern Dynasties 237 sovereign(s) (see also king; monarch)
52, 94, 96, 98 space 5, 11, 13, 14, 15, 21, 22, 27, 28,
30–1, 36, 38, 139, 140, 244, 265 speech 92, 126, 244, 265
five types of 19
Ωrama√a(s) (see also way-seeker) 90
Ωrama√era(s) 75, 215
Ωrama√era(s) 75, 215
Ωråvaka(s) 20, 24, 26, 126, 131,
158, 159, 211, 213, 217, 221, 228,
234
Ωråvaka-Buddha(s) 20, 26
¸råvasta 218 ¸ra Bhadra 64 srota-åpanna 80, 154, 155, 221 stage(s) 17, 29, 35, 38, 39, 42, 126,
151, 181, 221, 224 six 224, 271 ten 16, 25, 38, 222 Standard Method of Zazen. See
Zazengi
star(s) 61, 81, 98
steelyard hook, metaphor of 147, 235
¸ubhåkarasiµha 197, 205 Subhiti 89, 185 subject and object 15, 19, 25, 27,
265, 272 suchness 15, 20, 33, 214, 224, 232, 253, 255 Sudatta 236 supering 16, 29, 52, 64, 79, 81, 83,
85, 93, 104, 110, 124, 127, 153,
155, 175, 186, 218, 235, 272, 274 Sifukuji 219
Sui dynasty 102, 205, 209
Sukhåvata. See Land of Bliss Sumatra 72
sun 5, 11, 14, 17, 38, 71, 98, 157, 179, 189, 217 Sunjue 230 supernatural 20, 106, 157
faculties 245, 255 power(s) (see also power, supra-
mundane) 87, 105, 107, 154,
272
Supreme Bliss Temple. See Gokurakuji
Supreme Deity King’s Prajñå påra mitå Sutra 79, 195
¸iraµgamasamådhi-sitra. See ¸iraçgama Samådhi Sutra ¸iraçgama Samådhi Sutra 212
sutra(s) (see also scripture) 39, 40, 66, 85, 86, 87, 95, 100, 115, 123,
128, 129, 137, 141, 142, 144, 161,
172, 173, 179, 186, 187, 191, 212,
214, 215, 216, 218, 226, 235, 236,
237, 238, 269, 273
Sutra of Bodhisattva Samudrajñåna
126, 202
Sutra of Examining through Divination 141, 205
Sutra of Forty-two Sections 79–80, 110, 195
Sutra of Golden Light 172, 208, 219
Sutra of King Longevity 141, 205–
6
Sutra of Maitreya’s Descent and
Attainment of Buddhahood
214–15
Sutra of Moonlight Samådhi 141, 205
Sutra of Moral Conduct 149, 207
Sutra of Perfect Awakening 123, 149, 202, 225
Sutra of Pleasure and Garlands
90, 197
Sutra of Ratnakumåra 126–7, 203
Sutra of Supra-sunlight Samådhi
112, 201
Sutra of ¸iraµgama Practices 80–
1, 104, 125, 163, 172, 195, 217–
18
Sutra of the Benevolent King 77–8,
79, 94, 96–8, 194, 214
Sutra of the Bodhisattva Abiding in the Womb 222
Sutra of the Bodhisattva Precepts for Practicing Good 142, 153,
161, 162, 167, 206
Sutra of the Brahmå Called Excellent Thinker 93, 198
Sutra of the Buddhas’ Names 172,
208
Sutra of the Collection of the
Buddha’s Original Practices 209
Sutra of the Diamond Samådhi
141, 205
Sutra of the Jain Satyaka’s Instruction 141, 205
Sutra of the Names of One Thousand Buddhas in the Past Kalpa of Supernal Manifestations 226
Sutra of the Original Practice 179, 209, 213, 227, 237
Sutra of Treasure Clouds 118, 201
Sutra of Words of Truth on Great Acts 154, 207
Sutra on Attaining the Mudrå that Effects the Strength of Con fi- dence 157, 208
Sutra on Contemplation of Saman tabhadra 111, 143, 200
Sutra on Contemplation of the Two
Bodhisattvas Bhai≈ajyaråja and
Bhai≈ajyaråjasamudgata 226
Sutra on Handing Over a Lotus
Flower 130, 204
Sutra on the Abiding of the Dharma 83, 196
Sutra on the Excellence of the Donation of a Lamp Fire 183, 210
Sutra on the Great Drum of the Truth 131, 204
Sutra on the Most Wondrous Su- preme Dhyåna 111, 143, 183,
200–1
Sutra on the Prince Coming into
Being with Auspicious Responses
179, 209
Sutra Treasury of Miscellaneous
Jewels 154–6, 207 Suw o Province 66
T
Ta clan 61
Taibai 64
Taibaimingshan Qianfogeji. See
Notes on the One ThousandBuddha Pavilion of the Celebrated Mountain Taibai
Taigong Wan 106, 221
Taira clan 48, 203
Taira Kagekiyo 50
Taishoshinshi daiz oky o 6, 8 Taiyuan 145
Taiyuan Fu. See Fu
Taizhou 12
Taizong, Emperor 225, 237
Takakusu, J. 208
Tanaka, Ryosh o 212
Tang dynasty 12, 58, 82, 87, 88,
100, 101, 102, 128, 157, 164, 179,
195, 202, 204, 205, 206, 208, 215,
218, 219, 220, 223, 234
Tan Wusui 220
Tanyas 207, 209
Tathågata(s) (see also Buddha;
Buddha Tathågatas; ¸åkyamuni)
17, 27, 29, 34, 39, 40, 63, 78, 81,
85, 91, 92, 93, 95, 98, 99, 102,
104, 106, 107, 108, 109, 125, 126, 127, 128, 130, 131, 132, 138, 139,
140, 142, 151, 157, 162, 173, 178,
179, 183, 185, 214, 216, 217–18,
222, 225, 227, 230, 271, 272 dhyåna 55, 121, 122, 138, 160, 186, 225, 230, 236 Five 217 nirvana, parinirvå√a, passing
away of 86, 88, 125, 179
skillful means 123, 157 stage 39, 151 teachings 87, 90, 93
tathågatagarbha 33
teaching(s) 5, 6, 7, 11, 12, 14, 20,
21, 25, 26, 28, 30, 33–4, 39, 47,
50, 51, 52, 62, 66, 72, 73, 75–9,
82, 83, 84, 85, 87, 88, 89, 90–2,
93, 94, 96, 97–8, 99, 100, 102,
103, 106, 108, 109–10, 112, 113, 117, 118, 119, 120, 122, 123, 125,
126, 128, 129, 134, 135, 136, 142,
144, 155, 156, 157, 158, 159, 163,
164, 165, 167, 168, 171, 174, 175, teaching(s) (continued)
176, 178, 179–80, 183, 186, 196,
211, 213, 214, 215, 217, 218, 219,
222, 223, 225, 228, 234, 241, 246,
259, 261, 270–1, 272 authentic 77, 92, 98, 99, 216,
222, 223 on the awakened truth 72, 73,
77, 78, 89, 90 oral 20, 26 perfect 100, 182, 224 provisional 23, 84 scriptural 72, 91, 137, 145, 163,
166, 169, 213 three. See three teachings
teaching, practice, and realization
261, 270 temple(s) 47, 48, 54, 61, 65, 66, 81,
82, 95, 100, 129, 135, 155, 168,
172, 173, 174, 177, 178, 190, 212,
216, 220, 221, 231, 234, 260, 275 ten conversions 16
Tendai school (see also Tiantai school) 47, 48, 49, 50, 51, 53, 54, 55, 61, 63, 65, 66, 73, 82, 100,
101, 103, 134, 173, 196, 215, 216,
218, 219, 220, 228, 230, 234, 241,
259, 260
Tendai Shikan no Kenkyi 201
Tenn oji 122, 225
Teshan 246 Tettsi Gikai 259, 260 text(s) (see also commentaries;
Ωåstra; scripture; sutra; treatise)
5, 6, 7, 8, 33, 34, 50, 54, 55, 56,
57, 58, 69, 73, 87, 88, 90, 100,
119, 124, 160, 164, 168, 177, 187, 191, 193, 195, 196, 197, 199, 201,
202, 205, 207, 209, 211, 212, 213,
214, 215, 217, 218, 221, 222, 223,
224, 225, 226, 229, 230, 233, 235,
236, 238, 241, 242, 243, 244, 247,
260, 261
Theory of Zazen for Three Types of People. See Zazensangonsetsu
“The Universal Promotion of the
Principles of Zazen” 248 thinking (see also non-thinking;
thought) 13, 31, 34, 41, 253, 261, 266–7, 269, 273
Third Patriarch. See ¸ånavåsin
Third Patriarch of Chan. See Sengcan
thought(s) (see also thinking) 5, 6,
11, 13, 14, 18, 20, 25, 27, 33, 41,
42, 92, 108, 111, 115, 144, 146,
155, 167, 186, 211, 214, 215, 217,
245, 254, 265, 267, 271, 274 deepening (see also zazen) 111,
112, 143, 145 ego- 112, 214 false 13, 17, 19, 22
Thoughts Expressed by Men of Zen in Medieval Japan. See Chiseizenke-no-shis o
three bodies (see also Dharma body;
reward body; transformation body) 28
Three Chan Classics 7, 232 three collections, threefold collection of Buddhist teachings (see also Tripi†aka) 73, 91, 99, 103,
164, 169 three countries (see also China;
India; Japan) 100, 101, 102, 122 threefold collection of purifying
precepts. See precepts, threefold collection of
three learnings (see also Ωala,
samådhi, and prajñå; three teachings) 224, 225
three periods of time 25, 27, 42, 80,
94, 213, 243 three poisons (see also greed, anger, and delusion) 165 Three Pure Land Sutras, The 209 three refuges (see also Buddha, Dharma, and Sangha; Three
Treasures) 111, 159 three teachings (see also Ωala, samådhi, and prajñå; three learnings) 53, 55, 125
Three Teachings Pointing to Where to Return 175, 209
Three Texts on Consciousness Only 206
Three Treasures (see also Buddha, Dharma, and Sangha; three refuges) 94, 96, 97, 155, 182,
215, 217, 234 three vehicles. See vehicles, three throwing a pepper seed onto the tip
of a needle, metaphor of 147, 233
Tianhuang Daowu 147, 233
Tiansheng Records of the Expanding Lamp 227, 228
Tiantai (see also Zhizhe; Zhiyi) 86,
89, 103, 140, 181, 197, 211, 219
Tiantai Lotus school 100
Tiantai school (see also Tendai school) 52, 54, 64, 84, 85, 87, 92, 100, 110, 111, 115, 117, 119, 121,
124, 128, 135, 140, 143, 159, 160,
163, 165, 183, 211, 218, 219, 220,
230, 234
Tiantong Rujing 51, 241, 261, 272 tiger 108, 254
Toba, Emperor 225
T odaiji 66, 212, 225
T ofukuji 53
T oji 100, 220
Tokiwa, Gishin 222
T okokuji 263 Tottori Prefecture 211 trainee(s) 6, 14, 15, 16, 18, 19, 20,
21, 22, 24, 26, 29, 33 training 5, 13, 25, 40, 260, 261 tranquility 124, 142, 153, 162, 267,
269, 271 transcendence 15, 20, 150 transformation body (see also three
bodies) 28
transformation city 25 transgression(s) (see also opens)
29, 76, 78, 92, 96, 97, 98, 108,
112, 120, 139, 160, 164, 167, 171,
184, 215 –16, 234, 235 five grave 111, 143, 162, 183, 222 seven groups of 158, 160, 166, 235
transmission 28, 36, 40, 55, 65, 87,
88, 100, 101, 103, 128, 129, 130,
131, 132, 133, 134, 136, 137, 195,
212, 219, 220, 221, 223, 228, 270 master-to-master 100 of mind 35–6, 102, 142, 223, 226 special, independent of, outside the scriptures 66, 72, 213
Transmission of the Lamp 71, 73,
88, 106 treasure(s) 15, 22, 25–6, 73, 79, 84,
85, 146, 169, 171, 234, 247, 255 treasury(ies) (see also eye, and
treasury of the Dharma) 71, 77,
88, 91, 119, 222 eight 71, 108, 143, 169, 213, 222
treatise(s) (see also commentaries;
Ωåstra) 6, 40, 47, 54, 61, 66, 67,
84, 85, 88, 115, 126, 140, 150,
186, 206, 216, 219
Treatise on Awakening Confidence 142, 157, 213, 218, 229
Treatise on Letting Zen Flourish to
Protect the State, A 43, 47, 49– 51, 53–8, 59–191, 211, 212, 218,
220, 225, 228, 233, 234, 238
Kanmon edition 56–7, 191, 212,
220, 229, 230
Treatise on Teaching Time
Polemics 101, 103, 122, 134,
142, 199
Treatise on the Core of Analysis of
Buddhist Concepts Taken Up for
Meditation 235
Treatise on the Treasury of Analyzed Concepts of Buddhism
174, 209
Tripi†aka(s) 63, 64, 91, 99, 100,
103, 123, 146, 164, 169, 177, 225 Taisho 8, 56, 226
Tibetan 194, 197, 198, 199, 203,
204, 205, 207, 209
True Dharma 21, 28, 29, 31, 33,
212, 254 eye and treasury of 71, 212
truth 17, 35, 38, 52, 66, 72, 73, 77,
78, 85, 86, 89, 95, 97, 98, 99, 101,
103, 104, 132, 134, 136, 138, 139,
142, 145, 154, 156, 163, 164, 166,
181, 187, 190, 221, 247, 267 authentic 130, 136 awakened 72, 73, 77, 78, 87, 89,
90, 106, 140, 144, 186, 214, 216 of bliss and stability 148, 174 Chan, of Chan 120, 128, 219 conventional 37 lamp of 73, 95 of no-dispute 93 one real, of one reality 85, 100, 103, 139 single 24, 99, 134 stainless 82 threefold 63, 166, 167 ultimate, of ultimate meaning
84, 223, 243 universal 245, 247, 254 vessels of 98, 223
Zen, of Zen 52, 54, 78, 99, 103, 216
Tsuchimikado 47
Tsukushi 65
Tsunoda, Ryisaku 57
Tukhara 96
Tu≈ita Heaven 218
Twenty-fifth Patriarch of Chan. See
Eisai two vehicles. See vehicles, two
U
Udraka Råmaputra 161, 235–6
Ui, Hakiju 213, 219, 220 Uji 241 unconditioned 20, 39, 217, 243, 245, 255
Universal Guide on the Right Way to Zazen, A 248
“Universally Recommended
Instructions for Zazen” 248–9
Universal Recommendation of True
Zazen, A 239, 242–3, 247–9,
251–5, 261 universal salvation 242, 244 University of Hawaii 57 upådhyåya 153
Upagupta 104–5, 131, 181, 237 upåsaka(s) (see also layman) 75, 215 upåsikå(s) (see also laywoman) 75, 215 UpaΩinya 195 upo≈adha 65, 167, 169, 173, 216 u≈√a≈a. See Buddha, protuberance on head of
U≈√a≈a Sitåtapatra 217 Uttarakuru 107
V
Vaipulya Sutra 111, 201
Vairocana 102 VaiΩåla 177 vajra 100, 222 Vajrabodhi 102, 221 Vajradhara 81 vajråsana. See diamond seat VaΩi≈†ha 130
Vasubandhu 131, 209 Vasumitra 131 Vedas 72, 90 vehicle(s) (see also Buddha vehicle; Great Vehicle; One Vehicle;
Small Vehicle) 24, 29, 72, 85,
158, 159, 160, 161, 169, 213, 228,
235
best 71, 212 bodhisattva 185 esoteric 100 five 71, 213 supreme 11, 253 three 16, 24, 29, 33, 34, 91, 183,
213
two 25, 26, 158 utmost 66 Veranjå 106 verbal 90, 93, 139, 140, 151, 235 expression(s) (see also phrase;
word) 84, 122, 138, 140, 141,
142, 214 Victoria, Brian Daizen 248 view(s) 23, 24, 49, 52, 108, 131,
134, 147, 150, 182, 221, 229, 237,
255, 267 correct 22 ego- 118 evil 77, 92, 125, 153, 175 false 120 fixed 49, 84, 90, 93, 118, 120 perverted 119, 140
vijñaptimåtra 142
Vimalakarti 15, 138, 177, 230 Vimalakarti Sutra 101, 138, 199 vinaya (see also monastic, discipline; moral, precept; morality; precept; Vinaya) 52, 109, 111,
158, 167, 180, 222
Vinaya(s) 65, 75, 99, 123, 129, 158, 166, 167, 169, 173, 211, 216, 236
Vinaya in Four Divisions 76, 106,
135, 158, 194, 211, 215
Vinaya master(s) 101, 121, 158
Vinaya school (see also Ritsu school) 99, 101 VipaΩyin 130 virtue(s) 15, 75, 106, 121, 124, 127,
129, 154, 156, 172, 179, 180, 181 roots of 95, 109, 113, 185
varya (see also six perfections) 156
Visions of Power: Imagining
Medieval Japanese Buddhism
259
ViΩvabhu 130 void 15, 21, 27, 71 vow(s) 75, 77, 82, 83, 87, 90, 105,
128, 185, 186 bodhisattva 81, 274 comprehensive 148 fourfold grand, four extensive
159, 224 original 79
-power 160
Vulture Peak 72, 128, 130, 214, 227
W
Waddell, Norman 248 walking meditation 261, 274 walking, standing, sitting, and lying down (see also four basic postures) 38, 105, 108, 145, 149,
245, 274
Wang Huizi 233
Wang Xizi 233 Wannian Temple 62, 63, 64, 135 warrior and pearl, parable of 18–19 warrior clans 48 water and waves, metaphor of 266
Way (see also Awakened Way) 18,
20, 29, 76, 98, 103, 121, 123, 135,
143, 146, 150, 155, 156, 163, 175,
215, 231, 232, 253, 255, 260, 267,
268, 270, 271, 272 way-seeker(s) (see also Ωrama√a)
51, 77, 90, 96, 98, 147, 148, 169
Wei dynasty 132, 205, 207, 208,
209, 220, 228
Weinan 177
Weishan Jingce 50
Weishan’s Staff of Vigilance. See Weishan Jingce Weiyang sect 136
Wenbo 182
Western Capital 200
Western Jin dynasty (see also Jin dynasty) 201, 206
wheel(s) 174, 217
Dharma, of the Dharma 110,
156, 213, 218, 243, 272 three 71, 185, 212–13
wisdom (see also discipline, concentration, and wisdom; morality, concentration, and wisdom; morality, meditation, and wisdom; prajñå) 19, 20, 22, 23, 31, 39, 41, 72, 86, 87, 92, 111, 112,
120, 124, 137, 140, 151, 153, 158,
171, 216, 221, 262, 267, 271, 272 all-knowing 138
eye(s) of 164, 171, 272 great 15, 184, 272 -knowledge 125 nondiscrimination 149 people, person of 73, 90, 110,
124, 139, 184, 190 pure 110, 111 that extinguishes supering 110,
124, 153 three kinds of 92 true 121, 164 untainted 38
wish-fulfilling gem 146 women 84, 91, 112, 168, 174, 185,
221, 269 word(s) (see also letters; phrases)
6, 11, 16, 20, 22, 28, 29, 30, 38,
41, 49, 65, 76, 88, 93, 96, 98, 104,
107, 108, 115, 117, 119, 122, 123,
134, 137, 138, 139, 142, 144, 145,
146, 147, 148, 150, 151, 153, 157,
160, 163, 165, 170, 171, 176, 191,
211, 214, 223, 227, 231, 232, 233,
244, 247, 253, 265, 271
Words and Phrases in the Lotus
Sutra 86, 89, 197, 211 world(s) (see also latter-day world)
of desire 126, 223 of form 223 future 81, 83, 94, 97, 108 of no-form 223 three thousand 98, 130, 179, 184 three, threefold, triple 76, 223,
231
World-honored One(s) 41, 79, 106,
110, 138, 232 worldliness, worldly 72, 82, 116,
121, 135, 147, 148, 166, 168, 174,
175, 213, 265, 266, 270, 271 world-systems 17, 39 Wu dynasty 209
Wushi Jieshen 133
Wutaishan 177, 225, 234 Wuyueguo 219
Wuzhe 234
X
Xiangtian Temple 177 Xiaoran 88, 220
Xiaozong, Emperor 63
Xinghua Cunjiang 132
Xingman 220
Xinluoguo 219
Xinwen Tanben 133
Xitang Zhizang 11
Xiuchansi 128, 177
Xu’an Huaichang 133, 150
Xuansha Shibei 230, 231
Xuanzang 95, 178, 179, 181, 195,
196, 199, 204, 206, 207, 208, 209,
214, 229
Xue’an Congjin 133
Xuedou Chongxian 206
Xuefeng Yicun 213, 231, 232
Y
Yama 36
Yamada-gun 182
Yamaguchi Prefecture 212 Yamato Province 219 yåna. See vehicle
Yanagida, Seizan 50, 56, 58, 213,
220, 223, 224, 233
Yantou Quanhuo 146, 147, 232
Yasuda Joshu Roshi 249
Yiji 219
Yijing 164, 181, 208, 229, 235 Yixing 198, 205
Y oei 219
Y ojin 229
Yojo (see also Eisai) 63, 65
Yokawa 210
Yokoi, Yih o 248
Y ok oji 260
Yongming Yanshou 201
Yoai. See Eisai
“Yoai and his problems developed in the K ozengokokuron” 56
Yoshida, Osamu 232
Yuanling 11
Yuanwu Keqin 206, 214, 215, 231,
232, 233, 238 Yuchu 64
Yudhapati 95
Yuezhi (see also India) 97
Yunmen sect 136
Yu Ridge 72
Z
Zanning 102, 199 zazen (see also meditation, seated; sitting) 62, 87, 120, 233, 241, 243, 244–6, 247, 254, 255, 259,
261, 262, 265, 266, 267, 268, 269,
270, 271, 272–3
Zazengi 247, 261
Zazen Lancet. See Zazenshin Zazensangonsetsu 260
Zazenshin 247, 261
Zazenyojinki. See Advice on the
Practice of Zazen zen (see also chan; dhyåna) 55, 76, 128, 215, 216, 243, 245
Zen (see also Zen school) 50, 51, 54,
65, 72–3, 83, 95, 102, 116, 119,
143–4, 151, 153, 163, 183, 186,
215, 225, 246, 253, 259, 260, 261,
270–1, 272, 274 awakened truth of 78, 216 essentials of 129, 142, 144 master(s) 241, 246 person(s) 112, 124, 125 practice(s) 49, 50, 51, 52, 53, 82 practitioner(s) 51, 53, 217, 242,
255
principle(s) 55, 75, 79, 80, 82, 93,
99, 118, 137, 143, 144, 151, 217
Zen (continued) studies 8, 260 temple 48, 65, 82, 129, 172, 173 truth 52, 54, 99, 103
“Zen Buddhism” 57
Zen for Daily Living 248
Zen Master Dogen 248
Zennosuke, Tsuji 50, 53
“Zen Pioneers in Japan” 57
Zen school (see also Chan school;
Rinzai sect; Soto sect) 8, 47–51,
53–4, 55–6, 61, 72, 73, 75, 80,
81, 83, 93, 99–100, 101–2, 106,
107–8, 109–12, 115–16, 118–19,
121–4, 127, 129, 143, 151, 158,
159, 161, 162, 168–9, 173, 176,
190, 211, 217, 228, 242 Dharma transmission in 131–3 imperial sanction for 47, 56 lineage 75, 129, 137 propagation of 47, 48, 56
traps and nets of 102, 142
Zen Teaching of Huang Po on the Transmission of Mind, The 8
Zhang Guoan 189–90
Zhangling Shouzhuo 133
Zhanran (see also Miaole) 52, 85, 89, 196, 197, 218, 219
Zhaozhou Congshen 232–3, 246
Zhenguan 179
Zhenyan. See Shingon
Zhiju 212
Zhiqian 209 Zhiyan 202, 230
Zhiyi (see also Tiantai; Zhizhe) 52,
84, 103, 119, 128, 140, 181, 197,
198, 201, 203, 211, 218, 219, 224,
235, 236, 237
Zhizhe (see also Tiantai; Zhiyi) 64,
128, 211, 219
Zhongling. See Hongzhou
Zhongyi, King 219
Zhou dynasty 88, 221
Zhu Fonian 222
Zizhou 157, 234
Zongmi 7